Produced by David Widger from page images generously
provided by the Internet Archive









THE LEOPARD’S Spots

A Romance Of The White Man’s Burden--1865-1900

By Thomas Dixon, Jr.

Illustrated By C. D. Williams

New York:Doubleday, Page & Co.

1902

[Illustration: 0001]

[Illustration: 0008]

[Illustration: 0009]


TO

HARRIET

SWEET-VOICED DAUGHTER OF THE OLD FASHIONED SOUTH




HISTORICAL NOTE

In answer to hundreds of letters, I wish to say that all the incidents
used in Book I., which is properly the prologue of my story, were
selected from authentic records, or came within my personal knowledge.

The only serious liberty I have taken with history is to tone down the
facts to make them credible in fiction. The village of “Hambright” is my
birthplace, and is located near the center of “Military District No. 2,”
 comprising the Carolinas, which were destroyed as States by an Act of
Congress in 1867. It will be a century yet before people outside the
South can be made to believe a literal statement of the history of those
times.

I tried to write this book with the utmost restraint.

Thomas Dixon, Jr.

May 9, 1902.

Elmington Manor, Dixondale, Va.




LEADING CHARACTERS OF THE STORY

Scene: The Foothills of North Carolina-Boston-New York Time: From 1865
to 1900

Charles Gaston...........Who dreams of a Governor’s Mansion

Sallie Worth.............A daughter of the old fashioned South

Gen. Daniel Worth..................................Her father

Mrs. Worth...........................................Sallie’s mother

The Rev. John Durham.........A preacher who threw his life away

Mrs. Durham........Of the Southern Army that never surrendered

Tom Camp.....................A one-legged Confederate soldier

Flora....................................Tom’s little daughter

Simon Legree........Ex-slave driver and Reconstruction leader

Allan McLeod..............................A Scalawag

Hon. Everett Lowell..........Member of Congress from Boston

Helen Lowell........................His daughter

Miss Susan Walker.................A maiden of Boston

Major Stuart Dameron..............Chief of the Ku Klux Klan

Hose Norman.......................A dare-devil poor white man

Nelse........................A black hero of the old régime

Aunt Eve.....................His wife-“a respectable woman.”

Hon. Tim Shelby...................Political boss of the new era

Hon. Pete Sawyer.........Sold seven times, got the money once

George Harris, Jr............An Educated Negro, son of Eliza

Dick.......................................An unsolved riddle

THE LEOPARD’S SPOTS

BOOK ONE--LEGREE’S REGIME




CHAPTER I--A HERO RETURNS

ON the field of Appomattox General Lee was waiting the return of a
courier. His handsome face was clouded by the deepening shadows of
defeat. Rumours of surrender had spread like wildfire, and the ranks of
his once invincible army were breaking into chaos.

Suddenly the measured tread of a brigade was heard marching into action,
every movement quick with the perfect discipline, the fire, and the
passion of the first days of the triumphant Confederacy.

“What brigade is that?” he sharply asked.

“Cox’s North Carolina,” an aid replied.

As the troops swept steadily past the General, his eyes filled with
tears, he lifted his hat, and exclaimed, “God bless old North Carolina!”

The display of matchless discipline perhaps recalled to the great
commander that awful day of Gettysburg when the Twenty-sixth North
Carolina infantry had charged with 820 men rank and file and left 704
dead and wounded on the ground that night. Company F from Campbell
county charged with 91 men and lost every man killed and wounded.
Fourteen times their colours were shot down, and fourteen times raised
again. The last time they fell from the hands of gallant Colonel Harry
Burgwyn, twenty-one years old, commander of the regiment, who seized
them and was holding them aloft when instantly killed.

The last act of the tragedy had closed. Johnston surrendered to Sherman
at Greensboro on April 26th, 1865, and the Civil War ended,--the
bloodiest, most destructive war the world ever saw. The earth had been
baptized in the blood of five hundred thousand heroic soldiers, and a
new map of the world had been made.

The ragged troops were straggling home from Greensboro and Appomattox
along the country roads. There were no mails, telegraph lines or
railroads. The men were telling the story of the surrender. White-faced
women dressed in coarse homespun met them at their doors and with
quivering lips heard the news.

Surrender!

A new word in the vocabulary of the South--a word so terrible in its
meaning that the date of its birth was to be the landmark of time.
Henceforth all events would be reckoned from this; “before the
Surrender,” or “after the Surrender.”

Desolation everywhere marked the end of an era. Not a cow, a sheep, a
horse, a fowl, or a sign of animal life save here and there a stray dog,
to be seen. Grim chimneys marked the site of once fair homes. Hedgerows
of tangled blackberry briar and bushes showed where a fence had stood
before war breathed upon the land with its breath of fire and harrowed
it with teeth of steel.

These tramping soldiers looked worn and dispirited. Their shoulders
stooped, they were dirty and hungry. They looked worse than they felt,
and they felt that the end of the world had come.

They had answered those awful commands to charge without a murmur; and
then, rolled back upon a sea of blood, they charged again over the dead
bodies of their comrades. When repulsed the second time and the mad
cry for a third charge from some desperate commander had rung over the
field, still without a word they pulled their old ragged hats down close
over their eyes as though to shut out the hail of bullets, and, through
level sheets of blinding flame, walked straight into the jaws of hell.
This had been easy. Now their feet seemed to falter as though they were
not sure of the road.

In every one of these soldier’s hearts, and over all the earth hung the
shadow of the freed Negro, transformed by the exigency of war from a
Chattel to be bought and sold into a possible Beast to be feared and
guarded. Around this dusky figure every white man’s soul was keeping its
grim vigil.

North Carolina, the typical American Democracy, had loved peace and
sought in vain to stand between the mad passions of the Cavalier of the
South and the Puritan fanatic of the North. She entered the war at last
with a sorrowful heart but a soul clear in the sense of tragic duty. She
sent more boys to the front than any other state of the Confederacy--and
left more dead on the field. She made the last charge and fired the last
volley for Lee’s army at Appomattox.

These were the ragged country boys who were slowly tramping homeward.
The group whose fortunes we are to follow were marching toward the
little village of Hambright that nestled in the foothills of the Blue
Ridge under the shadows of King’s Mountain. They were the sons of
the men who had first declared their independence of Great Britain in
America and had made their country a hornet’s nest for Lord Cornwallis
in the darkest days of the cause of Liberty. What tongue can tell the
tragic story of their humble home coming?

In rich Northern cities could be heard the boom of guns, the scream of
steam whistles, the shouts of surging hosts greeting returning regiments
crowned with victory. From every flag-staff fluttered proudly the flag
that our fathers had lifted in the sky--the flag that had never met
defeat.

It is little wonder that in this hour of triumph the world should
forget the defeated soldiers who without a dollar in their pockets were
tramping to their ruined homes.

Yet Nature did not seem to know of sorrow or death. Birds were singing
their love songs from the hedgerows, the fields were clothed in
gorgeous robes of wild flowers beneath which forget-me-nots spread their
contrasting hues of blue, while life was busy in bud and starting leaf
reclothing the blood-stained earth in radiant beauty.

As the sun was setting behind the peaks of the Blue Ridge, a giant negro
entered the village of Ham-bright. He walked rapidly down one of the
principal streets, passed the court house square unobserved in the
gathering twilight, and three blocks further along paused before a
law-office that stood in the corner of a beautiful lawn filled with
shrubbery and flowers.

“Dars de ole home, praise de Lawd! En now I’se erfeard ter see my Missy,
en tell her Marse Charles’s daid. Hit’ll kill her! Lawd hab mussy on my
po black soul! How kin I!”

He walked softly up the alley that led toward the kitchen past the “big”
 house, which after all was a modest cottage boarded up and down with
weatherstrips nestling amid a labyrinth of climbing roses, honeysuckles,
fruit bearing shrubbery and balsam trees. The negro had no difficulty in
concealing his movements as he passed.

“Lordy, dars Missy watchin’ at de winder! How pale she look! En she
wuz de purties’ bride in de two counties! God-der-mighty, I mus’ git
somebody ter he’p me! I nebber tell her! She drap daid right ’fore
my eyes, en liant me twell I die. I run fetch de Preacher, Marse John
Durham, he kin tell her.”

A few moments later he was knocking at the door of the parsonage of the
Baptist church.

“Nelse! At last! I knew you’d come!”

“Yassir, Marse John, I’se home. Hit’s me.”

“And your Master is dead. I was sure of it, but I never dared tell your
Mistress. You came for me to help you tell her. People said you had gone
over into the promised land of freedom and forgotten your people; but
Nelse, I never believed it of you and I’m doubly glad to shake your hand
to-night because you’ve brought a brave message from heroic lips and
because you have brought a braver message in your honest black face of
faith and duty and life and love.”

“Thankee Marse John, I wuz erbleeged ter come home.”

The Preacher stepped into the hall and called the servant from the
kitchen.

“Aunt Mary, when your Mistress returns tell her I’ve received an urgent
call and will not be at home for supper.”

“I’ll be ready in a minute, Nelse,” he said, as he disappeared into the
study. When he reached his desk, he paused and looked about the room in
a helpless way as though trying to find some half forgotten volume in
the rows of books that lined the walls and lay in piles on his desk and
tables. He knelt beside the desk and prayed. When he rose there was a
soft light in his eyes that were half filled with tears.

Standing in the dim light of his study he was a striking man. He had
a powerful figure of medium height, deep piercing eyes and a high
intellectual forehead. His hair was black and thick. He was a man of
culture, had graduated at the head of his class at Wake Forest College
before the war, and was a profound student of men and books. He was
now thirty-five years old and the acknowledged leader of the Baptist
denomination in the state. He was eloquent, witty, and proverbially
good natured. His voice in the pulpit was soft and clear, and full of a
magnetic quality that gave him hypnotic power over an audience. He had
the prophetic temperament and was more of poet than theologian.

The people of this village were proud of the man as a citizen and loved
him passionately as their preacher. Great churches had called him,
but he had never accepted. There was in his make-up an element of the
missionary that gave his personality a peculiar force.

He had been the college mate of Colonel Charles Gaston whose faithful
slave had come to him for help, and they had always been bosom friends.
He had performed the marriage ceremony for the Colonel ten years before
when he had led to the altar the beautiful daughter of the richest
planter in the adjoining county. Durham’s own heart was profoundly
moved by his friend’s happiness and he threw into the brief preliminary
address so much of tenderness and earnest passion that the trembling
bride and groom forgot their fright and were melted to tears. Thus began
an association of their family life that was closer than their college
days.

He closed his lips firmly for an instant, softly shut the door and was
soon on the way with Nelse. On reaching the house, Nelse went directly
to the kitchen, while the Preacher walking along the circular drive
approached the front. His foot had scarcely touched the step when Mrs.
Gaston opened the door.

“Oh, Dr. Durham, I am so glad you have come!” she exclaimed. “I’ve been
depressed to-day, watching the soldiers go by. All day long the poor
foot-sore fellows have been passing. I stopped some of them to ask about
Colonel Gaston and I thought one of them knew something and would not
tell me. I brought him in and gave him dinner, and tried to coax him,
but he only looked wistfully at me, stammered and said he didn’t know.
But some how I feel that he did. Come in Doctor, and say something to
cheer me. If I only had your faith in God!”

“I have need of it all to-night, Madam!” he answered with bowed head.

“Then you have heard bad news?”

“I have heard news,--wonderful news of faith and love, of heroism and
knightly valour, that will be a priceless heritage to you and yours.
Nelse has returned--”

“God have mercy on me!”--she gasped covering her face and raising her
arm as though cowering from a mortal blow.

“Here is Nelse, Madam. Hear his story. He has only told me a word or
two.” Nelse had slipped quietly in the back door.

“Yassum. Missy, I’se home at las’.”

She looked at him strangely for a moment. “Nelse, I’ve dreamed and
dreamed of your coming, but always with him. And now you come alone to
tell me he is dead. Lord have pity! there is nothing left!” There was a
far-away sound in her voice as though half dreaming.

“Yas, Missy, dey is, I jes seed him--my young Marster--dem bright eyes,
de ve’y nose, de chin, de mouf! He walks des like Marse Charles, he
talks like him, he de ve’y spit er him, en how he hez growed! He’ll be
er man fo you knows it. En I’se got er letter fum his Pa fur him, an er
letter fur you, Missy.”

At this moment Charlie entered the room, slipped past Nelse and climbed
into his mother’s arms. He was a sturdy little fellow of eight years
with big brown eyes and sensitive mouth.

“Yassir--Ole Grant wuz er pushin’ us dar afo’ Richmond Pear ter me lak
Marse Robert been er fightin’ him ev’y day for six monts. But he des
keep on pushin’ en pushin’ us. Marse Charles say ter me one night
atter I been playin’ de banjer fur de boys, Come ter my tent Nelse
fo turnin’ in--I wants ter see you.’ He talk so solemn like, I cut de
banjer short, en go right er long wid him. He been er writin’ en done
had two letters writ. He say, ‘Nelse, we gwine ter git outen dese
trenches ter-morrer. It twell be my las’ charge. I feel it. Ef I falls,
you take my swode, en watch en dese letters back home to your Mist’ess
and young Marster, en you promise me, boy, to stan’ by em in life ez I
stan’ by you.’ He know I lub him bettern any body in dis work, en dat
I’d rudder be his slave dan be free if he’s daid! En I say, ‘Dat I will,
Marse Charles.’

“De nex day we up en charge ole Grant. Pears ter me I nebber see so many
dead Yankees on dis yearth ez we see layin’ on de groun’ whar we brake
froo dem lines! But dey des kep fetchin’ up annudder army back er de
one we breaks, twell bymeby, dey swing er whole millyon er Yankees right
plum behin’ us, en five millyon er fresh uns come er swoopin’ down in
front. Den yer otter see my Marster! He des kinder riz in de air--pear
ter me like he wuz er foot taller en say to his men--’ ‘Bout face, en
charge de line in de rear!’ Wall sar, we cut er hole clean froo dem
Yankees en er minute, end den bout face ergin en begin ter walk backerds
er fightin’ like wilecats ev’y inch. We git mos back ter de trenches,
when Marse Charles drap des lak er flash! I runned up to him en dar wuz
er big hole in his breas’ whar er bullet gone clean froo his heart. He
nebber groan. I tuk his head up in my arms en cry en take on en call
him! I pull back his close en listen at his heart. Hit wuz still. I
takes de swode an de watch en de letters outen de pockets en start
on--when bress God, yer cum dat whole Yankee army ten hundred millyons,
en dey tromple all over us!

“Den I hear er Yankee say ter me ‘Now, my man, you’se free.’ ‘Yassir,
sezzi, dats so,’ en den I see a hole ter run whar dey warn’t no Yankees,
en I run spang into er millyon mo. De Yankees wuz ev’y whar. Pear ter
me lak dey riz up outer de groun’. All dat day I try ter get away fum
’em. En long ’bout night dey ’rested me en fetch me up fo er
Genr’l, en he say, ‘What you tryin’ ter get froo our lines fur, nigger?
Doan yer know yer free now, en if you go back you’d be a slave ergin?’”

“Dats so, sah,” sezzi, “but I’se ’bleeged ter go home.”

“What fur?” sezze.

“Promise Marse Charles ter take dese letters en swode en watch back home
to my Missus en young Marster, en dey waitin’ fur me--I’se ’bleeged
ter go.”

“Den he tuk de letters en read er minute, en his eyes gin ter water en
he choke up en say, ‘Go-long!’

“Den I skeedaddled ergin. Dey kep on ketchin’ me twell bimeby er nasty
stinkin low-life slue-footed Yankee kotched me en say dat I wuz er
dang’us nigger, en sont me wid er lot er our prisoners way up ter ole
Jonson’s Islan’ whar I mos froze ter deaf. I stay dar twell one day er
fine lady what say she from Boston cum er long, en I up en tells her all
erbout Marse Charles and my Missus, en how dey all waitin’ fur me, en
how bad I want ter go home, en de nex news I knowed I wuz on er train er
whizzin’ down home wid my way all paid. I get wid our men at Greensboro
en come right on fas’ ez my legs’d carry me.”

There was silence for a moment and then slowly Mrs. Gaston said, “May
God reward you, Nelse!”

“Yassum, I’se free, Missy, but I gwine ter wuk for you en my young
Marster.”

Mrs. Gaston had lived daily in a sort of trance through those four years
of war, dreaming and planning for the great day when her lover would
return a handsome bronzed and famous man. She had never conceived of
the possibility of a world without his will and love to lean upon. The
Preacher was both puzzled and alarmed by the strangely calm manner she
now assumed. Before leaving the home he cautioned Aunt Eve to watch her
Mistress closely and send for him if anything happened.

When the boy was asleep in the nursery adjoining her room, she quietly
closed the door, took the sword of her dead lover-husband in her lap and
looked long and tenderly at it. On the hilt she pressed her lips in a
lingering kiss.

“Here his dear hand must have rested last!” she murmured. She sat
motionless for an hour with eyes fixed without seeing. At last she rose
and hung the sword beside his picture near her bed and drew from her
bosom the crumpled, worn letters Nelse had brought. The first was
addressed to her.

_“In the Trenches Near Richmond, May 4, 1864._

_“Sweet Wifie:--I have a presentiment to-night that I shall not live to
see you again. I feel the shadows of defeat and ruin closing upon us.
I am surer day by day that our cause is lost and surrender is a word I
have never learned to speak. If I could only see you for one hour, that
I might tell you all I have thought in the lone watches of the night in
camp, or marching over desolate fields. Many tender things I have never
said to you I have learned in these days. I write this last message to
tell you how, more and more beyond the power of words to express, your
love has grown upon me, until your spirit seems the breath I breathe. My
heart is so full of love for you and my boy, that I can’t go into battle
now without thinking how many hearts will ache and break in far away,
homes because of the work I am about to do. I am sick of it all. I long
to be at home again and walk with my sweet young bride among the flowers
she loves so well, and hear the old mocking bird that builds each spring
in those rose bushes at our window._

_“If I am killed, you must live for our boy and rear him to a glorious
manhood in the new nation that will be born in this agony. I love
you,--I love you unto the uttermost, and beyond death I will live, if
only to love you forever._

_“Always in life or death your own,_

_“Charles._”

For two hours she held this letter open in her hands and seemed unable
to move it. And then mechanically she opened the one addressed to
“Charles Gaston, jr.”

“_My Darling Boy:--I send you by Nelse my watch and sword. It will be
all I can bequeath to you from the wreck that will follow the war. This
sword was your great grandfather’s. He held it as he charged up the
heights of King’s Mountain against Ferguson and helped to carve this
nation out of a wilderness. It was a sorrowful day for me when I felt
it my duty to draw that sword against the old flag in defence of my home
and my people. You will live to see a reunited country. Hang this sword
back beside the old flag of our fathers when the end has come, and
always remember that it was never drawn from its scabbard by your
father, or your grandfather who fought with Jackson at New Orleans, or
your great grandfather in the Revolution, save in the cause of justice
and right. I am not fighting to hold slaves in bondage. I am fighting
for the inalienable rights of my people under the Constitution our
fathers created. It may be we have outgrown this Constitution. But I
calmly leave to God and history the question as to who is right in its
interpretation. Whatever you do in life, first, last and always do what
you believe to be right. Everything else is of little importance. With a
heart full of love, Your father,_

_“Charles Gaston.”_

*****

This letter she must have held open for hours, for it was two o’clock in
the morning when a wild peal of laughter rang from her feverish lips and
brought Aunt Eve and Nelse hurrying into the room.

It took but a moment for them to discover that their Mistress was
suffering from a violent delirium. They soothed her as best they could.
The noise and confusion had awakened the boy. Running to the door
leading into his mother’s room he found it bolted, and with his little
heart fluttering in terror he pressed his ear close to the key-hole
and heard her wild ravings. How strange her voice seemed! Her voice had
always been so soft and low and full of soothing music. Now it was sharp
and hoarse and seemed to rasp his flesh with needles. What could it
all mean? Perhaps the end of the world, about which he had heard the
Preacher talk on Sundays At last unable to bear the terrible suspense
longer he cried through the key-hole, “Aunt Eve, what’s the matter? Open
the door quick.”

“No, honey, you mustn’t come in. Yo Ma’s awful sick. You run out ter
de barn, ketch de mare, en fly for de doctor while me en Nelse stay wid
her. Run honey, day’s nuttin’ ter hurt yer.”

His little bare feet were soon pattering over the long stretch of the
back porch toward the barn. The night was clear and sky studded with
stars. There was no moon. He was a brave little fellow, but a fear
greater than all the terrors of ghosts and the white sheeted dead with
which Negro superstition had filled his imagination, now nerved his
child’s soul. His mother was about to die! His very heart ceased to beat
at the thought. He must bring the doctor and bring him quickly.

He flew to the stable not looking to the right or the left. The mare
whinnied as he opened the door to get the bridle.

“It’s me Bessie. Mama’s sick. We must go for the doctor quick!”

The mare thrust her head obediently down to the child’s short arm for
the bridle. She seemed to know by some instinct his quivering voice had
roused that the home was in distress and her hour had come to bear a
part.

In a moment he led her out through the gate, climbed on the fence, and
sprang on her back.

“Now, Bess, fly for me!” he half whispered, half cried through the tears
he could no longer keep back. The mare bounded forward in a swift gallop
as she felt his trembling bare legs clasp her side, and the clatter of
her hoofs echoed in the boy’s ears through the silent streets like the
thunder of charging cavalry. How still the night! He saw shadows under
the trees, shut his eyes and leaning low on the mare’s neck patted her
shoulders with his hands and cried, “Faster. Bessie! Faster!” And then
he tried to pray. “Lord don’t let her die! Please, dear God, and I will
always be good. I am sorry I robbed the bird’s nests last summer--I’ll
never do it again. Please, Lord I’m such a wee boy and I’m so lonely. I
can’t lose my Mama!”--and the voice choked and became, a great sob. He
looked across the square as he passed the court house in a gallop and
saw a light in the window of the parsonage and felt its rays warm his
soul like an answer to his prayer.

He reached the doctor’s house on the further side of the town, sprang
from the mare’s back, bounded up the steps and knocked at the door. No
one answered. He knocked again. How loud it rang through the hall! May
be the doctor was gone! He had not thought of such a possibility before.
He choked at the thought. Springing quickly from the steps to the ground
he felt for a stone, bounded back and began to pound on the door with
all his might.

The window was raised, and the old doctor thrust his head out calling,
“What on earth’s the matter? Who is that?”

“It’s me, Charlie Gaston--my Mama’s sick--she’s awful sick, I’m afraid
she’s dying--you must come quick!”

“All right, sonny, I’ll be ready in a minute.”

The boy waited and waited. It seemed to him hours, days, weeks, years!
To every impatient call the doctor would answer, “In a minute, sonny, in
a minute!”

At last he emerged with his lantern, to catch his horse. The doctor
seemed so slow. He fumbled over the harness.

“Oh! Doctor you’re so slow! I tell you my Mama’s sick--!”

“Well, well, my boy, we’ll soon be there,” the old man kindly replied.

When the boy saw the doctor’s horse jogging quickly toward his home
he turned the mare’s head aside as he reached the court house square,
roused the Preacher, and between his sobs told the story of his mother’s
illness. Mrs. Durham had lost her only boy two years before. Soon
Charlie was sobbing in her arms.

“You poor little darling, out by yourself so late at night, were you not
scared?” she asked as she kissed the tears from his eyes.

“Yessum, I was scared, but I had to go for the doctor. I want you and
Dr. Durham to come as quick as you can. I’m afraid to go home. I’m
afraid she’s dead, or I’ll hear her laugh that awful way I heard
to-night.”

“Of course we will come, dear, right away. We will be there almost as
soon as you can get to the house.”

He rode slowly along the silent street looking back now and then for the
Preacher and his wife. As he was passing a small deserted house he saw
to his horror a ragged man peering into the open window. Before he had
time to run, the man stepped quickly up to the mare and said, “Who lived
here last, little man?”

“Old Miss Spurlin,” answered the boy.

“Where is she now?”

“She’s dead.”

The man sighed, and the boy saw by his gray uniform that he was a
soldier just back from the war, and he quickly added, “Folks said they
had a hard time, but Preacher Durham helped them lots when they had
nothing to eat.”

“So my poor old mother’s dead. I was afraid of it.” He seemed to be
talking to himself. “And do you know where her gal is that lived with
her?”

“She’s in a little house down in the woods below town. They say she’s a
bad woman, and my Mama would never let me go near her.”

The man flinched as though struck with a knife, steadied himself for
a moment with his hands on the mare’s neck and said, “You’re a brave
little one to be out alone this time o’night,--what’s your name?”

“Charles Gaston.”

“Then you’re my Colonel’s boy--many a time I followed him where men were
failin’ like leaves--I wish to God I was with him now in the ground!
Don’t tell anybody you saw me,--them that knowed me will think I’m dead,
and it’s better so.”

“Good-bye, sir,” said the child “I’m sorry for you if you’ve got no
home. I’m after the doctor for my Mama,--she’s very sick. I’m afraid
she’s going to die, and if you ever pray I wish you’d pray for her.”

The soldier came closer. “I wish I knew how to pray, my boy. But it
seemed to me I forgot everything that was good in the war, and there’s
nothin’ left but death and hell. But I’ll not forget you, good-bye!”
 When Charlie was in bed, he lay an hour with wide staring eyes, holding
his breath now and then to catch the faintest sound from his mother’s
room. All was quiet at last and he fell asleep. But he was no longer a
child. The shadow of a great sorrow had enveloped his soul and clothed
him with the dignity and fellowship of the mystery of pain.




CHAPTER II--A LIGHT SHINING IN DARKNESS

IN the rear of Mrs. Gaston’s place, there stood in the midst of an
orchard a log house of two rooms, with hallway between them. There was
a mud-thatched wooden chimney at each end, and from the back of the
hallway a kitchen extension of the same material with another mud
chimney. The house stood in the middle of a ten acre lot, and a woman
was busy in the garden with a little girl, planting seed.

“Hurry up Annie, less finish this in time to fix up a fine dinner er
greens and turnips an’taters an a chicken. Yer Pappy’ll get home
to-day sure. Colonel Gaston’s Nelse come last night. Yer Pappy was in
the Colonel’s regiment an’ Nelse said he passed him on the road comin’
with two one-legged soldiers. He ain’t got but one leg, he says. But,
Lord, if there’s a piece of him left we’ll praise God an’ be thankful
for what we’ve got.”

“Maw, how did he look? I mos’ forgot--’s been so long sence I seed
him?” asked the child.

“Look! Honey! He was the handsomest man in Campbell county! He had a
tall fine figure, brown curly beard, and the sweetest mouth that was
always smilin’ at me, an’ his eyes twinklin’ over somethin’ funny he’d
seed or thought about. When he was young ev’ry gal around here was crazy
about him. I got him all right, an’ he got me too. Oh me! I can’t help
but cry, to think he’s been gone so long. But he’s comin’ to-day! I jes
feel it in my bones.”

“Look a yonder, Maw, what a skeer-crow ridin’ er ole hoss!” cried the
girl, looking suddenly toward the road.

“Glory to God! It’s Tom!” she shouted, snatching her old faded
sun-bonnet off her head and fairly flying across the field to the gate,
her cheeks aflame, her blond hair tumbling over her shoulders, her eyes
wet with tears.

Tom was entering the gate of his modest home in as fine style as
possible, seated proudly on a stack of bones that had once been a horse,
an old piece of wool on his head that once had been a hat, and a wooden
peg fitted into a stump where once was a leg. His face was pale and
stained with the red dust of the hill roads, and his beard, now iron
grey, and his ragged buttonless uniform were covered with dirt. He was
truly a sight to scare crows, if not of interest to buzzards. But to the
woman whose swift feet were hurrying to his side, and whose lips were
muttering half articulate cries of love, he was the knightliest figure
that ever rode in the lists before the assembled beauty of the world.

“Oh! Tom, Tom, Tom, my ole man! You’ve come at last!” she sobbed as
she threw her arms around his neck, drew him from the horse and fairly
smothered him with kisses.

“Look out, ole woman, you’ll break my new leg!” cried Tom when he could
get breath.

“I don’t care,--I’ll get you another one,” she laughed through her
tears.

“Look out there again you’re smashing my game shoulder. Got er Minie
ball in that one.”

“Well your mouth’s all right I see,” cried the delighted woman, as she
kissed and kissed him.

“Say, Annie, don’t be so greedy, give me a chance at my young one.”
 Tom’s eyes were devouring the excited girl who had drawn nearer.

“Come and kiss your Pappy and tell him how glad you are to see him!”
 said Tom, gathering her in his arms and attempting to carry her to the
house.

He stumbled and fell. In a moment the strong arms of his wife were about
him and she was helping him into the house.

She laid him tenderly on the bed, petted him and cried over him. “My
poor old man, he’s all shot and cut to pieces. You’re so weak, Tom--I
can’t believe it. You were so strong. But we’ll take care of you. Don’t
you worry. You just sleep a week and then rest all summer and watch us
work the garden for you!”

He lay still for a few moments with a smile playing around his lips.

“Lord, ole woman, you don’t know how nice it is to be petted like that,
to hear a woman’s voice, feel her breath on your face and the touch of
her hand, warm and soft after four years sleeping on dirt and living
with men and mules, and fightin’ and runnin’ and diggin’ trenches like
rats and moles, killin’ men, buryin’ the dead like carrion, holdin’ men
while doctors sawed their legs off, till your turn came to be held and
sawed! You can’t believe it, but this is the first feather bed I’ve
touched in four years.”

“Well, well!--Bless God it’s over now,” she cried. “S’long as I’ve got
two strong arms to slave for you--as long as there’s a piece of you left
big enough to hold on to--I’ll work for you,” and again she bent low
over his pale face, and crooned over him as she had so often done over
his baby in those four lonely years of war and poverty.

Suddenly Tom pushed her aside and sprang up in bed.

“Geemimy, Annie, I forgot my pardners--there’s two more peg-legs out at
the gate by this time waiting for us to get through huggin’ and carryin’
on before they come in. Run, fetch’em in quick!”

Tom struggled to his feet and met them at the door.

“Come right into my palace, boys. I’ve seen some fine places in my time,
but this is the handsomest one I ever set eyes on. Now, Annie, put the
big pot in the little one and don’t stand back for expenses. Let’s have
a dinner these fellers’ll never forget.”

It was a feast they never forgot. Tom’s wife had raised a brood of early
chickens, and managed to keep them from being stolen. She killed four of
them and cooked them as only a Southern woman knows how. She had sweet
potatoes carefully saved in the mound against the kitchen chimney. There
were turnips and greens and radishes, young onions and lettuce and hot
corn dodgers fit for a king; and in the centre of the table she deftly
fixed a pot of wild flowers little Annie had gathered. She did not tell
them that it was the last peck of potatoes and the last pound of meal.
This belonged to the morrow. To-day they would live.

They laughed and joked over this splendid banquet, and told stories of
days and nights of hunger and exhaustion, when they had filled their
empty stomachs with dreams of home.

“Miss Camp, you’ve got the best husband in seven states, did you know
that?” asked one of the soldiers, a mere boy.

“Of course she’ll agree to that, sonny,” laughed Tom.

“Well it’s so. If it hadn’t been for him, M’am, we’d a been peggin’
along somewhere way up in Virginny ‘stead o’ bein’ so close to home. You
see he let us ride his hoss a mile and then he’d ride a mile. We took it
turn about, and here we are.”

“Tom, how in this world did you get that horse?” asked his wife.

“Honey, I got him on my good looks,” said he with a wink. “You see I was
a settin’ out there in the sun the day o’ the surrender. I was sorter
cryin’ and wonderin’ how I’d get home with that stump of wood instead
of a foot, when along come a chunky heavy set Yankee General, looking as
glum as though his folks had surrendered instead of Marse Robert. He saw
me, stopped, looked at me a minute right hard and says, ‘Where do you
live?’”

“Way down in ole No’th Caliny,” I says, “at Ham-bright, not far from
King’s Mountain.”

“How are you going to get home?” says he.

“God knows, I don’t, General. I got a wife and baby down there I ain’t
seed fer nigh four years, and I want to see ’em so bad I can taste
’em. I was lookin’ the other way when I said that, fer I was purty
well played out, and feelin’ weak and watery about the eyes, an’ I
didn’t want no Yankee General to see water in my eyes.”

“He called a feller to him and sorter snapped out to him, ‘Go bring the
best horse you can spare for this man and give it to him’.”

“Then he turns to me and seed I was all choked up and couldn’t say
nothin’ and says:

“I’m General Grant. Give my love to your folks when you get home. I’ve
known what it was to be a poor white man down South myself once for
awhile.”

“God bless you, General. I thanks you from the bottom of my heart,” I
says as quick as I could find my tongue, “if it had to be surrender I’m
glad it was to such a man as you.”

“He never said another word, but just walked slow along smoking a big
cigar. So ole woman, you know the reason I named that hoss, ‘General
Grant.’ It may be I have seen finer hosses than that one, but I couldn’t
recollect anything about ’em on the road home.”

Dinner over, Tom’s comrades rose and looked wistfully down the dusty
road leading southward.

“Well, Tom, ole man, we gotter be er movin’,” said the older of the
two soldiers. “We’re powerful obleeged to you fur helpin’ us along this
fur.”

“All right, boys, you’ll find yer train standin’ on the side o’ the
track eatin’ grass. Jes climb up, pull the lever and let her go.”

The men’s faces brightened, their lips twitched. They looked at Tom, and
then at the old horse. They looked down the long dusty road stretching
over hill and valley, hundreds of miles south, and then at Tom’s wife
and child, whispered to one another a moment, and the elder said:

“No, pardner, you’ve been awful good to us, but we’ll get along
somehow--we can’t take yer hoss. It’s all yer got now ter make a livin’
on yer place.”

“All I got?” shouted Tom, “man alive, ain’t you seed my ole woman, as
fat and jolly and han’some as when I married her ’leven years ago?
Didn’t you hear her cryin’ an’ shoutin’ like she’s crazy when I got
home? Didn’t you see my little gal with eyes jes like her daddy’s? Don’t
you see my cabin standin’ as purty as a ripe peach in the middle of the
orchard when hundreds of fine houses are lyin’ in ashes? Ain’t I got ten
acres of land? Ain’t I got God Almighty above me and all around me, the
same God that watched over me on the battlefields? All I got? That old
stack o’ bones that looks like er hoss? Well I reckon not!”

“Pardner, it ain’t right,” grumbled the soldier, with more of cheerful
thanks than protest in his voice.

“Oh! Get off you fools,” said Tom good-naturedly, “ain’t it my hoss?
Can’t I do what I please with him?” So with hearty hand-shakes they
parted, the two astride the old horse’s back. One had lost his right
leg, the other his left, and this gave them a good leg on each side to
hold the cargo straight.

“Take keer yerself, Tom!” they both cried in the same breath as they
moved away.

“Take keer yerselves, boys. I’m all right!” answered Tom, as he stumped
his way back to the home. “It’s all right, it’s all right,” he muttered
to himself. “He’d a come in handy, but I’d a never slept thinkin’ o’
them peggin’ along them rough roads.”

Before reaching the house he sat down on a wooden bench beneath a tree
to rest. It was the first week in May and the leaves were not yet grown.
The sun was pouring his hot rays down into the moist earth, and the heat
began to feel like summer. As he drank in the beauty and glory of the
spring his soul was melted with joy. The fruit trees were laden with
the promise of the treasures of the summer and autumn, a cat-bird was
singing softly to his mate in the tree over his head, and a mocking-bird
seated in the topmost branch of an elm near his cabin home was leading
the oratorio of feathered songsters. The wild plum and blackberry briars
were in full bloom in the fence comers, and the sweet odour filled the
air. He heard his wife singing in the house.

“It’s a fine old world after all!” he exclaimed leaning back and half
closing his eyes, while a sense of ineffable peace filled his soul.
“Peace at last! Thank God! May I never see a gun or a sword, or hear a
drum or a fife’s scream on this earth again!”

A hound came close wagging his tail and whining for a word of love and
recognition.

“Well. Bob, old boy, you’re the only one left. You’ll have to chase
cotton-tails by yourself now.”

Bob’s eyes watered and he licked his master’s hand apparently
understanding every word he said.

Breaking from his master’s hands the dog ran toward the gate barking,
and Tom rose in haste as he recognised the sturdy tread of the Preacher,
Rev. John Durham, walking rapidly toward the house.

Grasping him heartily by the hand the Preacher said, “Tom, you don’t
know how it warms my soul to look into your face again. When you left, I
felt like a man who had lost one hand. I’ve found it to-day. You’re the
same stalwart Christian full of joy and love. Some men’s religion didn’t
stand the wear and tear of war. You’ve come out with your soul like gold
tried in the fire. Colonel Gaston wrote me you were the finest soldier
in the regiment, and that you were the only Chaplain he had seen that he
could consult for his own soul’s cheer. That’s the kind of a deacon
to send to the front! I’m proud of you, and you’re still at your old
tricks. I met two one-legged soldiers down the road riding your horse
away as though you had a stable full at your command. You needn’t
apologise or explain, they told me all about it.”

“Preacher, it’s good to have the Lord’s messenger speak words like them.
I can’t tell you how glad I am to be home again and shake your hand.
I tell you it was a comfort to me when I lay awake at night on them
battlefields, a wonderin’ what had become of my ole woman and the baby,
to recollect that you were here, and how often I’d heard you tell us how
the Lord tempered the wind to the shorn lamb. Annie’s been telling me
who watched out for her them dark days when there was nothin’ to eat.
I reckon you and your wife knows the way to this house about as well
as you do to the church.” Tom had pulled the Preacher down on the seat
beside him while he said this.

“The dark days have only begun, Tom. I’ve come to see you to have you
cheer me up. Somehow you always seemed to me to be closer to God than
any man in the church. You will need all your faith now. It seems to me
that every second woman I know is a widow. Hundreds of families have
no seed even to plant, no horses to work crops, no men who will work
if they had horses. What are we to do? I see hungry children in every
house.”

“Preacher, the Lord is looking down here to-day and sees all this as
plain as you and me. As long as He is in the sky everything will come
all right on the earth.”

“How’s your pantry?” asked the Preacher.

“Don’t know. ‘Man shall not live by bread alone,’ you know. When I hear
these birds in the trees an’ see this old dog waggin’ his tail at me,
and smell the breath of them flowers, and it all comes over me that I’m
done killin’ men, and I’m at home, with a bed to sleep on, a roof over
my head, a woman to pet me and tell me I’m great and handsome, I don’t
feel like I’ll ever need anything more to eat! I believe I could live a
whole month here without eatin’ a bite.”

“Good. You come to the prayer meeting to-night and say a few things
like that, and the folks will believe they have been eating three square
meals every day.”

“I’ll be there. I ain’t asked Annie what she’s got, but I know she’s
got greens and turnips, onions and col-lards, and strawberries in the
garden. Irish taters’ll be big enough to eat in three weeks, and sweets
comin’ right on. We’ve got a few chickens. The blackberries and plums
and peaches and apples are all on the road. Ah! Preacher, it’s my soul
that’s been starved away from my wife and child!”

“You don’t know how much I need help sometimes Tom. I am always giving,
giving myself in sympathy and help to others, I’m famished now and then.
I feel faint and worn out. You seem to fill me again with life.”

“I’m glad to hear you say that, Preacher. I get downhearted sometimes,
when I recollect I’m nothin’ but a poor white man. I’ll remember your
words. I’m goin’ to do my part in the church work. You know where to
find me.”

“Well, that’s partly what brought me here this morning. I want you to
help me look after Mrs. Gaston and her little boy. She is prostrated
over the death of the Colonel and is hanging between life and death.
She is in a delirious condition all the time and must be watched day and
night. I want you to watch the first half of the night with Nelse, and
Eve and Mary will watch the last half.”

“Of course, I’ll do anything in the world I can for my Colonel’s widder.
He was the bravest man that ever led a regiment, and he was a father to
us boys. I’ll be there. But I won’t set up with that nigger. He can go
to bed.”

“Tom, it’s a funny thing to me that as good a Christian as you are
should hate a nigger so. He’s a human being. It’s not right.”

“He may be human, Preacher, I don’t know. To tell you the truth, I have
my doubts. Anyhow, I can’t help it. God knows I hate the sight of ’em
like I do a rattlesnake. That nigger Nelse, they say is a good one. He
was faithful to the Colonel, I know, but I couldn’t bear him no more
than any of the rest of ’em. I always hated a nigger since I was knee
high. My daddy and my mammy hated ’em before me. Somehow, we always
felt like they was crowdin’ us to death on them big plantations, and the
little ones too. And then I had to leave my wife and baby and fight four
years, all on account of their stinkin’ hides, that never done nothin’
for me except make it harder to live. Every time I’d go into battle and
hear them Minie balls begin to sing over us, it seemed to me I could see
their black ape faces grinnin’ and makin’ fun of poor whites. At night
when they’d detail me to help the ambulance corps carry off the dead and
the wounded, there was a strange smell on the field that came from the
blood and night damp and burnt powder. It always smelled like a nigger
to me! It made me sick. Yes, Preacher, God forgive me, I hate ’em! I
can’t help it any more than I can the color of my skin or my hair.”

“I’ll fix it with Nelse, then. You take the first part of the night ’till
twelve o’clock. I’ll go down with you from the church to-night,” said
the Preacher, as he shook Tom’s hand and took his leave.




CHAPTER III--DEEPENING SHADOWS

ON the second day after Mrs. Gaston was stricken a forlorn little boy
sat in the kitchen watching Aunt Eve get supper. He saw her nod while
she worked the dough for the biscuits.

“Aunt Eve, I’m going to sit up to-night and every night with my Mama,
’till she gets well. I can’t sleep for hours and hours. I lie awake
and cry when I hear her talking ’till I feel like I’ll die. I must do
something to help her.”

“Laws, honey, you’se too little. You can’t keep ’wake ’tall. You get
so lonesome and skeered all by yerself.”

“I don’t care, I’ve told Tom to wake me to-night if I’m asleep when
he goes, and I’ll sit up from twelve ’till two o’clock and then call
you.”

“All right, Mammy’s darlin’ boy, but you git tired en can’t stan’ it.”

So that night at midnight he took his place by the bedside. His mother
was sleeping, at first. He sat and gazed with aching heart at her still,
white face. She stirred, opened her eyes, saw him, and imagined he was
his father.

“Dearie-, I knew you would come,” she murmured. “They told me you were
dead; but I knew better. What a long, long time you have been away. How
brown the sun has tanned your face, but it’s just as handsome. I think
handsomer than ever. And how like you is little Charlie! I knew you
would be proud of him!”

While she talked, her eyes had a glassy look, that seemed to take no
note of anything in the room.

The child listened for ten minutes, and then the horror of her strange
voice, and look and words overwhelmed him. He burst into tears and threw
his arms around his mother’s neck and sobbed.

“Oh! Mama dear, it’s me, Charlie, your little boy, who loves you so
much. Please, don’t talk that way. Please look at me like you used to.
There! Let me kiss your eyes ’till they are soft and sweet again!”

He covered her eyes with kisses.

The mother seemed dazed for a moment, held him off at arm’s length, and
then burst into laughter.

“Of course, you silly, I know you. You must run to bed now. Kiss me good
night.”

“But you are sick, Mama, I am sitting up with you.” Again she ignored
his presence. She was back in the old days with her Love. She was
kissing her hand to him as he left her for his day’s work. Charlie
looked at the clock. It was time to give her the soothing drops the
doctor left. She took it, obedient as a child, and went on and on with
interminable dreams of the past, now and then uttering strange things
for a boy’s ears. But so terrible was the anguish with which he watched
her, the words made little impression on his mind. It seemed to him
some one was strangling him to death, and a great stone was piled on his
little prostrate body.

When she grew quiet, at last, and dosed, how still the house seemed!
How loud the tick of the clock! How slowly the hands moved! He had never
noticed this before. He watched the hands for five minutes. It seemed
each minute was an hour, and five minutes were as long as a day. What
strange noises in the house! Suppose a ghost should walk into the room!
Well, he wouldn’t run and leave his Mama; he made up his mind to that.

Some nights there were other sounds more ominous. The town was crowded
with strange negroes, who were hanging around the camp of the garrison.
One night a drunken gang came shouting and screaming up the alley close
beside the house, firing pistols and muskets. They stopped at the house,
and one of them yelled, “Burn the rebel’s house down! It’s our turn
now!”

The terrified boy rushed to the kitchen and called Nelse. In a minute,
Nelse was on the scene. There was no more trouble that night.

“De lazy black debbels,” said Nelse, as he mopped the perspiration from
his brow, “I’ll teach ’em what freedom is.”

The next day when the Rev. John Durham had an interview with the
Commandant of the troops, he succeeded in getting a consignment of corn
for seed, and to meet the threat of starvation among some families whose
condition he reported. This important matter settled, he said to the
officer:

“Captain, we must look to you for protection. The town is swarming with
vagrant negroes, bent on mischief. There are camp followers with you
organizing them into some sort of Union League meetings, dealing out
arms and ammunition to them, and what is worse, inflaming the worst
passions against their former masters, teaching them insolence and
training them for crime.”

“I’ll do the best I can for you Doctor, but I can’t control the camp
followers who are organising the Union League. They live a charmed
life.”

That night, as the Preacher walked home from a visit to a destitute
family he encountered a burly negro on the sidewalk, dressed in an old
suit of Federal uniform, evidently under the influence of whiskey. He
wore a belt around his waist, in which he had thrust, conspicuously, an
old horse pistol.

Standing squarely across the pathway, he said to the Preacher, “Git
outer de road, white man, you’se er rebel, I’se er Loyal Union Leaguer!”

It was his first experience with Negro insolence since the emancipation
of his slaves. Quick as a flash, his right arm was raised. But he took a
second thought, stepped aside, and allowed the drunken fool to pass. He
went home wondering in a hazy sort of way through his excited passions
what the end of it all would be. Gradually in his mind for days this
towering figure of the freed Negro had been growing more and more
ominous, until its menace overshadowed the poverty, the hunger, the
sorrows and the devastation of the South, throwing the blight of its
shadow over future generations, a veritable Black Death for the land and
its people.




CHAPTER IV--MR. LINCOLN’S DREAM

EVERY morning before the Preacher could finish his breakfast, callers
were knocking at the door--the negro, the poor white, the widow, the
orphan, the wounded, the hungry, an endless procession.

The spirit of the returned soldiers was all that he could ask. There was
nowhere a slumbering spark of war. There was not the slightest effort
to continue the lawless habits of four years of strife. Everywhere the
spirit of patience, self-restraint and hope marked the life of the men
who had made the most terrible soldiery. They were glad to be done with
war, and have the opportunity to rebuild their broken fortunes. They
were glad, too, that the everlasting question of a divided Union was
settled and settled forever. There was now to be one country and one
flag, and deep down in their souls they were content with it.

The spectacle of this terrible army of the Confederacy, the memory of
whose battle cry yet thrills the world, transformed in a month into
patient and hopeful workmen, has never been paralleled in history.

Who destroyed this scene of peaceful rehabilitation? Hell has no pit
dark enough, and no damnation deep enough for these conspirators when
once history has fixed their guilt.

The task before the people of the South was one to tax the genius of the
Anglo-Saxon race as never in its history, even had every friendly aid
possible been extended by the victorious North. Four million negroes had
suddenly been freed, and the foundations of economic order destroyed.
Five billions of dollars worth of property were wiped out of existence,
banks closed, every dollar of money worthless paper, the country
plundered by victorious armies, its cities, mills and homes burned, and
the flower of its manhood buried in nameless trenches, or worse still,
flung upon the charity of poverty, maimed wrecks. The task of organising
this wrecked society and marshalling into efficient citizenship this
host of ignorant negroes, and yet to preserve the civilisation of
the Anglo-Saxon race, the priceless heritage of two thousand years of
struggle, was one to appal the wisdom of ages. Honestly and earnestly
the white people of the South set about this work, and accepted the
Thirteenth amendment to the Constitution abolishing slavery without a
protesting vote.

The President issued his proclamation announcing the method of restoring
the Union as it had been handed to him from the martyred Lincoln, and
endorsed unanimously by Lincoln’s Cabinet. This plan was simple, broad
and statesmanlike, and its spirit breathed Fraternity and Union with
malice toward none and charity toward all. It declared what Lincoln had
always taught, that the Union was indestructible, that the rebellious
states had now only to repudiate Secession, abolish slavery, and resume
their positions in the Union, to preserve which so many lives had been
sacrificed.

The people of North Carolina accepted this plan in good faith. They
elected a Legislature composed of the noblest men of the state, and
chose an old Union man, Andrew Macon, Governor. Against Macon was pitted
the man who was now the President and organiser of a federation of
secret oath-bound societies, of which the Union League, destined to play
so tragic a part in the drama about to follow was the type. This man,
Amos Hogg, was a writer of brilliant and forceful style. Before the war,
a virulent Secessionist leader, he had justified and upheld slavery, and
had written a volume of poems dedicated to John C. Calhoun. He had led
the movement for Secession in the Convention which passed the ordinance.
But when he saw his ship was sinking, he turned his back upon the
“errors” of the past, professed the most loyal Union sentiments, wormed
himself into the confidence of the Federal Government, and actually
succeeded in securing the position of Provisional Governor of the state!
He loudly professed his loyalty, and with fury and malice demanded that
Vance, the great war Governor, his predecessor, who, as a Union man had
opposed Secession, should now be hanged, and with him his own former
associates in the Secession Convention, whom he had misled with his
brilliant pen.

But the people had a long memory. They saw through this hollow pretense,
grieved for their great leader, who was now locked in a prison cell in
Washington, and voted for Andrew Macon.

In the bitterness of defeat, Amos Hogg sharpened his wits and his pen,
and began his schemes of revengeful ambition.

The fires of passion burned now in the hearts of hosts of cowards, North
and South, who had not met their foe in battle. Their day had come.
The times were ripe for the Apostles of Revenge and their breed of
statesmen.

The Preacher threw the full weight of his character and influence to
defeat Hogg and he succeeded in carrying the county for Macon by an
overwhelming majority. At the election only the men who had voted under
the old regime were allowed to vote. The Preacher had not appeared on
the hustings as a speaker, but as an organizer and leader of opinion
he was easily the most powerful man in the county, and one of the most
powerful in the state.




CHAPTER V--THE OLD AND THE NEW CHURCH

IN the village of Hambright the church was the centre of gravity of
the life of the people. There were but two churches, the Baptist and
the Methodist. The Episcopalians had a building, but it was built by the
generosity of one of their dead members. There were four Presbyterian
families in town, and they were working desperately to build a church.
The Baptists had really taken the county, and the Methodists were
their only rivals. The Baptists had fifteen flourishing churches in the
county, the Methodists six. There were no others.

The meetings at the Baptist church in the village of Hambright were the
most important gatherings in the county. On Sunday mornings everybody
who could walk, young and old, saint and sinner, went to church, and by
far the larger number to the Baptist church.

You could tell by the stroke of the bells that the two were rivals. The
sextons acquired a peculiar skill in ringing these bells with a snap and
a jerk that smashed the clapper against the side in a stroke that spoke
defiance to all rival bells, warning of everlasting fire to all sinners
that should stay away, and due notice to the saints that even an apostle
might become a castaway unless he made haste.

The men occupied one side of the house, the women the other. Only very
small boys accompanying their mothers were to be seen on the woman’s
side, together with a few young men who fearlessly escorted thither
their sweethearts.

Before the services began, between the ringing of the first and second
bells, the men gathered in groups in the church yard and discussed grave
questions of politics and weather. The services over the men lingered in
the yard to shake hands with neighbours, praise or criticise the sermon,
and once more discuss great events. The boys gathered in quiet, wistful
groups and watched the girls come slowly out of the other door, and now
and then a daring youngster summoned courage to ask to see one of them
home.

The services were of the simplest kind. The Singing of the old hymns of
Zion, the Reading of the Bible, the Prayer, the Collection, the Sermon,
the Benediction.

The Preacher never touched on politics, no matter what the event under
whose world import his people gathered. War was declared, and fought for
four terrible years. Lee surrendered, the slaves were freed, and society
was torn from the foundations of centuries, but you would never have
known it from the lips of the Rev. John Durham in his pulpit. These
things were but passing events. When he ascended the pulpit he was the
Messenger of Eternity. He spoke of God, of Truth, of Righteousness, of
Judgment, the same yesterday, to-day and forever.

Only in his prayers did he come closer to the inner thoughts and
perplexities of the daily life of the people. He was a man of remarkable
power in the pulpit. His mastery of the Bible was profound. He could
speak pages of direct discourse in its very language. To him it was
a divine alphabet, from whose letters he could compose the most
impassioned message to the individual hearer before him. Its literature,
its poetic fire, the epic sweep of the Old Testament record of life,
were inwrought into the very fibre of his soul. As a preacher he spoke
with authority. He was narrow and dogmatic in his interpretations of
the Bible, but his very narrowness and dogmatism were of his flesh and
blood, elements of his power. He never stooped to controversy. He simply
announced the Truth. The wise received it. The fools rejected it and
were damned. That was all there was to it.

But it was in his public prayers that he was at his best. Here all the
wealth of tenderness of a great soul was laid bare. In these prayers he
had the subtle genius that could find the way direct into the hearts of
the people before him, realise as his own their sins and sorrows, their
burdens and hopes and dreams and fears, and then, when he had made them
his own, he could give them the wings of deathless words and carry them
up to the heart of God. He prayed in a low soft tone of voice; it was
like an honest earnest child pleading with his father. What a hush fell
on the people when these prayers began! With what breathless suspense
every earnest soul followed him!

Before and during the war, the gallery of this church, which was built
and reserved for the negroes, was always crowded with dusky listeners
that hung spellbound on his words. Now there were only a few, perhaps a
dozen, and they were growing fewer. Some new and mysterious power was at
work among the negroes, sowing the seeds of distrust and suspicion. He
wondered what it could be. He had always loved to preach to these simple
hearted children of nature, and watch the flash of resistless emotion
sweep their dark faces. He had baptised over five hundred of them into
the fellowship of the churches in the village and the county during the
ten years of his ministry.

He determined to find out the cause of this desertion of his church by
the negroes to whom he had ministered so many years.

At the close of a Sunday morning’s service, Nelse was slowly descending
the gallery stairs leading Charlie Gaston by the hand, after the church
had been nearly emptied of the white people. The Preacher stopped him
near the door.

“How’s your Mistress, Nelse?”

“She’s gettin’ better all de time now praise de Lawd. Eve she stay
wid er dis mornin’, while I fetch dis boy ter church. He des so sot on
goin’.”

“Where are all the other folks who used to fill that gallery, Nelse?”

“You doan tell me, you aint heard about dem?” he answered with a grin.

“Well, I haven’t heard, and I want to hear.”

“De laws-a-massy, dey done got er church er dey own! Dey has meetin’ now
in de school house dat Yankee ’oman built. De teachers tell ’em ef
dey aint good ernuf ter set wid de white folks in dere chu’ch, dey got
ter hole up dey haids, and not ’low nobody ter push em up in er nigger
gallery. So dey’s got ole Uncle Josh Miller to preach fur ’em. He
’low he got er call, en he stan’ up dar en holler fur ’em bout er
hour ev’ry Sunday mawnin’ en night. En sech whoopin’, en yellin’, en
bawlin’! Yer can hear ’em er mile. Dey tries ter git me ter go. I tell
’em, Marse John Durham’s preach-in’s good ernuf fur me, gall’ry er no
gall’ry. I tell ’em dat I spec er gall’ry nigher heaven den de lower
flo’ enyhow--en fuddermo’, dat when I goes ter church, I wants ter hear
sumfin’ mo’ dan er ole fool nigger er bawlin’. I can holler myself. En
dey low I gwine back on my colour. En den I tell ’em I spec I aint so
proud dat I can’t larn fum white folks. En dey say dey gwine ter lay fur
me yit.”

“I’m sorry to hear this,” said the Preacher thoughtfully.

“Yassir, hits des lak I tell yer. I spec dey gone fur good. Niggers aint
got no sense nohow. I des wish I own ’em erbout er week! Dey gitten
madder’n madder et me all de time case I stay at de ole place en wuk fer
my po’ sick Mistus. Dey sen’ er Kermittee ter see me mos’ ev’ry day ter
’splain ter me I’se free. De las’ time dey come I lam one on de haid
wid er stick er wood erfo dey leave me lone.”

“You must be careful, Nelse.”

“Yassir, I nebber hurt ’im. Des sorter crack his skull er little ter
show ’im what I gwine do wid ’im nex’ time dey come pesterin’ me.”

“Have they been back to see you since?”

“Dat dey aint. But dey sont me word dey gwine git de Freeman’s Buro
atter me. En I sont ’em back word ter sen Mr. Buro right on en I land
’im in de middle er a spell er sickness, des es sho es de Lawd gimme
strenk.”

“You can’t resist the Freedman’s Bureau, Nelse.”

“What dat Buro got ter do wid me, Marse John?”

“They’ve got everything to do with you, my boy. They have absolute
power over all questions between the Negro and the white man. They can
prohibit you from working for a white person without their consent, and
they can fix your wages and make your contracts.”

“Well, dey better lemme erlone, or dere’ll be trouble in dis town, sho’s
my name’s Nelse.”

“Don’t you resist their officer. Come to me if you get into trouble with
them,” was the Preacher’s parting injunction.

Nelse made his way out leading Charlie by the hand, and bowing his giant
form in a quaint deferential way to the white people he knew. He seemed
proud of his association in the church with the whites, and the position
of inferiority assigned him in no sense disturbed his pride. He was
muttering to himself as he walked slowly along looking down at the
ground thoughtfully. There was infinite scorn and defiance in his voice.

“Bu-ro! Bu-ro! Des let ’em fool wid me! I’ll make ’em see de seben
stars in de middle er de day!”




CHAPTER VI--THE PREACHER AND THE WOMAN OF BOSTON

THE next day the Preacher had a call from Miss Susan Walker of Boston,
whose liberality had built the new Negro school house and whose life and
fortune was devoted to the education and elevation of the Negro race.
She had been in the village often within the year, running up from
Independence where she was building and endowing a magnificent classical
college for negroes. He had often heard of her, but as she stopped
with negroes when on her visits he had never met her. He was especially
interested in her after hearing incidentally that she was a member of a
Baptist church in Boston.

On entering the parlour the Preacher greeted his visitor with the
deference the typical Southern man instinctively pays to woman.

“I am pleased to meet you, Madam,” he said with a graceful bow and
kindly smile, as he led her to the most comfortable seat he could find.

She looked him squarely in the face for a moment as though surprised
and smilingly replied, “I believe you Southern men are all alike, woman
flatterers. You have a way of making every woman believe you think her
a queen. It pleases me, I can’t help confessing it, though I sometimes
despise myself for it. But I am not going to give you an opportunity
to feed my vanity this morning. I’ve come for a plain face to face
talk with you on the one subject that fills my heart, my work among the
Freedmen. You are a Baptist minister. I have a right to your friendship
and co-operation.”

A cloud overshadowed the Preacher’s face as he seated himself. He said
nothing for a moment, looking curiously and thoughtfully at his visitor.

He seemed to be studying her character and to be puzzled by the problem.
She was a woman of prepossessing appearance, well past thirty-five, with
streaks of grey appearing in her smoothly brushed black hair. She was
dressed plainly in rich brown material cut in tailor fashion, and her
heavy hair was drawn straight up pompadour style from her forehead with
apparent carelessness and yet in a way that heightened the impression of
strength and beauty in her face. Her nose was the one feature that gave
warning of trouble in an encounter. She was plump in figure, almost
stout, and her nose seemed too small for the breadth of her face. It was
broad enough, but too short, and was pug tipped slightly at the end. She
fell just a little short of being handsome and this nose was responsible
for the failure. It gave to her face when agitated, in spite of evident
culture and refinement, the expression of a feminine bull dog.

Her eyes were flashing now, and her nostrils opened a little wider
and began to push the tip of her nose upward. At last she snapped out
suddenly, “Well, which is it, friend or foe? What do you honestly think
of my work?”

“Pardon me, Miss Walker, I am not accustomed to speak rudely to a lady.
If I am honest, I don’t know where to begin.”

“Bah! Lay aside your Don Quixote Southern chivalry this morning and talk
to me in plain English. It doesn’t matter whether I am a woman or a man.
I am an idea, a divine mission this morning. I mean to establish a high
school in this village for the negroes, and to build a Baptist church
for them. I learn from them that they have great faith in you. Many of
them desire your approval and co-operation. Will you help me?”

“To be perfectly frank, I will not. You ask me for plain English. I will
give it to you. Your presence in this village as a missionary to the
heathen is an insult to our intelligence and Christian manhood. You come
at this late day a missionary among the heathen, the heathen whose heart
and brain created this Republic with civil and religious liberty for
its foundations, a missionary among the heathen who gave the world
Washington, whose giant personality three times saved the cause of
American Liberty from ruin when his army had melted away. You are a
missionary among the children of Washington, Jefferson, Monroe, Madison,
Jackson, Clay and Calhoun! Madam, I have baptised into the fellowship
of the church of Christ in this county more negroes than you ever saw in
all your life before you left Boston.

“At the close of the war there were thousands of negro members of white
Baptist churches in the state. Your mission is not to proclaim the
gospel of Jesus Christ. Your mission is to teach crack-brained theories
of social and political equality to four millions of ignorant negroes,
some of whom are but fifty years removed from the savagery of African
jungles. Your work is to separate and alienate the negroes from their
former masters who can be their only real friends and guardians. Your
work is to sow the dragon’s teeth of an impossible social order that
will bring forth its harvest of blood for our children.”

He paused a moment, and, suddenly facing her continued, “I should like
to help the cause you have at heart: and the most effective service I
could render it now would be to box you up in a glass cage, such as are
used for rattlesnakes, and ship you back to Boston.”

“Indeed! I suppose then it is still a crime in the South to teach
the Negro?” she asked this in little gasps of fury, her eyes flashing
defiance and her two rows of white teeth uncovering by the rising of her
pugnacious nose.

“For you, yes. It is always a crime to teach a lie.”

“Thank you. Your frankness is all one could wish!”

“Pardon my apparent rudeness. You not only invited, you demanded it.
While about it, let me make a clean breast of it. I do you personally
the honour to acknowledge that you are honest and in dead earnest, and
that you mean well. You are simply a fanatic.”

“Allow me again to thank you for your candour!”

“Don’t mention it, Madam. You will be canonised in due time. In the
meantime let us understand one another. Our lives are now very far
apart, though we read the same Bible, worship the same God and hold the
same great faith. In the settlement of this Negro question you are an
insolent interloper. You’re worse, you are a wilful spoiled child of
rich and powerful parents playing with matches in a powder mill. I
not only will not help you, I would, if I had the power seize you,
and remove you to a place of safety. But I cannot oppose you. You are
protected in your play by a million bayonets and back of these bayonets
are banked the fires of passion in the North ready to burst into flame
in a moment. The only thing I can do is to ignore your existence. You
understand my position.”

“Certainly, Doctor,” she replied good naturedly.

She had recovered from the rush of her anger now and was herself again.
A curious smile played round her lips as she quietly added:

“I must really thank you for your candour. You have helped me immensely.
I understand the situation now perfectly. I shall go forward cheerfully
in my work and never bother my brain again about you, or your people,
or your point of view. You have aroused all the fighting blood in me.
I feel toned up and ready for a life struggle. I assure you I shall
cherish no ill feeling toward you. I am only sorry to see a man of your
powers so blinded by prejudice. I will simply ignore you.”

“Then, Madam, it is quite clear we agree upon establishing and
maintaining a great mutual ignorance. Let us hope, paradoxical as it may
seem, that it may be for the enlightenment of future generations!”

She arose to go, smiling at his last speech.

“Before we part, perhaps never to meet again, let me ask you one
question,” said the Preacher still looking thoughtfully at her.

“Certainly, as many as you like.”

“Why is it that you good people of the North are spending your millions
here now to help only the negroes, who feel least of all the sufferings
of this war? The poor white people of the South are your own flesh and
blood. These Scotch Covenanters are of the same Puritan stock, these
German, Huguenot and English people are all your kinsmen, who stood at
the stake with your fathers in the old world. They are, many of them,
homeless, without clothes, sick and hungry and broken hearted. But one
in ten of them ever owned a slave. They had to fight this war because
your armies invaded their soil. But for their sorrows, sufferings and
burdens you have no ear to hear and no heart to pity. This is a strange
thing to me.”

“The white people of the South can take care of themselves. If they
suffer, it is God’s just punishment for their sins in owning slaves and
fighting against the flag. Do I make myself clear?” she snapped.

“Perfectly, I haven’t another word to say.”

“My heart yearns for the poor dear black people who have suffered so
many years in slavery and have been denied the rights of human beings. I
am not only going to establish schools and colleges for them here, but I
am conducting an experiment of thrilling interest to me which will prove
that their intellectual, moral, and social capacity is equal to any
white man’s.”

“Is it so?” asked the Preacher.

“Yes, I am collecting from every section of the South the most
promising specimens of negro boys and sending them to our great Northern
Universities where they will be educated among men who treat them as
equals, and I expect from the boys reared in this atmosphere, men of
transcendent genius, whose brilliant achievements in science, art and
letters will forever silence the tongues of slander against their race.
The most interesting of these students I have at Harvard now is young
George Harris. His mother is Eliza Harris, the history of whose escape
over the ice of the Ohio River fleeing from slavery thrilled the world.
This boy is a genius, and if he lives he will shake this nation.”

“It may be, Miss Walker. There are more ways than one to shake a nation.
And while I ignore your work, as a citizen and public man,--privately
and personally, I shall watch this experiment with profound interest.”

“I know it will succeed. I believe God made us of one blood,” she said
with enthusiasm.

“Is it true. Madam, that you once endowed a home for homeless cats
before you became interested in the black people?” With a twinkle in his
eye the Preacher softly asked this apparently irrelevant question.

“Yes, sir, I did,--I am proud of it. I love cats. There are over a
thousand in the home now, and they are well cared for. Whose business is
it?”

“I meant no offense by the question. I love cats too. But I wondered if
you were collecting negroes only now, or, whether you were adding other
specimens to your menagerie for experimental purposes.”

She bit her lips, and in spite of her efforts to restrain her anger,
tears sprang to her eyes as she turned toward the Preacher whose face
now looked calmly down upon her with ill-concealed pride.

“Oh! the insolence of you Southern people toward those who dare to
differ with you about the Negro!” she cried with rage.

“I confess it humbly as a Christian, it is true. My scorn for these
maudlin ideas is so deep that words have no power to convey it. But
come,” said the Preacher in the kindliest tone. “Enough of this. I am
pained to see tears in your eyes. Pardon my thoughtlessness. Let us
forget now for a little while that you are an idea, and remember only
that you are a charming Boston woman of the household of our own faith.
Let me call Mrs. Durham, and have you know her and discuss with her the
thousand and one things dear to all women’s hearts.”

“No, I thank you! I feel a little sore and bruised, and social amenities
can have no meaning for those whose souls are on fire with such
antagonistic ideas as yours and mine. If Mrs. Durham can give me any
sympathy in my work I’ll be delighted to see her, otherwise I must go.”

The Preacher laughed aloud.

“Then let me beg of you, never meet Mrs. Durham. If you do, the war
will break out again. I don’t wish to figure in a case of assault and
battery. Mrs. Durham was the owner of fifty slaves. She represents the
bluest of the blue blood of the slave-holding aristocracy of the
South. She has never surrendered and she never will. Wars, surrenders,
constitutional amendments and such little things make no impression
on her mind whatever. If you think I am difficult, you had better not
puzzle your brain over her. I am a mildly constructive man of progress.
She is a Conservative.”

“Then we will say good-bye,” said Miss Walker, extending her small plump
hand in friendly parting. “I accept your challenge which this interview
implies. I will succeed if God lives,” and she set her lips with a snap
that spoke volumes.

“And I will watch you from afar with sorrow and fear and trembling,”
 responded the Preacher.




CHAPTER VII--THE HEART OF A CHILD

MRS. GASTON’S recovery from the brain fever which followed her
prostration was slow and painful. For days she would be quite herself as
she would sit up in bed and smile at the wistful face of the boy who sat
tenderly gazing into her eyes, or with swift feet was running to do her
slightest wish.

Then days of relapse would follow when the child’s heart would ache and
ache with a dumb sense of despair as he listened to her incoherent talk,
and heard her meaningless laughter. When at length he could endure it
no longer, he would call Aunt Eve, run from the house, as fast as his
little legs could carry him, and in the woods lie down in the shadows
and cry for hours.

“I wonder if God is dead?” he said one day as he lay and gazed at the
clouds sweeping past the openings in the green foliage above.

“I pray every day and every night, but she don’t get well. Why does He
leave her like that, when she’s so good!” and then his voice choked into
sobs, and he buried his face in the leaves.

He was suddenly roused by the voice of Nelse who stood looking down on
his forlorn figure with tenderness.

“What you doin’ out in dese woods, honey, by yo’ se’f?”

“Nothin’, Nelse.”

“I knows. You’se er crying ’bout yo Ma.”

The boy nodded without looking up.

“Doan do dat way, honey. You’se too little ter cry lak dat. Yer Ma’s
gittin’ better ev’ry day, de doctor done tole me so.”

“Do you think so, Nelse?” There was an eagerness and yearning in the
child’s voice, that would have moved the heart of a stone.

“Cose I does. She be strong en well in little while when cole wedder
comes. Fros ’ll soon be here. I see whar er ole rabbit been er eatin’
on my turnip tops. Dat’s er sho sign. I gwine make you er rabbit box
ter-morrer ter ketch dat rabbit.”

“Will you, Nelse?”

“Sho’s you bawn. Now des lemme pick you er chune on dis banjer ’fo I
goes ter my wuk.”

Of all the music he had ever heard, the boy thought Nelse’s banjo was
the sweetest. He accompanied the music in a deep bass voice which he
kept soft and soothing. The boy sat entranced. With wide open eyes and
half parted lips he dreamed his mother was well, and then that he
had grown to be a man, a great man, rich and powerful. Now he was the
Governor of the state, living in the Governor’s palace, and his mother
was presiding at a banquet in his honour. He was bending proudly over
her and whispering to her that she was the most beautiful mother in the
world. And he could hear her say with a smile, “You dear boy!”

Suddenly the banjo stopped, and Nelse railed with mock severity, “Now
look at ’im er cryin’ ergin, en me er pickin’ de eens er my fingers
off fur ’im!”

“No, I aint cryin’. I am just listenin’ to the music. Nelse, you’re the
greatest banjo player in the world!”

“Na, honey, hits de banjer. Dats de Jo-bloin’est banjer! En des ter
t’ink--er Yankee gin’er to me in de wah! Dat wuz the fus’ Yankee I
ebber seed hab sense enuf ter own er banjer. I kinder hate ter fight dem
Yankees atter dat.”

“But Nelse, if you were fighting with our men how did you get close to
any Yankees?”

“Lawd child, we’s allers slippin’ out twixt de lines atter night er
carryin’ on wid dem Yankees. We trade ’em terbaccer fur coffee en
sugar, en play cyards, en talk twell mos’ day sometime. I slip out fust
in er patch er woods twix’ de lines, en make my banjer talk. En den yere
dey come! De Yankees fum one way en our boys de yudder. I make out lak I
doan see ’em tall, des playin’ ter myself. Den I make dat banjer moan
en cry en talk about de folks way down in Dixie. De boys creep up closer
en closer twell dey right at my elbow en I see ’em cryin’, some un
’em--den I gin’er a juk! en way she go pluckety plunck! en dey gin ter
dance and laugh! Sometime dey cuss me lak dey mad en lam me on de back.
When dey hit me hard den I know dey ready ter gimme all dey got.”

“But how did you get this banjo, Nelse?”

“Yankee gin’er ter me one night ter try’er, en when he hear me des
fairly pull de insides outen ’er, he ’low dat hit ’ed be er sin
ter ebber sep’rate us. Say he nebber know what ’uz in er banjer.”

Nelse rose to go.

“Now, honey, doan you cry no mo, en I make you dat rabbit box sho, en
erlong ’bout Chris’mas I gwine larn you how ter shoot.”

“Will you let me hold the gun?” the boy eagerly asked.

“I des sho you how ter poke yo gun in de crack er de fence en whisper
ter de trigger. Den look out birds en rabbits!”

The boy’s face was one great smile.

It was late in September before his mother was strong enough to venture
out of the house--six terrible months from the day she was stricken.
What an age it seemed to a sensitive boy’s soul. To him the days were
weeks, the weeks months, the months, long weary years. It seemed to him
he had lived a life-time, died, and was born again the day he saw her
first walking on the soft grass that grew under the big trees at the
back of the house. He was gently holding her by the hand.

“Now, Mama dear, sit here on this seat--you mustn’t get in the sun.”

“But, Charlie, I want to see the flowers on the front lawn.”

“No, no, Mama, the sun is shinin’ awful on that side of the house!”

A great fear caught the boy’s heart. The lawn had grown up a mass of
weeds and grass during the long hot summer and he was afraid his mother
would cry when she saw the ruin of those flowers she loved so well.

How impossible for his child’s mind to foresee the gathering black
hurricane of tragedy and ruin soon to burst over that lawn!

Skillfully and firmly he kept her on the seat in the rear where she
could not see the lawn. He said everything he could think of to please
her. She would smile and kiss him in her old sweet way until his heart
was full to bursting.

“Do you remember, Mama, how many times when you were so sick I used to
slip up close and kiss your mouth and eyes?”

“I often dreamed you were kissing me.”

“I thought you would know. I’ll soon be a man. I’m going to be rich, and
build a great house and you are going to live in it with me, and I am to
take care of you as long as you live.”

“I expect you will marry some pretty girl, and almost forget your old
Mama who will be getting grey.”

“But I’ll never love anybody like I love you, Mama dear!”

His little arms slipped around her neck, held her close for a moment,
and then he tenderly kissed her.

After supper he sought Nelse.

“Nelse, we must work out the flowers in the lawn. Mama wants to see
them. It was all I could do to keep her from going out there to-day.”

“Lawd chile, hit’ll take two niggers er week ter clean out dat lawn.
Hits gone fur dis year. Yer Ma’ll know dat, honey.”

The next morning after breakfast the boy found a hoe, and in the
piercing sun began manfully to work at those flowers. He had worked
perhaps, a half hour. His face was red with heat and wet with sweat. He
was tired already and seemed to make no impression on the wilderness of
weeds and grass.

Suddenly he looked up and saw his mother smiling at him.

“Come here, Charlie!” she called.

He dropped his hoe and hurried to her side. She caught him in her arms
and kissed the sweat drops from his eyes and mouth.

“You are the sweetest boy in the world!”

What music to his soul these words to the last day of his life!

“I was afraid when you saw all these weeds you would cry about your
flowers, Mama.”

“It does hurt me, dear, to see them, but it’s worth all their loss to
see you out there in the broiling sun working so hard to please me. I’ve
seen the most beautiful flower this morning that ever blossomed on my
lawn!--and its perfume will make sweet my whole life. I am going to be
brave and live for you now.”

And she kissed him fondly again.




CHAPTER VIII--AN EXPERIMENT IN MATRIMONY

NELSE was informed by the Agent of the Freedman’s Bureau when summoned
before that tribunal that he must pay a fee of one dollar for a marriage
license and be married over again.

“What’s dat? Dis yer war bust up me en Eve’s marryin’?”

“Yes,” said the Agent. “You must be legally married.”

Nelse chucked on a brilliant scheme that flashed through his mind.

“Den I see you ergin ’bout dat,” he said as he hastily took his leave.

He made his way homeward revolving his brilliant scheme. “But won’t I
fetch dat nigger Eve down er peg er two! I gwine ter make her t’ink
I won’ marry her nohow. I make’er ax my pardon fur all dem little
disergreements. She got ter talk mighty putty now sho nuf!” And he
smiled over his coming triumph.

It was four o’clock in the afternoon when he reached his cabin door on
the lot back of Mrs. Gaston’s home. Eve was busy mending some clothes
for their little boy now nearly five years old.

“Good evenin’, Miss Eve!”

Eve looked up at him with a sudden flash of her eye. “What de matter wid
you nigger?”

“Nuttin’ tall. Des drapped in lak ter pass de time er day, en ax how’s
you en yer son stallin’ dis hot wedder!” Nelse bowed and smiled.

“What ail you, you big black baboon?”

“Nuttin’ tall M’am, des callin’ roun’ ter see my frien’s.” Still smiling
Nelse walked in and sat down.

Eve put down her sewing, stood up before him, her arms akimbo, and gazed
at him steadily till the whites of her eyes began to shine like two
moons.

“You wants me ter whale you ober de head wid dat poker?”

“Not dis evenin’, M’am.”

“Den what ail you?”

“De Buro des inform me, dat es I’se er young han’some man en you’se er
gittin’ kinder ole en fat, dat we aint married nohow. En dey gimme er
paper fur er dollar dat allow me ter marry de young lady er my choice.
Dat sho is er great Buro!”

“We aint married?”

“Nob-um.”

“Atter we stan’ up dar befo’ Marse John Durham en say des what all dem
white folks say?”

“Nob-um.”

Eve slowly took her seat and gazed down the road thoughtfully.

“I t’ink I drap eroun’ ter see you en gin you er chance wid de odder
gals fo’ I steps off,” explained Nelse with a grin.

No answer.

“You ’member dat night I say sumfin’ ’bout er gal I know once, en
you riz en grab er poun’ er wool outen my head fo’ I kin move?”

No answer yet.

“Min’ dat time, you bust de biscuit bode ober my head, en lam me wid de
fire-shovel, en hit me in de burr er de year wid er flatiron es I wuz
makin’ fur de do’?”

“Yas, I min’s dat sho!” said Eve with evident satisfaction.

“Doan you wish you nebber done dat?”

“You black debbil!”

“Dat’s hit! I’se er bad nigger, M’am,--bad nigger fo’ de war. En I’se
gittin’ wuss en wuss,” Nelse chuckled.

She looked at him with gathering rage and contempt.

“En den fudder mo, M’am, I doan lak de way you talk ter me sometimes.
Yo voice des kinder takes de skin off same’s er file. I laks ter hear er
’oman’s voice lak my Missy’s, des es sof’ es wool. Sometime one word
from her keep me warm all winter. De way you talk sometime make me cole
in de summer time.”

Nelse rose while Eve sat motionless.

“I des call, M’am, ter drap er little intent inter dem years er yourn,
dat’ll percerlate froo you min’, en when I calls ergin I hopes ter be
welcome wid smiles.”

Nelse bowed himself out the door in grandiloquent style.

All the afternoon he was laughing to himself over his triumph, and
imagining the welcome when he returned that evening with his marriage
license and the officer to perform the ceremony. At supper in the
kitchen he was polite and formal in his manners to Eve. She eyed him
in a contemptuous sort of way and never spoke unless it was absolutely
necessary.

It was about half past eight when Nelse arrived at home with the license
duly issued and the officer of the Bureau ready to perform the ceremony.

“Des wait er minute here at de corner, sah, twell I kinder breaks de
news to ’em,” said Nelse to the officer. He approached the cabin door
and knocked.

It was shut and fastened. He got no response.

He knocked loudly again.

Eve thrust her head out the window.

“Who’s dat?”

“Hits me, M’am, Mister Nelson Gaston, I’se call ter see you.”

“Den you hump yo’se’f en git away from dat do, you rascal.”

“De Lawd, honey, I’se des been er foolin’ you ter day. I’se got dem
licenses en de Buro man right out dar now ready ter marry us. You know
yo ole man nebber gwine back on you--I des been er foolin’.”

“Den you been er foolin’ wid de wrong nigger!”

“Lawd, honey, doan keep de bridegroom er waitin’.”

“Git er way from dat do!”

“G’long chile, en quit yer projeckin’.” Nelse was using his softest and
most persuasive tones now.

“G’way from dat do!”

“Come on, Eve, de man waitin’ out dar fur us!”

“Git away I tells you er I scald you wid er kittle er hot water!”

Nelse drew back slightly from the door.

“But, honey, whar yo ole man gwine ter sleep?”

“Dey’s straw in de barn, en pine shatters in de dog house!” she shouted
slamming the window.

“Eve, honey!”--

“Doan you come honeyin’ me, I’se er spec’able ’oman I is. Ef you wants
ter marry me you got ter come cotin’ me in de day time fust, en bring me
candy, en ribbins en flowers and sich, en you got ter talk purtier’n
you ebber talk in all yo born days. Lots er likely lookin’ niggers come
settin up ter me while you gone in dat wah, en I keep studin’ ’bout
you, you big black rascal. Now you got ter hump yo’se’f ef you eber see
de inside er dis cabin ergin.”

Crestfallen Nelse returned to the officer.

“Wall sah, deys er kinder hitch in de perceedins.”

“What’s the matter?”

“She ’low I got ter come cotin’ her fust. En I spec I is.”

The officer laughed and returned to his home. She made Nelse sleep in
the barn for three weeks, court her an hour every day, and bring her
five cents worth of red stick candy and a bouquet of flowers as a peace
offering at every visit. Finally she made him write her a note and ask
her to take a ride with him. Nelse got Charlie to write it for him, and
made his own boy carry it to his mother. After three weeks of humility
and attention to her wishes, she gave her consent, and they were duly
married again.




CHAPTER IX--A MASTER OF MEN

THE first Monday in October was court day at Hambright, and from every
nook and corner of Campbell county, the people flocked to town.

The court house had not yet been transformed into the farce-tragedy hall
where jail birds and drunken loafers were soon to sit on judge’s bench
and in attorney’s chair instead of standing in the prisoner’s dock. The
merciful stay laws enacted by the Legislature had silenced the cry of
the auctioneer until the people might have a moment to gird themselves
for a new life struggle.

But the black cloud was already seen on the horizon. The people
were restless and discouraged by the wild rumours set afloat by the
Freedman’s Bureau, of coming confiscation, revolution and revenge. A
greater crowd than usual had come to town on the first day. The streets
were black with negroes.

A shout was heard from the crowd in the square, as the stalwart figure
of General Daniel Worth, the brigade commander of Colonel Gaston’s
regiment was seen shaking hands with the men of his old army.

The General was a man to command instant attention in any crowd.
An expert in anthropology would have selected his face from among a
thousand as the typical man of the Caucasian race. He was above the
average height, a strong muscular and well-rounded body, crowned by a
heavy shock of what had once been raven black hair, now iron grey. His
face was ruddy with the glow of perfect health and his full round lips
and the twinkle of his eye showed him to be a lover of the good things
of life. He wore a heavy moustache which seemed a fitting ballast
for the lower part of his face against the heavy projecting straight
eyebrows and bushy hair.

As he shook hands with his old soldiers his face was wreathed in smiles,
his eyes flashed with something like tears and he had a pleasant word
for all.

Tom Camp was one of the first to spy the General and hobble to him as
fast as his peg-leg would carry him.

“Howdy, General, howdy do! Lordy it’s good for sore eyes ter see ye!”
 Tom held fast to his hand and turning to the crowd said, “Boys, here’s
the best General that ever led a brigade, and there wasn’t a man in it
that wouldn’t a died for him. Now three times three cheers!” And they
gave it with a will.

“Ah! Tom you’re still at your old tricks,” said the General. “What are
you after now?”

“A speech General!”--“A speech! A speech!” the crowd echoed.

The General slapped Tom on the back and said, “What sort of a job is
this you’re putting up on me--I’m no orator! But I’ll just say to you,
boys, that this old peg-leg here was the finest soldier that I ever saw
carry a musket and the men who stood beside him were the most patient,
the most obedient, the bravest men that ever charged a foe and crowned
their General with glory while he safely stood in the rear.”

Again a cheer broke forth. The General was hurrying toward the court
house, when he was suddenly surrounded by a crowd of negroes. In the
front ranks were a hundred of his old slaves who had worked on his
Campbell county plantation. They seized his hands and laughed and cried
and pleaded for recognition like a crowd of children. Most of them he
knew. Some of their faces he had forgotten.

“Hi dar, Marse Dan’l, you knows me! Lordy, I’se your boy Joe dat used
ter ketch yo hoss down at the plantation!”

“Of course, Joe! Of course.”

“I know Marse Dan’l aint forget old Uncle Rube,” said an aged negro
pushing his way to the front.

“That I haven’t Reuben! and how’s Aunt Julie Ann?

“She des tollable, Marse Dan’l. We’se bof un us had de plumbago. How is
you all sence de wah?”

“Oh! first rate, Reuben. We manage somehow to get enough to eat and if
we do that nowadays we can’t complain.”

“Dats de God’s truf, Marster sho! En now Marse Dan’l, we all wants you
ter make us er speech en ’splain erbout dis freedom ter us. Dey’s so
many dese yere Buroers en Leaguers round here tellin’ us niggers what’s
er coming’, twell we des doan know nuttin’ fur sho.”

“Yassir dat’s hit! You tell us er speech Marse Dan’l!”

The white men crowded up nearer and joined in the cry. There was no
escape. In a few moments the court house was filled with a crowd.

When he arose a cheer shook the building, and strange as it may seem
to-day, it came with almost equal enthusiasm from white and black.

“I thank you, my friends,” said the General, “for this evidence of your
confidence. I was a Whig in politics. I reckon I hated a Democrat as God
hates sin. I was a Union man and fought Secession. My opponents won. My
state asked me to defend her soil. As an obedient son I gave my life in
loyal service.

“I need not tell you as a Union man that I am glad this war is over.
I have always felt as a business man, a cotton manufacturer as well as
farmer, in touch with the free labour of the North as well as the
slave labour of the South, that free labour was the most economical
and efficient. I believe that terrible as the loss of four billions of
dollars in slaves will be to the South, if the South is only let alone
by the politicians and allowed to develop her resources, she will become
what God meant her to be, the garden of the world. I say it calmly and
deliberately, I thank God that slavery is a thing of the past.”

A whirlwind of applause arose from the negroes. Uncle Reuben’s voice
could be heard above the din.

“Hear dat! You niggers! Dat’s my ole Marster talkin’ now!”

“Let me say to the negroes here to-day, this war was not fought for your
freedom by the North, and yet in its terrific struggle, God saw fit to
give you freedom. Life, liberty and the pursuit of happiness are now
yours and the birthright of your children.

“We need your labour. Be honest, humble, patient, industrious and every
white man in the South will be your friend. What you need now is to
go to work with all your might, build a roof over your head, get a few
acres of land under your feet that is your own, put decent clothes on
your back, and some money in the bank, and you will become indispensable
to the people of the South. They will be your best friends and give you
every right and privilege you are prepared to receive.

“The man who tells you that your old Master’s land will be divided among
you, is a criminal, or a fool, or both. If you ever own land, you will
earn it in the sweat of your brow like I got mine.”

“Hear dat now, niggers!” cried old Reuben.

“The man who tells you that you are going to be given the ballot
indiscriminately with which you can rule your old masters is a criminal
or a fool, or both. It is insanity to talk about the enfranchisement of
a million slaves who can not read their ballots. Mr. Lincoln who set you
free was opposed to any such measure.

“Let me read an extract from a letter Mr. Lincoln wrote me just before
the war.”

The General drew from his pocket a letter in the handwriting of the
President and read:--

“_My Dear Worth:--You must hold the Union men of the South together at
all hazards. The one passion of my soul is to save the Union. In answer
to the question you ask me about the equality of the races I enclose you
a newspaper clipping reporting my reply to Judge Douglas at Charleston,
Sept. 18, 1858. I could not express myself more plainly. Have this
extract published in every paper in the South you can get to print it._”

The General paused and turning toward the negroes said, “Now listen
carefully to every word. Says Mr. Lincoln, _I am not, nor ever have been
in favour of bringing about in any way the social and political equality
of the white and black races! (here is marked applause from a Northern
audience.) I am not, nor ever have been in favour of making voters
or jurors of negroes, nor of qualifying them to hold office, nor to
intermarry with white people. I will say in addition to this that there
is a physical difference between the white and black races which I
believe will forever forbid the two races living together on terms of
social and political equality: and inasmuch as they can not so live,
while they do remain together, there must be the position of the
inferior and superior, and I am, as much as any other man, in favour of
having the superior position assigned to the white race._

“This was Lincoln’s position and is the position of nine-tenths of the
voters of his party. It is insanity to believe that the Anglo-Saxon race
at the North can ever be so blinded by passion that they can assume any
other position.

“Slavery is dead for all time. It would have been destroyed whatever the
end of the war. I know some of the secrets of the diplomatic history of
the Confederacy. General Lee asked the government at Richmond to enlist
200,000 negroes to defend the South, which he declared was their country
as well as ours, and grant them freedom on enlistment. General Lee’s
request was ultimately accepted as the policy of the Confederacy though
too late to save its waning fortunes. Not only this, but the Confederate
government sent a special ambassador to England and France and offered
them the pledge of the South to emancipate every slave in return for
the recognition of the independence of the Confederacy. But when the
ambassador arrived in Europe, the lines of our army had been so broken,
the governments were afraid to interfere.

“The man who tells you that your old masters are your enemies and may
try to reinslave you is a wilful and malicious liar.”

“Hear dat, folks!” yelled old Reuben as he waved his arm grandly toward
the crowd.

“To the white people here to-day, I say be of good cheer. Let politics
alone for awhile and build up your ruined homes. You have boundless
wealth in your soil. God will not forget to send the rain and the dew
and the sun. You showed yourselves on a hundred fields ready to die for
your country. Now I ask you to do something braver and harder. Live for
her when it is hard to live. Let cowards run, but let the brave stand
shoulder to shoulder and build up the waste places till our country is
once more clothed in wealth and beauty.”

The General bowed in closing to a round of applause. His soldiers
were delighted with his speech and his old slaves revelled In it with
personal pride. But the rank and file of the negroes were puzzled. He
did not preach the kind of doctrine they wished to hear. They had hoped
freedom meant eternal rest, not work. They had dreamed of a life of ease
with government rations three times a day, and old army clothes to last
till they put on the white robes above and struck their golden harps in
paradise. This message the General brought was painful to their newly
awakened imaginations.

As the General passed through the crowd he met the Ex-Provisional
Governor, Amos Hogg, busy with the organising work of his Leagues.

“Glad to see you General,” said Hogg extending his hand with a smile on
his leathery face.

“Well, how are you, Amos, since Macon pulled your wool?”

“Never felt better in my life, General. I want a few minutes’ talk with
you.”

“All right, what is it?”

“General, you’re a progressive man. Come, you’re flirting with the
enemy. The truly loyal men must get together to rescue the state from
the rebels who have it again under their heel.”

“So Macon’s a rebel because he licked you?”

“You know the rebel crowd are running this state,” said Hogg.

“Why, Hogg you were the biggest fool Secessionist I ever saw, and Macon
and I were staunch Union men. We had to fight you tooth and nail. You
talk about the truly loyal!”

“Yes but, General, I’ve repented. I’ve got my face turned toward the
light.”

“Yes, I see,--the light that shines in the Governor’s Mansion.”

“I don’t deny it. ‘Great men choose greater sins, ambition’s mine.’
Come into this Union movement with me, Worth, and I’ll make you the next
Governor.”

“I’ll see you in hell first. No, Amos, we don’t belong to the same
breed. You were a Secessionist as long as it paid. When the people you
had misled were being overwhelmed with ruin, and it no longer paid, you
deserted and became ‘loyal’ to get an office. Now you’re organising the
negroes, deserters, and criminals into your secret oath-bound societies.
Union men when the war came fought on one side or the other, because
a Union man was a man, not a coward. If he felt his state claimed his
first love, he fought for his native soil. The gang of plugs you are
getting together now as ‘truly loyal’ are simply cowards, deserters,
and common criminals who claim they were persecuted as Union men. It’s a
weak lie.”

“We’ll win,” urged Hogg.

“Never!” the General snorted, and angrily turned on his heel. Before
leaving he wheeled suddenly, faced Hogg and said, “Go on with your fool
societies. You are sowing the wind. There’ll be a lively harvest. I
am organising too. I’m organising a cotton mill, rebuilding our burned
factory, borrowing money from the Yankees who licked us to buy machinery
and give employment to thousands of our poor people. That’s the way to
save the state. We’ve got water power enough to turn the wheels of the
world.”

“You’ll need our protection in the fight that’s coming,” replied Hogg,
with a straight look that meant much.

The General was silent a moment. Then he shook his fist in Hogg’s face
and slowly said, “Let me tell you something. When I need protection I’ll
go to headquarters. I’ve got Yankee money in my mills and I can get
more if I need it. You lay your dirty claws on them and I’ll break your
neck.”




CHAPTER X--THE MAN OR BRUTE IN EMBRYO

TWO months later General Worth, while busy rebuilding his mills at
Independence, had served on him a summons to appear before the Agent
of the Freedman’s Bureau at Hambright and answer the charge of using
“abusive language” to a freedman.

The particular freedman who desired to have his feelings soothed by
law was a lazy young negro about sixteen years old whom the General
had ordered whipped and sent from the stables into the fields on one
occasion during the war while on a visit to his farm. Evidently the boy
had a long memory.

“Now don’t that beat the devil!” exclaimed the General.

“What is it?” asked his foreman.

“I’ve got to leave my work, ride on an old freight train thirty
miles, pull through twenty more miles of red mud in a buggy to get to
Hambright, and lose four days, to answer such a charge as that before
some little wizeneyed skunk of a Bureau Agent. My God, it’s enough to
make a Union man remember Secession with regrets!”

“My stars, General, we can’t get along without you now when we are
getting this machinery in place. Send a lawyer,” growled the foreman.

“Can’t do it, John--I’m charged with a crime.”

“Well, I’ll swear!”

“Do the best you can, I’ll be back in four days, if I don’t kill a
nigger!” said the General with a smile. “I’ve got a settlement to make
with the farm hands anyhow.”

There was no help for it. When the court convened, and the young negro
saw the face of his old master red with wrath, his heart failed him. He
fled the town and there was no accusing witness.

The General gazed at the Agent with cold contempt and never opened his
mouth in answer to expressions of regret at the fiasco.

A few moments later he rode up to the gate of his farm house on the
river hills about a mile out of town. A strapping young fellow of
fifteen hastened to open the gate.

“Well, Allan, my boy, how are you?”

“First rate, General. We’re glad to see you! but we didn’t make a
half crop, sir, the niggers were always in town loafing around that
Freedman’s Bureau, holding meetings all night and going to sleep in the
fields.”

“Well, show me the books,” said the General as they entered the house.

The General examined the accounts with care and then looked at young
Allan McLeod for a moment as though he had made a discovery.

“Young man, you’ve done this work well.”

“I tried to, sir. If the niggers dispute anything, I fixed that by
making the store-keepers charge each item in two books, one on your
account, and one on an account kept separate for every nigger.”

“Good enough. They’ll get up early to get ahead of you.”

“I’m afraid they are going to make trouble at the Bureau, sir. That
Agent’s been here holding Union League meetings two or three nights
every week, and he’s got every nigger under his thumb.”

“The dirty whelp!” growled the General.

“If you can see me out of the trouble, General, I’d like to jump on him
and beat the life out of him next time he comes out here!”

The General frowned.

“Don’t you touch him,--any more than you would a pole cat. I’ve trouble
enough just now.”

“I could knock the mud out of him in two minutes, if you say the word,”
 said Allan eagerly.

“Yes, I’ve no doubt of it.” The General looked at him thoughtfully.

He was a well knit powerful youth just turned his fifteenth birthday. He
had red hair, a freckled face, and florid complexion. His features
were regular and pleasing, and his stalwart muscular figure gave him a
handsome look that impressed one with indomitable physical energy.
His lips were full and sensuous, his eyebrows straight, and his high
forehead spoke of brain power as well as horse power.

He had a habit of licking his lips and running his tongue around inside
of his cheeks when he saw anything or heard anything that pleased him
that was far from intellectual in its suggestiveness. When he did this
one could not help feeling that he was looking at a young well fed
tiger. There was no doubt about his being alive and that he enjoyed it.
His boisterous voice and ready laughter emphasised this impression.

“Allan, my boy,” said the General when he had examined his accounts, “if
you do everything in life as well as you did these books, you’ll make a
success.”

“I’m going to do my best to succeed, General. I’ll not be a poor white
man. I’ll promise you that.”

“Do you go to church anywhere?”

“No sir, Maw’s not a member of any church, and it’s so far to town I
don’t go.”

“Well, you must go. You must go to the Sunday School too, and get
acquainted with all the young folks. I’ll speak to Mrs. Durham and get
her to look after you.”

“All right, sir, I’ll start next Sunday.” Allan was feeling just then
in a good humour with himself and all the world. The compliment of his
employer had so elated him, he felt fully prepared to enter the ministry
if the General had only suggested it.

The following day was appointed for a settlement of the annual contract
with the negroes. The Agent of the Freedman’s Bureau was the judge
before whom the General, his overseer, and clerk of account, and all the
negroes assembled.

If the devil himself had devised an instrument for creating race
antagonism and strife he could not have improved on this Bureau in its
actual workings. Had clean handed, competent agents been possible it
might have accomplished good. These agents were as a rule the riff-raff
and trash of the North. It was the supreme opportunity of army cooks,
teamsters, fakirs, and broken down preachers who had turned insurance
agents. They were lifted from penury to affluence and power. The
possibility of corruption and downright theft were practically
limitless.

The Agent at Hambright had been a preacher in Michigan who lost his
church because of unsavory rumours about his character. He had eked out
a living as a book agent, and then insurance agent. He was a man of some
education and had a glib tongue which the negroes readily mistook
for inspired eloquence. He assumed great dignity and an extraordinary
judicial tone of voice when adjusting accounts.

General Worth submitted his accounts and they showed that all but six
of the fifty negroes employed had a little overdrawn their wages in
provisions and clothing.

“I think there is a mistake, General, in these accounts,” said the Rev.
Ezra Perkins the Agent.

“What?” thundered the General.

“A mistake in your view of the contracts,” answered Ezra in his oiliest
tone.

The negroes began to grin and nudge one another, amid exclamations of
“Dar now!”

“Hear dat!”

“What do you mean? The contracts are plain. There can be but one
interpretation. I agreed to furnish the men their supplies in advance
and wait until the end of the year for adjustment after the crops were
gathered. As it is, I will lose over five hundred dollars on the farm.”
 The General paused and looked at the Agent with rising wrath.

“It’s useless to talk. I decide that under this contract you are to
furnish supplies yourself and pay your people their monthly wages
besides. I have figured it out that you owe them a little over fifteen
hundred dollars.”

“Fifteen hundred dollars! You thief!”----

“Softly, softly!--I’ll commit you for contempt of court!”

The General turned on his heel without a word, sprang on his horse, and
in a few minutes alighted at the hotel. He encountered the assistant
agent of the Bureau on the steps.

[Illustration: 0097]

“Did you wish to see me, General?” he asked.

“No! I’m looking for a man--a Union soldier not a turkey buzzard!” He
dashed up to the clerk’s desk.

“Is Major Grant in his room?”

“Yes, sir.”

“Tell him I want to see him.”

“What can I do for you, General Worth?” asked the Major as he hastened
to meet him.

“Major Grant, I understand you are a lawyer. You are a man of principle,
or you wouldn’t have fought. When I meet a man that fought us I know I
am talking to a man, not a skunk. This greasy sanctified Bureau Agent,
has decided that I owe my hands fifteen hundred dollars. He knows it’s a
lie. But his power is absolute. I have no appeal to a court. He has all
the negroes under his thumb and he is simply arranging to steal this
money. I want to pay you a hundred dollars as a retainer and have you
settle with the Lord’s anointed, the Rev. Ezra Perkins for me.”

“With pleasure, General. And it shall not cost you a cent.”

“I’ll be glad to pay you, Major. Such a decision enforced against me now
would mean absolute ruin. I can’t borrow another cent.”

“Leave Ezra with me.”

“Why couldn’t they put soldiers into this Bureau if they had to have it,
instead of these skunks and wolves?” snorted the General.

“Well, some of them are a little off in the odour of their records at
home, I’ll admit,” said the Major with a dry smile. “But this is the day
of the carrion crow, General. You know they always follow the armies.
They attack the wounded as well as the dead. You have my heartfelt
sympathy. You have dark days ahead! The death of Mr. Lincoln was the
most awful calamity that could possibly have befallen the South. I’m
sorry. I’ve learned to like you Southerners, and to love these beautiful
skies, and fields of eternal green. It’s my country and yours. I fought
you to keep it as the heritage of my children.”

The General’s eyes filled with tears and the two men silently clasped
each other’s hands.

“Send in your accounts by your clerk. I’ll look them over to-night and
I’ve no doubt the Honourable Reverend Ezra Perkins will see a new light
with the rising of tomorrow’s sun.”

And Ezra did see a new light. As the Major cursed him in all the moods
and tenses he knew, Ezra thought he smelled brimstone in that light.

“I assure you, Major, I’m sorry the thing happened. My assistant did
all the work on these papers. I hadn’t time to give them personal
attention,” the Agent apologised in his humblest voice.

“You’re a liar. Don’t waste your breath.”

Ezra bit his lips and pulled his Mormon whiskers.

“Write out your decision now--this minute--confirming these accounts in
double quick order, unless you are looking for trouble.”

And Ezra hastened to do as he was bidden.

The next day while the General was seated on the porch of the little
hotel discussing his campaigns with Major Grant, Tom Camp sent for him.

Tom took the General round behind his house, with grave ceremony.

“What are you up to, Tom?”

“Show you in a minute! I wish I could make you a handsomer present,
General, to show you how much I think of you. But I know yer weakness
anyhow. There’s the finest lot er lightwood you ever seed.”

Tom turned back some old bagging and revealed a pile of fat pine chips
covered with rosin, evidently chipped carefully out of the boxed place
of live pine trees.

The General had two crochets, lightwood and waterpower. When he got hold
of a fine lot of lightwood suitable for kindling fires, he would fill
his closet with it, conceal it under his bed, and sometimes under his
mattress. He would even hide it in his bureau drawers and wardrobe and
take it out in little bits like a miser.

“Lord Tom, that beats the world!”

“Ain’t it fine? Just smell?”

“Rosin on every piece! Tom, you cut every tree on your place and every
tree in two miles clean to get that. You couldn’t have made me a gift I
would appreciate more. Old boy, if there’s ever a time in your life that
you need a friend, you know where to find me.”

“I knowed ye’d like it!” said Tom with a smile.

“Tom, you’re a man after my own heart. You’re feeling rich enough to
make your General a present when we are all about to starve. You’re a
man of faith. So am I. I say keep a stiff upper lip and peg away. The
sun still shines, the rains refresh, and water runs down hill yet.
That’s one thing Uncle Billy Sherman’s army couldn’t do much with when
they put us to the test of fire. He couldn’t burn up our water power.
Tom, you may not know it, but I do--we’ve got water power enough to turn
every wheel in the world. Wait till we get our harness on it and make
it spin and weave our cotton,--we’ll feed and clothe the human race.
Faith’s my motto. I can hardly get enough to eat now, but better times
are coming. A man’s just as big as his faith. I’ve got faith in the
South. I’ve got faith in the good will of the people of the North.
Slavery is dead. They can’t feel anything but kindly toward an enemy
that fought as bravely and lost all. We’ve got one country now and it’s
going to be a great one.”

“You’re right, General, faith’s the word.”

“Tom, you don’t know how this gift from you touches me.”

The General pressed the old soldier’s hand with feeling. He changed
his orders from a buggy to a two-horse team that could carry all his
precious lightwood.

He filled the vehicle, and what was left he packed carefully in his
valise.

He stopped his team in front of the Baptist parsonage to see Mrs. Durham
about Allan McLeod.

“Delighted to see you, General Worth. It’s refreshing to look into the
faces of our great leaders, if they are still outlawed as rebels by the
Washington government.”

“Ah, Madam, I need not say it is refreshing to see you, the rarest and
most beautiful flower of the old South in the days of her wealth and
pride! And always the same!” The General bowed over her hand.

“Yes, I haven’t surrendered yet.”

“And you never will,” he laughed.

“Why should I? They’ve done their worst. They have robbed me of all.
I’ve only rags and ashes left.”

“Things might still be worse, Madam.”

“I can’t see it. There is nothing but suffering and ruin before us.
These ignorant negroes are now being taught by people who hate or
misunderstand us. They can only be a scourge to society. I am heart-sick
when I try to think of the future!”

There was a mist about her eyes that betrayed the deep emotion with
which she uttered the last sentence.

She was a queenly woman of the brunette type with full face of striking
beauty surmounted by a mass of rich chestnut hair. The loss of her
slaves and estate in the war had burned its message of bitterness into
her soul. She had the ways of that imperious aristocracy of the South
that only slavery could nourish. She was still uncompromising upon every
issue that touched the life of the past.

She believed in slavery as the only possible career for a negro in
America. The war had left her cynical on the future of the new “Mulatto”
 nation as she called it, born in its agony. Her only child had died
during the war, and this great sorrow had not softened but rather
hardened her nature.

Her husband’s career as a preacher was now a double cross to her because
it meant the doom of eternal poverty. In spite of her love for her
husband and her determination with all her opposite tastes to do her
duty as his wife, she could not get used to poverty. She hated it in her
soul with quiet intensity.

The General was thinking of all this as he tried to frame a cheerful
answer. Somehow he could not think of anything worth while to say to
her. So he changed the subject.

“Mrs. Durham, I’ve called to ask your interest in your Sunday School in
a boy who is a sort of ward of mine, young Allan McLeod.”

“That handsome red-headed fellow that looks like a tiger, I’ve seen
playing in the streets?”

“Yes, I want you to tame him.”

“Well, I will try for your sake, though he’s a little older than any boy
in my class. He must be over fifteen.”

“Just fifteen. I’m deeply interested in him. I am going to give him a
good education. His father was a drunken Scotchman in my brigade, whose
loyalty to me as his chief was so genuine and touching I couldn’t help
loving him. He was a man of fine intellect and some culture. His trouble
was drink. He never could get up in life on that account. I have an idea
that he married his wife while on one of his drunks. She is from down in
Robeson county, and he told me she was related to the outlaws who have
infested that section for years. This boy looks like his mother, though
he gets that red hair and those laughing eyes from his father. I want
you to take hold of him and civilise him for me.”

“I’ll try, General. You know, I love boys.”

“You will find him rude and boisterous at first, but I think he’s got
something in him.”

“I’ll send for him to come to see me Saturday.”

“Thank you, Madam. I must go. My love to Dr. Durham.”

The next Saturday when Mrs. Durham walked into her little parlour to see
Allan, the boy was scared nearly out of his wits. He sprang to his feet,
stammered and blushed, and looked as though he were going to jump out of
the window.

Mrs. Durham looked at him with a smile that quite disarmed his fears,
took his outstretched hand, and held it trembling in hers.

“I know we will be good friends, won’t we?”

“Yessum,” he stammered.

“And you won’t tie any more tin cans to dogs like you did to Charlie
Gaston’s little terrier, will you? I like boys full of life and spirit,
just so they don’t do mean and cruel things.”

The boy was ready to promise her anything. He was charmed with her
beauty and gentle ways. He thought her the most beautiful woman he had
ever seen in the world.

As they started toward the door, she gently slipped one arm around him,
put her hand under his chin and kissed him.

Then he was ready to die for her. It was the first kiss he had ever
received from a woman’s lips. His mother was not a demonstrative woman.
He never recalled a kiss she had given him. His blood tingled with the
delicious sense of this one’s sweetness. All the afternoon he sat out
under a tree and dreamed and watched the house where this wonderful
thing had happened to him.




CHAPTER XI--SIMON LEGREE

IN the death of Mr. Lincoln, a group of radical politicians, hitherto
suppressed, saw their supreme opportunity to obtain control of the
nation in the crisis of an approaching Presidential campaign.

Now they could fasten their schemes of proscription, confiscation, and
revenge upon the South.

Mr. Lincoln had held these wolves at bay during his life by the power
of his great personality. But the Lion was dead, and the Wolf, who had
snarled and snapped at him in life, put on his skin and claimed the
heritage of his power. The Wolf whispered his message of hate, and in
the hour of partisan passion became the master of the nation.

Busy feet had been hurrying back and forth from the Southern states to
Washington whispering in the Wolf’s ear the stories of sure success,
if only the plan of proscription, disfranchisement of whites, and
enfranchisement of blacks were carried out.

This movement was inaugurated two years after the war, with every
Southern state in profound peace, and in a life and death struggle
with nature to prevent famine. The new revolution destroyed the Union a
second time, paralysed every industry in the South, and transformed ten
peaceful states into roaring hells of anarchy. We have easily outlived
the sorrows of the war. That was a surgery which healed the body. But
the child has not yet been born whose children’s children will live
to see the healing of the wounds from those four years of chaos, when
fanatics blinded by passion, armed millions of ignorant negroes and
thrust them into mortal combat with the proud, bleeding, halfstarving
Anglo-Saxon race of the South. Such a deed once done, can never be
undone. It fixes the status of these races for a thousand years, if not
for eternity.

The South was now rapidly gathering into two hostile armies under these
influences, with race marks as uniforms--the Black against the White.

The Negro army was under the command of a triumvirate, the Carpet-bagger
from the North, the native Scalawag and the Negro Demagogue.

Entirely distinct from either of these was the genuine Yankee soldier
settler in the South after the war, who came because he loved its genial
skies and kindly people.

Ultimately some of these Northern settlers were forced into politics
by conditions around them, and they constituted the only conscience
and brains visible in public life during the reign of terror which the
“Reconstruction” régime inaugurated.

In the winter of 1866 the Union League at Hambright held a meeting of
special importance. The attendance was large and enthusiastic.

Amos Hogg, the defeated candidate for Governor in the last election, now
the President of the Federation of “Loyal Leagues,” had sent a special
ambassador to this meeting to receive reports and give instructions.

This ambassador was none other than the famous Simon Legree of Red
River, who had migrated to North Carolina attracted by the first
proclamation of the President, announcing his plan for readmitting the
state to the Union. The rumours of his death proved a mistake. He had
quit drink, and set his mind on greater vices.

In his face were the features of the distinguished ruffian whose cruelty
to his slaves had made him unique in infamy in the annals of the South.
He was now preeminently the type of the “truly loyal”. At the first
rumour of war he had sold his negroes and migrated nearer the border
land, that he might the better avoid service in either army. He
succeeded in doing this. The last two years of the war, however, the
enlisting officers pressed him hard, until finally he hit on a brilliant
scheme.

He shaved clean, and dressed as a German emigrant woman. He wore dresses
for two years, did house work, milked the cows and cut wood for a good
natured old German. He paid for his board, and passed for a sister, just
from the old country.

When the war closed, he resumed male attire, became a violent Union man,
and swore that he had been hounded and persecuted without mercy by the
Secessionist rebels.

He was looking more at ease now than ever in his life. He wore a silk
hat and a new suit of clothes made by a fashionable tailor in Raleigh.
He was a little older looking than when he killed Uncle Tom on his farm
some ten years before, but otherwise unchanged. He had the same short
muscular body, round bullet head, light grey eyes and shaggy eyebrows,
but his deep chestnut bristly hair had been trimmed by a barber. His
coarse thick lips drooped at the corners of his mouth and emphasised
the crook in his nose. His eyes, well set apart, as of old were bold,
commanding, and flashed with the cold light of glittering steel. His
teeth that once were pointed like the fangs of a wolf had been filed by
a dentist. But it required more than the file of a dentist to smooth out
of that face the ferocity and cruelty that years of dissolute habits had
fixed.

He was only forty-two years old, but the flabby flesh under his eyes and
his enormous square-cut jaw made him look fully fifty.

It was a spectacle for gods and men, to see him harangue that Union
League in the platitudes of loyalty to the Union, and to watch the crowd
of negroes hang breathless on his every word as the inspired Gospel of
God. The only notable change in him from the old days was in his speech.
He had hired a man to teach him grammar and pronunciation. He had high
ambitions for the future.

“Be of good cheer, beloved!” he said to the negroes. “A great day is
coming for you. You are to rule this land. Your old masters are to dig
in the fields and you are to sit under the shade and be gentlemen. Old
Andy Johnson will be kicked out of the White House or hung, and the
farms you’ve worked on so long will be divided among you. You can rent
them to your old masters and live in ease the balance of your life.”

“Glory to God!” shouted an old negro.

“I have just been to Washington for our great leader, Amos Hogg. I’ve
seen Mr. Sumner, Mr. Stevens and Mr. Butler. I have shown them that we
can carry any state in the South, if they will only give you the ballot
and take it away from enough rebels. We have promised them the votes in
the Presidential election, and they are going to give us what we want.”

“Hallelujah! Amen! Yas Lawd!” The fervent exclamations came from every
part of the room.

After the meeting the negroes pressed around Legree and shook his hand
with eagerness--the same hand that was red with the blood of their race.

When the crowd had dispersed a meeting of the leaders was held.

Dave Haley, the ex-slave trader from Kentucky who had dodged back and
forth from the mountains of his native state to the mountains of Western
North Carolina and kept out of the armies, was there. He had settled
in Hambright and hoped at least to get the postoffice under the new
dispensation.

In the group was the full blooded negro, Tim Shelby. He had belonged to
the Shelbys of Kentucky, but had escaped through Ohio into Canada before
the war. He had returned home with great expectations of revolutions to
follow in the wake of the victorious armies of the North. He had been
disappointed in the programme of kindliness and mercy that immediately
followed the fall of the Confederacy; but he had been busy day and night
since the war in organising the negroes, in secretly furnishing them
arms and wherever possible he had them grouped in military posts and
regularly drilled. He was elated at the brilliant prospects which
Legree’s report from Washington opened.

“Glorious news you bring us, brother!” he exclaimed as he slapped Legree
on the back.

“Yes, and it’s straight.”

“Did Mr. Stevens tell you so?”

“He’s the man that told me.”

“Well, you can tie to him. He’s the master now that rules the country,”
 said Tim with enthusiasm.

“You bet he’s runnin’ it. He showed me his bill to confiscate the
property of the rebels and give it to the truly loyal and the niggers.
It’s a hummer. You ought to have seen the old man’s eyes flash fire when
he pulled that bill out of his desk and read it to me.”

“When will he pass it?”

“Two years, yet. He told me the fools up North were not quite ready
for it; and that he had two other bills first, that would run the South
crazy and so fire the North that he could pass anything he wanted and
hang old Andy Johnson besides.”

“Praise God,” shouted Tim, as he threw his arms around Legree and hugged
him.

Tim kept his kinky hair cut close, and when excited he had a way of
wrinkling his scalp so as to lift his ears up and down like a mule.
His lips were big and thick, and he combed assiduously a tiny moustache
which he tried in vain to pull out in straight Napoleonic style.

He worked his scalp and ears vigourously as he exclaimed, “Tell us the
whole plan, brother!”

“The plan’s simple,” said Legree. “Mr. Stevens is going to give the
nigger the ballot, and take it from enough white men to give the niggers
a majority. Then he will kick old Andy Johnson out of the White House,
put the gag on the Supreme Court so the South can’t appeal, pass his
bill to confiscate the property of the rebels and give it to loyal men
and the niggers, and run the rebels out.”

“And the beauty of the plan is,” said Tim with unction, “that they are
going to allow the Negro to vote to give himself the ballot and not
allow the white man to vote against it. That’s what I call a dead sure
thing.” Tim drew himself up, a sardonic grin revealing his white teeth
from ear to ear, and burst into an impassioned harangue to the excited
group. He was endowed with native eloquence, and had graduated from a
college in Canada under the private tutorship of its professors. He was
well versed in English History. He could hold an audience of negroes
spell bound, and his audacity commanded the attention of the boldest
white man who heard him.

Legree, Perkins and Haley cheered his wild utterances and urged him to
greater flights.

He paused as though about to stop when Legree, evidently surprised and
delighted at his powers said, “Go on! Go on!”

“Yes, go on,” shouted Perkins. “We are done with race and colour lines.”

A dreamy look came to Tim’s eyes as he continued, “Our proud white
aristocrats of the South are in a panic it seems. They fear the coming
power of the Negro. They fear their Desdemonas may be fascinated again
by an Othello! Well, Othello’s day has come at last. If he has dreamed
dreams in the past his tongue dared not speak, the day is fast coming
when he will put these dreams into deeds, not words.

“The South has not paid the penalties of her crimes. The work of the
conqueror has not yet been done in this land. Our work now is to
bring the proud low and exalt the lowly. This is the first duty of the
conqueror.

“The French Revolutionists established a tannery where they tanned the
hides of dead aristocrats into leather with which they shod the common
people. This was France in the eighteenth century with a thousand years
of Christian culture.

“When the English army conquered Scotland they hunted and killed every
fugitive to a man, tore from the homes of their fallen foes their wives,
stripped them naked, and made them follow the army begging bread, the
laughing stock and sport of every soldier and camp follower! This was
England in the meridian of Anglo-Saxon intellectual glory, the England
of Shakespeare who was writing Othello to please the warlike populace.

“I say to my people now in the language of the inspired Word, ‘All
things are yours!’ I have been drilling and teaching them through the
Union League, the young and the old. I have told the old men that they
will be just as useful as the young. If they can’t carry a musket they
can apply the torch when the time comes. And they are ready now to
answer the call of the Lord!”

They crowded around Tim and wrung his hand.

* * * * *

Early in 1867, two years after the war, Thaddeus Stevens passed through
Congress his famous bill destroying the governments of the Southern
states, and dividing them into military districts, enfranchising the
whole negro race, and disfranchising one-fourth of the whites. The army
was sent back to the South to enforce these decrees at the point of
the bayonet. The authority of the Supreme Court was destroyed by a
supplementary act and the South denied the right of appeal. Mr. Stevens
then introduced his bill to confiscate the property of the white people
of the South. The negroes laid down their hoes and plows and began to
gather in excited meetings. Crimes of violence increased daily. Not
a night passed but that a burning barn or home wrote its message of
anarchy on the black sky.

The negroes refused to sign any contracts to work, to pay rents, or
vacate their houses on notice even from the Freedman’s Bureau.

The negroes on General Worth’s plantation, not only refused to work, or
move, but organised to prevent any white man from putting his foot on
the land.

General Worth procured a special order from the headquarters of the
Freedman’s Bureau for the district located at Independence. When the
officer appeared and attempted to serve this notice, the negroes mobbed
him.

A company of troops were ordered to Hambright, and the notice served
again by the Bureau official accompanied by the Captain of this company.

The negroes asked for time to hold a meeting and discuss the question.
They held their meeting and gathered fully five hundred men from the
neighbourhood, all armed with revolvers or muskets. They asked Legree
and Tim Shelby to tell them what they should do. There was no uncertain
sound in what Legree said. He looked over the crowd of eager faces with
pride and conscious power.

“Gentlemen, your duty is plain. Hold your land. It’s yours. You’ve
worked it for a lifetime. These officers here tell you that old Andy
Johnson has pardoned General Worth and that you have no rights on the
land without his contract. I tell you old Andy Johnson has no right to
pardon a rebel, and that he will be hung before another year. Thaddeus
Stevens, Charles Sumner and B. F. Butler are running this country. Mr.
Stevens has never failed yet on anything he has set his hand. He has
promised to give you the land. Stick to it. Shake your fist in old Andy
Johnson’s face and the face of this Bureau and tell them so.”

“Dat we will!” shouted a negro woman, as Tim Shelby rose to speak.

“You have suffered,” said Tim. “Now let the white man suffer. Times
have changed. In the old days the white man said, ‘John, come black my
boots’! And the poor negro had to black his boots. I expect to see the
day when I will say to a white man, ‘Black my boots!’ And the white man
will tip his hat and hurry to do what I tell him.”

“Yes, Lawd! Glory to God! Hear dat now!”

“We will drive the white men out of this country. That is the purpose of
our friends at Washington. If white men want to live in the South they
can become our servants. If they don’t like their job they can move to
a more congenial climate. You have Congress on your side, backed by a
million bayonets. There is no President. The Supreme Court is chained.
In San Domingo no white man is allowed to vote, hold office, or hold
a foot of land. We will make this mighty South a more glorious San
Domingo.”

A frenzied shout rent the air. Tim and Legree were carried on the
shoulders of stalwart men in triumphant procession with five hundred
crazy negroes yelling and screaming at their heels.

The officers made their escape in the confusion and beat a hasty retreat
to town. They reported the situation to headquarters, and asked for
instructions.




CHAPTER XII--RED SNOW DROPS

THE spirit of anarchy was in the tainted air. The bonds that held
society were loosened. Government threatened to become organised crime
instead of the organised virtue of the community.

The report of crimes of unusual horror among the ignorant and the
vicious began now to startle the world.

The Rev. John Durham on his rounds among the poor discovered a little
negro boy whom the parents had abandoned to starve. His father had
become a drunken loafer at Independence and the Freedman’s Bureau
delivered the child to his mother and her sister who lived in a cabin
about two miles from Hambright, and ordered them to care for the boy.

A few days later the child had disappeared. A search was instituted, and
the charred bones were found in an old ash heap in the woods near this
cabin. The mother had knocked him in the head and burned the body in a
drunken orgie with dissolute companions.

The sense of impending disaster crushed the hearts of thoughtful and
serious people. One of the last acts of Governor Macon, whose office was
now under the control of the military commandant at Charleston, South
Carolina, was to issue a proclamation, appointing a day of fasting and
prayer to God for deliverance from the ruin that threatened the state
under the dominion of Legree and the negroes.

It was a memorable day in the history of the people.

In many places they met in the churches the night before, and held
all-night watches and prayer meetings. They felt that a pestilence
worse than the Black Death of the Middle Ages threatened to extinguish
civilisation.

The Baptist church at Hambright was crowded to the doors with
white-faced women and sorrowful men.

About ten o’clock in the morning, pale and haggard from a sleepless
night of prayer and thought, the Preacher arose to address the people.
The hush of death fell as he gazed silently over the audience for
a moment. How pale his face! They had never seen him so moved with
passions that stirred his inmost soul. His first words were addressed to
God. He did not seem to see the people before him.

“Lord, Thou hast been our dwelling place in all generations.

“Before the mountains were brought forth or ever Thou hadst formed the
earth and the world, even from everlasting to everlasting Thou art God!”

The people instinctively bowed their heads, fired by the subtle quality
of intense emotion the tones of his voice communicated, and many of the
people were already in tears.

“Thou turnest man to destruction: and sayest, return, ye children of
men.”

“Who knowest the power of thine anger?”

“Return, O Lord, how long? and let it repent Thee concerning Thy
servants.”

“Beloved,” he continued, “it was permitted unto your fathers and
brothers and children to die for their country. You must live for her in
the black hour of despair. There will be no roar of guns, no long lines
of gleaming bayonets, no flash of pageantry or martial music to stir
your souls.

“You are called to go down, man by man, alone, naked and unarmed in
the blackness of night and fight with the powers of hell for your
civilisation.

“You must look this question squarely in the face. You are to be put to
the supreme test. You are to stand at the judgment bar of the ages and
make good your right to life. The attempt is to be deliberately made to
blot out Anglo-Saxon society and substitute African barbarism.

“A few years ago a Southern Representative in a stupid rage knocked
Charles Sumner down with a cane and cracked his skull. Now it is this
poor cracked brain, mad with hate and revenge, that is attempting to
blot the Southern states from the map of the world and build Negro
territories on their ruins. In the madness of party passions, for the
first time in history, an anarchist, Thaddeus Stevens, has obtained the
dictatorship of a great Constitutional Government, hauled down its flag
and nailed the Black Flag of Confiscation and Revenge to its masthead.

“The excuse given for this, that the lawmakers of the South attempted to
reinslave the Negro by their enactments against vagrants and provisions
for apprenticeship, is so weak a lie, it will not deserve the notice
of a future historian. Every law passed on these subjects since the
abolition of slavery was simply copied from the codes of the Northern
states where free labour was the basis of society.

“Lincoln alone, with his great human heart and broad statesmanship could
have saved us. But the South had no luck. Again and again in the war,
victory was within her grasp, and an unseen hand snatched it away. In
the hour of her defeat the bullet of a madman strikes down the great
President, her last refuge in ruin!

“God alone is our help. Let us hold fast to our faith in Him. We can
only cry with aching hearts in the language of the Psalmist of old, ‘How
long, O Lord? how long!’

“The voices of three men now fill the world with their bluster--Charles
Sumner, a crack-brained theorist; Thad-deus Stevens, a clubfooted
misanthrope, and B. F. Butler, a triumvirate of physical and mental
deformity. Yet they are but the cracked reeds of a great organ that
peals forth the discord of a nation’s blind rage. When the storm is
past, and reason rules passion, they will be flung into oblivion. We
must bend to the storm. It is God’s will.”

The people left the church with heavy hearts. They were hopelessly
depressed. In the afternoon, as the churches were being slowly emptied,
groups of negroes stood on the corners talking loudly and discussing the
meaning of this new Sunday so strangely observed. It began to snow. It
was late in March and this was an unusual phenomenon in the South.

The next morning the earth was covered with four inches of snow, that
glistened in the sun with a strange reddish hue. On examination it was
found that every snow drop had in it a tiny red spot that looked like
a drop of blood! Nothing of the kind had ever been seen before in the
history of the world, so far as any one knew.

This freak of nature seemed a harbinger of sure and terrible calamity.
Even the most cultured and thoughtful could not shake off the impression
it made.

The Preacher did his best to cheer the people in his daily intercourse
with them. His Sunday sermons seemed in these darkest days unusually
tender and hopeful. It was a marvel to those who heard his bitter and
sorrowful speech on the day of fasting and prayer, that he could preach
such sermons as those which followed.

Occasionally old Uncle Joshua Miller would ask him to preach for the
negroes in their new church on Sunday afternoons. He always went, hoping
to keep some sort of helpful influence over them in spite of their new
leaders and teachers. It was strange to watch this man shake hands with
these negroes, call them familiarly by their names, ask kindly after
their families, and yet carry in his heart the presage of a coming
irreconcilable conflict. For no one knew more clearly than he, that the
issues were being joined from the deadly grip of that conflict of
races that would determine whether this Republic would be Mulatto or
Anglo-Saxon. Yet at heart he had only the kindliest feelings for
these familiar dusky faces now rising a black storm above the horizon,
threatening the existence of civilised society, under the leadership of
Simon Legree, and Mr. Stevens.

It seemed a joke sometimes as he thought of it, a huge, preposterous
joke, this actual attempt to reverse the order of nature, turn society
upside down, and make a thicklipped, flat-nosed negro but yesterday
taken from the jungle, the ruler of the proudest and strongest race of
men evolved in two thousand years of history. Yet when he remembered the
fierce passions in the hearts of the demagogues who were experimenting
with this social dynamite, it was a joke that took on a hellish,
sinister meaning.




CHAPTER XIII--DICK

WHEN Charlie Gaston reached his home after a never-to-be-forgotten day
in the woods with the Preacher, he found a ragged little dirt-smeared
negro boy peeping through the fence into the woodyard.

“What you want?” cried Charlie.

“Nuttin!”

“What’s your name?”

“Dick.”

“Who’s your father?”

“Haint got none. My mudder say she was tricked, en I’se de trick!” he
chuckled and walled his eyes.

Charlie came close and looked him over. Dick giggled and showed the
whites of his eyes.

“What made that streak on your neck?”

“Nigger done it wid er axe.”

“What nigger?”

“Low life nigger name er Amos what stays roun’ our house Sundays.”

“What made him do it?”

“He low he wuz me daddy, en I sez he wuz er liar, en den he grab de axe
en try ter chop me head off.”

“Gracious, he ’most killed you!”

“Yassir, but de doctor sewed me head back, en hit grow’d.”

“Goodness me!”

“Say!” grinned Dick.

“What?”

“I likes you.”

“Do you?”

“Yassir, en I aint gwine home no mo’. I done run away, en I wants ter
live wid you.”

“Will you help me and Nelse work?”

“Dat I will. I can do mos’ anyting. You ax yer Ma fur me, en doan let
dat nigger Nelse git holt er me.” Charlie’s heart went out to the ragged
little waif. He took him by the hand, led him into the yard, found his
mother, and begged her to give him a place to sleep and keep him.

His mother tried to persuade him to make Dick go back to his own home.
Nelse was loud in his objections to the new comer, and Aunt Eve looked
at him as though she would throw him over the fence.

But Dick stuck doggedly to Charlie’s heels.

“Mama dear, see, they tried to cut his head oft with an axe,” cried the
boy, and he wheeled Dick around and showed the terrible scar across the
back of his neck.

“I spec hits er pity dey didn’t cut hit clean off,” muttered Nelse.

“Mama, you can’t send him back to be killed!”

“Well, darling, I’ll see about it to-morrow.”

“Come on Dick, I’ll show you where to sleep!”

The next day Dick’s mother was glad to get rid of him by binding him
legally to Mrs. Gaston, and a lonely boy found a playmate and partner in
work, he was never to forget.




CHAPTER XIV--THE NEGRO UPRISING

THE summer of 1867! Will ever a Southern man or woman who saw it forget
its scenes? A group of oath-bound secret societies, The Union League,
The Heroes of America, and The Red Strings dominating society, and
marauding bands of negroes armed to the teeth terrorising the country,
stealing, burning and murdering.

Labour was not only demoralised, it had ceased to exist Depression
was universal, farming paralysed, investments dead, and all property
insecure. Moral obligations were dropping away from conduct, and a gulf
as deep as hell and high as heaven opening between the two races.

The negro preachers openly instructed their flocks to take what they
needed from their white neighbours. If any man dared prosecute a thief,
the answer was a burned barn or a home in ashes.

The wildest passions held riot at Washington. The Congress of the United
States as a deliberative body under constitutional forms of government
no longer existed. The Speaker of the House shook his fist at the
President and threatened openly to hang him, and he was arraigned for
impeachment for daring to exercise the constitutional functions of his
office!

The division agents of the Freedman’s Bureau in the South sent to
Washington the most alarming reports, declaring a famine imminent. In
reply the vindictive leaders levied a tax of fifteen dollars a bale on
cotton, plunging thousands of Southern farmers into immediate bankruptcy
and giving to India and Egypt the mastery of the cotton markets of the
world!

Congress became to the desolate South what Attila, the “_Scourge of
God_” was to civilised Europe.

The Abolitionists of the North, whose conscience was the fire that
kindled the Civil War, rose in solemn protest against this insanity.
Their protest was drowned in the roar of multitudes maddened by
demagogues who were preparing for a political campaign.

Late in August Hambright and Campbell county were thrilled with horror
at the report of a terrible crime. A whole white family had been
murdered in their home, the father, mother and three children in one
night, and no clue to the murderers could be found.

Two days later the rumour spread over the country that a horde of
negroes heavily armed were approaching Hambright burning, pillaging and
murdering.

All day terrified women, some walking with babes in their arms, some
riding in old wagons and carrying what household goods they could load
on them, were hurrying with blanched faces into the town.

By night five hundred determined white men had answered an alarm bell
and assembled in the court house. Every negro save a few faithful
servants had disappeared. A strange stillness fell over the village.

Mrs. Gaston sat in her house without a light, looking anxiously out
of the window, overwhelmed with the sense of helplessness. Charlie,
frightened by the wild stories he had heard, was trying in spite of his
fears to comfort her.

“Don’t cry, Mama!”

“I’m not crying because I’m afraid, darling, I’m only crying because
your father is not here to-night. I can’t get used to living without him
to protect us.”

“I’ll take care of you, Mama--Nelse and me.”

“Where is Nelse?”

“He’s cleaning up the shot gun.”

“Tell him to come here.”

When Nelse approached his Mistress asked, “Nelse, do you really think
this tale is true?”

“No, Missy, I doan believe nary word uf it. Same time I’se gettin’ ready
fur ’em. Ef er nigger come foolin’ roun’ dis house ter night, he’ll
t’ink he’s run ergin er whole regiment! I hain’t been ter wah fur
nuttin’.”

“Nelse, you have always been faithful. I trust you implicitly.”

“De Lawd, Missy, dat you kin do! I fight fur you en dat boy till I drap
dead in my tracks!”

“I believe you would.”

“Yessum, cose I would. En I wants dat swo’de er Marse Charles to-night,
Missy, en Charlie ter help me sharpen ’im on de grine stone.”

She took the sword from its place and handed it to Nelse. Was there just
a shade of doubt in her heart as she saw his black hand close over its
hilt as he drew it from the scabbard and felt its edge! If so she gave
no sign.

Charlie turned the grindstone while Nelse proceeded to violate the laws
of nations by putting a keen edge on the blade.

“Nebber seed no sense in dese dull swodes nohow!”

“Why ain’t they sharp, Nelse?”

“Doan know, honey. Marse Charles tell me de law doan ’low it, but dey
sho hain’t no law now!”

“We’ll sharpen it, won’t we, Nelse?” whispered the boy as he turned
faster.

“Dat us will, honey. En den you des watch me mow niggers ef dey come er
prowlin’ round dis house!”

“Did you kill many Yankees in the war, Nelse?”

“Doan know, honey, spec I did.”

“Are you going to take the gun or the sword?”

“Bofe um ’em chile. I’se gwine ter shoot er pair er niggers fust, en
den charge de whole gang wid dis swode. Hain’t nuttin’ er nigger’s feard
uf lak er keen edge. Wish ter God I had a razer long es dis swode! I’d
des walk clean froo er whole army er niggers wid guns. Man, hit ’ud
des natchelly be er sight! Day’d slam dem guns down en bust demselves
open gittin’ outen my way!”

When the sun rose next morning the bodies of ten negroes lay dead and
wounded in the road about a mile outside of town. The pickets thrown out
in every direction had discovered their approach about eleven o’clock.
They were allowed to advance within a mile. There were not more than two
hundred in the gang, dozens of them were drunk, and like the Sepoys of
India, they were under the command of a white Scalawag. At the first
volley they broke and fled in wild disorder. Their leader managed to
escape.

This event cleared the atmosphere for a few weeks; and the people
breathed more freely when another company of army regulars marched into
the town and camped in the school grounds of the old academy.




CHAPTER XV--THE NEW CITIZEN KING

OF all the elections ever conducted by the English speaking race the
one held under the “Reconstruction” act of 1867 in the South was the
most unique.

Ezra Perkins the agent of the Freedman’s Bureau issued a windy
proclamation to the new citizens to come forward on a certain day to
register and receive their ‘elective franchise.’

The negroes poured into town from every direction from early dawn. Some
carried baskets, some carried jugs, and some were pushing wheelbarrows,
but most of them had an empty bag. They were packed around the Agency in
a solid black mass.

Nelse laughed until a crowd gathered around him.

“Lordy, look at dem bags!” he shouted. “En dars ole Ike wid er jug.
He’s gwine ter take hisen in licker. En bress God dars er fool wid er
wheel-barer!” Nelse lay down and rolled with laughter.

They failed to see the joke, and when the Agency was opened they made a
break for the door, trampling each other down in a mad fear that there
wouldn’t be enough ‘elective franchise’ to go round!

The first negro who emerged from the door came with a crestfallen face
and an empty bag on his arm.

He was surrounded by anxious inquirers. “What wuz hit?”

“Nuffin. Des stan up dar befo’ er man wid big whiskers en he make me
swar ter export de Constertution er de Nunited States er Nor’f Calliny.”

When Nelse appeared Perkins looked at him a moment and asked, “Are you a
member of the Union League?”

“Dat I hain’t.”

“Then stand aside and let these men register. If you want to vote you
had better join.”

Nelse made no reply, but in a short time he returned with the Rev. John
Durham by his side. He was allowed to register, but from that day he was
a marked man among his race.

When the registration closed Perkins was in high glee.

“We’ve got ’em, Timothy! It’s a dead sure thing!” he cried as he
slipped his arm around Tim’s shoulder.

“Will the majority be big?” asked Tim.

“If it ain’t big enough we’ll disfranchise more aristocrats and
enfranchise the dogs.” Tim wondered whether this proposition was
altogether flattering.

During the progress of the campaign, a committee from the organisation
of the “truly loyal,” Ezra Perkins and Dave Haley, called on Tom Camp.

“Mr. Camp, we want your help as a leader among the poor white people to
save the country from these rebel aristocrats who have ruined it,” said
Ezra.

“You’re barkin’ up the wrong tree!” answered Tom dryly.

“The poor men have got to stand together now and get their rights.”

“Well if I’ve got to stand with niggers, have ’em hug me and blow
their breath in my face, as you fellers are doin’, you can count me
out!--and if that’s all you want with me, you’ll find the door open.”

Haley tried his hand.

“Look here, Camp, we ain’t got no hard feelin’s agin you, but there’s
agoin’ to be trouble for every rebel in this county who don’t git on our
side and do it quick.”

“I’m used to trouble pardner,” replied Tom.

“You’ve got a nice little cabin home and ten acres of land. Fight us,
and we will give this house and lot to a nigger.”

“I don’t believe it,” cried Tom.

“Come, come,” said Perkins, “you’re not fool enough to fight us when
we’ve got a dead sure thing, a majority fixed before the voting begins,
Congress and the whole army back of us?”

“I ain’t er nigger!” said Tom, doggedly.

“What’s the use to be a fool Camp,” cried Haley. “We are just using the
nigger to stick the votes in the box. He thinks he’s goin’ to heaven,
but we’ll ride him all the way up to the gate and hitch him on the
outside. Will you come in with us?”

“Don’t like your complexion!” he answered rising and going toward the
door.

“Then we’ll turn you out into the road in less than two years,” said
Haley as they left.

“All right!” laughed the old soldier, “I slept on the ground four years,
boys.”

When he came back into the room he met his wife with tears in her eyes.
“Oh! Tom, I’m afraid they’ll do what they say.”

“To tell you the truth, ole woman, I’m afraid so too. But we’re in the
hands of the Lord. This is His house. If He wants to take it away from
me now when I’m crippled and helpless, He knows what’s best.”

“I wish you didn’t have to go agin ’em.”

“I ain’t er nigger, ole gal, and I don’t flock with niggers. If God
Almighty had meant me to be one He’d have made my skin black.”

On election day no publication of the polling places had been made.
Ezra Perkins had in charge the whole county. He consolidated the fifteen
voting precincts into three and located these in negro districts. He
notified only the members of the secret Leagues where these three voting
places were to be found, and other people were allowed to find them on
the day of the election as best they could.

Perkins made himself the poll holder at Hambright though he was a
candidate for member of the Constitutional Convention, and the poll
holders were allowed to keep the ballots in their possession for three
days before forwarding to the General in command at Charleston, South
Carolina.

Scores of negroes, under the instructions of their leaders voted three
times that day. Every negro boy fairly well grown was allowed to vote
and no questions asked as to his age.

Nelse approached the polls attempting to cast a vote against the Rev.
Ezra Perkins the poll holder. A crowd of infuriated negroes surrounded
him in a moment.

“Kill ’im! Knock ’im in the head! De black debbil, votin’ agin his
colour!”

Nelse threw his big fists right and left and soon had an open space in
the edge of which lay a half dozen negroes scrambling to get to their
feet.

The negroes formed a line in front of him and the foremost one said,
“You try ter put dat vote in de box we bust yo head open!”

Nelse knocked him down before he got the words well out of him mouth.
“Honey, I’se er bad nigger!” he shouted with a grin as he stepped back
and started to rush the line.

Perkins ordered the guard to arrest him.

As the guard carried Nelse away a crowd of angry negroes followed
grinning and cursing.

“We lay fur you yit, ole hoss!” was their parting word as he disappeared
through the jail door.

That night at the supper table in the hotel at Ham-bright an informal
census of the voters was taken. There were present at the table a
distinguished ex-judge, two lawyers, a General, two clergymen, a
merchant, a farmer, and two mechanics. The only man of all allowed to
vote that day was the negro who waited on the table.

Thus began the era of a corrupt and degraded ballot in the South that
was to bring forth sorrow for generations yet unborn. The intelligence,
culture, wealth, social prestige, brains, conscience and the historic
institutions of a great state had been thrust under the hoof of
ignorance and vice.

The votes were sent to the military commandant at Charleston and the
results announced. The negroes had elected no representatives and the
whites 10. It was gravely announced from Washington that a “republican
form of government” had at last been established in North Carolina.




CHAPTER XVI--LEGREE SPEAKER OF THE HOUSE

THE new government was now in full swing and a saturnalia began. Amos
Hogg was Governor, Simon Legree Speaker of the House, and the Hon. Tim
Shelby leader of the majority on the floor of the House.

Raleigh, the quaint little City of Oaks, never saw such an assemblage of
law-makers gather in the grey stone Capitol.

Ezra Perkins, who was a member of the Senate, was frugal in his habits
and found lodgings at an unpretentious boarding house near the Capitol
square.

The room was furnished with six iron cots on which were placed straw
mattresses and six honourable members of the new Legislature occupied
these. They were close enough together to allow a bottle of whiskey to
be freely passed from member to member at any hour of the night. They
thought the beds were arranged with this in view and were much pleased.

Ezra was the only man of the crowd who arrived in Raleigh with a valise
or trunk. He had a carpet bag. The others simply had one shirt and a few
odds and ends tied in red bandana handkerchiefs.

Three of them had walked all the way to Raleigh and kept in the woods
from habit as deserters. The other two rode on the train and handed
their tickets to the first stranger they saw on the platform of the car
they boarded.

“What’s this for!” said the stranger.

“Them’s our tickets. Ain’t you the door keeper?”

“No, but there ought to be one to every circus. You’ll have one when you
get to Raleigh.”

The landlady, Mrs. Duke, apologised for the poor beds, when she showed
them to their room. “I’m sorry, gentlemen, I can’t give you softer
beds.”

“That’s all right M’am! them’s fine. Us fellows been sleeping in the
woods and in straw stacks so long dodgin’ ole Vance’s officers, them
white sheets is the finest thing we’ve seed in four years, er more.”

They were humble and made no complaints. But at the end of the week they
gathered around the Rev. Ezra Perkins for a grave consultation.

“When are we goin’ ter draw?” said one.

“Air we ever goin’ ter draw?” asked another with sorrow and doubt.

“What are we here fer ef we cain’t draw?” pleaded another looking sadly
at Ezra.

“Gentlemen,” answered Ezra, “it will be all right in a little while. The
Treasurer is just cranky. We can draw our mileage Monday anyhow.”

At daylight they took their places on the bank’s steps, and at ten
o’clock when the bank opened, the doors were besieged by a mob of
members painfully anxious to draw before it might be too late.

Next morning there was a disturbance at the breakfast table. The morning
paper had in blazing head lines an account of one James “Mileage,” who
was a member of the Legislature from an adjoining county thirty-seven
miles distant. He had sworn to a mileage record of one hundred and seven
dollars.

“That’s an unfortunate mistake, sir,” said Perkins.

“Ten’ ter yer own business?” answered James.

“I call it er purty sharp trick,” grinned his partner.

“I call it stealin’,” sneered an honourable member, evidently envious.

And James “Mileage” was his name for all time, but “Mileage” shot a
malicious look at the member who had called him a thief.

The next morning the paper of the Opposition had another biographical
sketch on the front page.

“I see your name in the paper this morning, Mr. Scoggins?” remarked Mrs.
Duke, looking pleasantly at the member who had spoken so rudely to James
“Mileage” the day before.

“Well I reckon I’ll make my mark down here before it’s over,” chuckled
Scoggins with pride. “What do they say about me, M’am?”

“They say you stole a lot of hogs!” tittered the landlady.

Mr. Scoggins turned red.

“Oho, is there another thief in this hon’able body?” sneered James
“Mileage.”

“That’s all a lie, M’am, ’bout them hogs. I didn’ steal ’em. I just
pressed ’em from a Secessiner.”

“Jes so,” said James ‘Mileage’, “but they say you were a deserter at the
time, and not exactly in the service of your country.”

“Ye can’t pay no ’tention ter rebel lies ergin Union men!” explained
Scoggins, eating faster.

“Yes, that’s so,” said James ‘Mileage’, “but there’s another funny thing
in the paper about you.”

“What’s that?” cried Scoggins with new alarm.

“That Mr. Scoggins met Sherman’s army with loud talk about lovin’
the Union, but that a mean Yankee officer gave him a cussin’ fur not
fightin’ on one side or the other, took all that bacon he had stolen,
hung him up by the heels, gave him thirty lashes and left him hanging in
the air.”

“It’s a lie! It’s a lie!” bellowed Scoggins.

“Gentlemen! Gentlemen! we must not have such behaviour at my table!”
 exclaimed Mrs. Duke.

And “Hog” Scoggins was his name from that day.

By the end of the week another painful story was printed about one of
this group of statesmen. The newspaper brutally declared that he had
been convicted of stealing a rawhide from a neighbour’s tanyard. It
could not be denied. And then a sad thing happened. The moral sentiment
of the little community could not endure the strain. It suddenly
collapsed. They laughed at these incidents of the sad past and agreed
that they were jokes. They began to call each other James “Mileage,”
 “Hog” Scoggins, and “Rawhide” in the friendliest way, and dared a
scornful world to make them feel ashamed of anything!

But the Rev. Ezra Perkins was pained by this breakdown. He felt that
being safely removed two thousand miles from his own past, he might hope
for a future.

“Mrs. Duke,” he complained to his landlady, “I will have to ask you to
give me a room to myself. I’ll pay double. I want quiet where I can read
my Bible and meditate occasionally.”

“Certainly Mr. Perkins, if you are willing to pay for it.”

It was so arranged. But this assumption of moral superiority by Perkins
grieved “Mileage,” “Hog” and “Rawhide,” and a coolness sprang up between
them, until they found Ezra one night in his place of meditation dead
drunk and his room on fire. He had gone to sleep in his chair with his
empty bottle by his side, and knocked the candle over on the bed. Then
they agreed that forever after they would all stand together, shoulder
to shoulder, until they brought the haughty low and exalted the lowly
and the “loyal.”

Tim Shelby early distinguished himself in this august assemblage. His
wit and eloquence from the first commanded the admiration of his party.

When he had fairly established himself as leader, he rose in his seat
one day with unusual gravity. His scalp was working his ears with great
rapidity showing his excitement.

He had in his hands a bill on which he had spent months in secret study.
He had not even hinted its contents to any of his associates. Under the
call for bills his voice rang with deep emphasis, “Mr. Speaker!”

Legree gave him instant recognition.

“I desire to introduce the following: ‘A Bill to be Entitled An Act to
Relieve Married Women from the Bonds of Matrimony when United to Felons,
and to Define Felony’.”

A page hurried to the Reading Clerk with his bill.

The hum of voices ceased. The five or six representatives of the white
race left their desks and walked quickly toward the Speaker. The Clerk
read in a loud clear voice.

“The General Assembly of North Carolina do enact:

“I That all citizens of the State who took part in the Rebellion and
fought against the Union, or held office in the so called Confederate
States of America, shall be held guilty of felony, and shall be forever
debarred from voting or holding office.”

“II That the married relations of all such felons are hereby dissolved
and their wives absolutely divorced, and said felons shall be forever
barred from contracting marriage or living under the same roof with
their former wives.”

Instantly four Carpet-bagger members of some education rushed for Tim’s
seat. “Withdraw that bill, man, quick! My God, are you mad!” they all
cried in a breath.

Tim was dazed by this unexpected turn, and grinned in an obstinate way.

“I can’t see it gentlemen. That bill will kill out the breed of rebels
and fix the status of every Southern state for five hundred years. It’s
just what we need to make this state loyal.”

“You pass that bill and hell will break loose!”

“How so, brother? Ain’t we on top and the rebels on the bottom? Ain’t
the army here to protect us?” persisted Tim.

There was a brief consultation among the little group in opposition and
the leader said, “Mr. Speaker, I move that the bill be at once printed
and laid on the desk of the members for consideration.”

Tim was astonished at this move of his enemy. Le-gree looked at him and
waited his pleasure.

“Mr. Speaker, I withdraw that bill for the present,” he said at length.

That night the wires were hot between Washington and Raleigh, and the
entire power of Congress was hurled upon the unhappy Tim. His bill was
not only suppressed but the news agencies were threatened and subsidised
to prevent accounts of its introduction being circulated throughout the
country.

Tim decided to lay this measure over until Congress was off his
hands, and the state’s autonomy fully recognised. Then he would dare
interference. In the meantime he turned his great mind to financial
matters. His success here was overwhelming.

His first measure was to increase the per diem of the members from three
to seven dollars a day. It passed with a whoop.

Uncle Pete Sawyer a coal-black fatherly looking old darkey from an
Eastern county made himself immortal in that debate.

“Mistah Speakah!” he bawled drawing himself up with great dignity, and
holding a pen in his left hand as though he had been writing. “What do
dese white gem’men mean by ezposen dis bill? Ef we doan pay de members
enuf, dey des be erbleeged ter steal. Hit aint right, sah, ter fo’ce de
members er dis hon’able body ter prowl atter dark when day otter be here
’tendin’ ter de business o’ de country. En I moves you, sah. Mistah
Speakah, dat dese rema’ks er mine be filed in de arkibes er grabity!”

They were filed and embalmed in the archives of gravity where they will
remain a monument to their author and his times.

As Tim’s great financial measures made progress, the members began
to wear better clothes, assumed white linen shirts, had their shoes
blacked, and put on the airs of overworked statesmen.

When they had used up all the funds of the state in mileage and per
diem, they sold and divided the school fund, railroad bonds worth a half
million, for a hundred thousand ready cash. It was soon found that Simon
Legree, the Speaker of the House, was the master of financial measures
and Tim Shelby was his mouthpiece.

Legree organised three groups of thieves composed of the officials
needed to perfect the thefts in every branch of the government while he
retained the leadership of the federated groups. The Treasurer, who was
an honest man, was stripped of power by a special act.

The Capitol Ring merely picked up the odds and ends about the Capitol
building. They refurnished the Legislative Halls. They spent over two
hundred thousand dollars for furniture, and when it was appraised, its
value was found to be seventeen thousand dollars at the prices they
actually paid for it. The Ring stole one hundred and seventy thousand
dollars on this item alone.

An appropriation of three hundred thousand dollars was made for
“supplies, sundries and incidentals.” With this they built a booth
around the statue of Washington at the end of the Capitol and
established a bar with fine liquors and cigars for the free use of the
members and their friends. They kept it open every day and night during
their reign, and in a suite of rooms in the Capitol they established a
brothel. From the galleries a swarm of courtesans daily smiled on their
favourites on the floor.

The printing had never cost the state more than eight thousand dollars
in any one year. This year it cost four hundred and eighty thousand.
Legree drew thousands of warrants on the state for imaginary persons.
There were eight pages in the House. He drew pay for one hundred and
fifty-six pages. In this way he raised an enormous corruption fund for
immediate use in bribing the lawmakers to carry through his schemes.

The Railroad Ring was his most effective group of brigands.

They passed bills authorising the issue of twenty-five millions of
dollars in bonds, and actually issued and stole fourteen millions, and
never built one foot of railroad.

When Legree’s movement was at its high tide, Ezra Perkins sought Uncle
Pete Sawyer one night in behalf of a pet measure of his pending in the
House.

Peter was seated by his table counting by the light of a candle three
big piles of gold.

His face was wreathed in smiles.

“Peter, you seem well pleased with the world tonight?” said Ezra
gleefully.

“Well, brudder, you see dem piles er yaller money?”

“Yes, it is a fine sight.”

Uncle Pete smacked his lips and grinned from ear to ear.

“Well, brudder, I tells you. I ben sol’ seben times in my life, but
’fore Gawd dat’s de fust time I ebber got de money!”

Uncle Pete dreamed that night that Congress passed a law extending the
blessings of a “republican form of government” to North Carolina for
forty years and that the Legislature never adjourned.

But the Legislature finally closed, and in a drunken revel which lasted
all night. They had bankrupted the state, destroyed its school funds,
and increased its debt from sixteen to forty-two millions of dollars,
without adding one cent to its wealth or power.

Legree then organised a Municipal and County Ring to exploit the towns,
cities, and counties, having passed a bill vacating all county and city
offices.

This Ring secured the control of Hambright and levied a tax of
twenty-five per cent for municipal purposes! Tom Camp’s little home
was assessed for eighty-five dollars in taxes. Mrs. Gaston’s home was
assessed for one hundred and sixty dollars. They could have raised a
million as easily as the sum of these assessments.

It cost the United States government two hundred millions of dollars
that year to pay the army required to guard the Legrees and their
“loyal” men while they were thus establishing and maintaining “a
republican form of government” in the South.




CHAPTER XVII--THE SECOND REIGN OF TERROR

IT was the bluest Monday the Rev. John Durham ever remembered in his
ministry. A long drought had parched the corn into twisted and stunted
little stalks that looked as though they had been burnt in a prairie
fire. The fly had destroyed the wheat crop and the cotton was dying in
the blistering sun of August, and a blight worse than drought, or flood,
or pestilence, brooded over the stricken land, flinging the shadow of
its Black Death over every home. The tax gatherer of the new “republican
form of government,” recently established in North Carolina now demanded
his pound of flesh.

The Sunday before had been a peculiarly hard one for the Preacher. He
had tried by the sheer power of personal sympathy to lift the despairing
people out of their gloom and make strong their faith in God. In his
morning sermon he had torn his heart open and given them its red blood
to drink. At the night service he could not rally from the nerve tension
of the morning. He felt that he had pitiably failed. The whole day
seemed a failure black and hopeless.

All day long the sorrowful stories of ruin and loss of homes were poured
into his ear.

The Sheriff had advertised for sale for taxes two thousand three hundred
and twenty homes in Campbell county. The land under such conditions had
no value.

It was only a formality for the auctioneer to cry it and knock it down
for the amount of the tax bill.

As he arose from bed with the burden of all this hopeless misery
crushing his soul, a sense of utter exhaustion and loneliness came over
him.

“My love, I must go back to bed and try to sleep. I lay awake last night
until two o’clock. I can’t eat anything,” he said to his wife as she
announced breakfast.

“John, dear, don’t give up like that.”

“Can’t help it.”

“But you must. Come, here is something that will tone you up. I found
this note under the front door this morning.”

“What is it?”

“A notice from some of your admirers that you must leave this county in
forty-eight hours or take the consequences.”

He looked at this anonymous letter and smiled.

“Not such a failure after all, am I?” he mused.

“I thought that would help you,” she laughed.

“Yes, I can eat breakfast on the strength of that.”

He spread this letter out beside his plate, and read and reread it as he
ate, while his eyes flashed with a strange half humourous light.

“Really, that’s fine, isn’t it?”

“You sower of sedition and rebellion, hypocrite and false prophet. The
day has come to clean this county of treason and traitors. If you dare
to urge the people to further resistance to authority, there will be one
traitor less in this county.”

“That sounds like the voice of a Daniel come to judgment, don’t it?”

“I think Ezra Perkins might know something about it.”

“I am sure of it.”

“Well, I’m duly grateful, it’s done for you what your wife couldn’t do,
cheered you up this morning.”

“That is so, isn’t it? It takes a violent poison sometimes to stimulate
the heart’s action.”

“Now if you will work the garden for me, where I’ve been watering it the
past month, you will be yourself by dinner time.”

“I will. That’s about all we’ve got to eat. I’ve had no salary in two
months, and I’ve no prospects for the next two months.”

He was at work in the garden when Charlie Gaston suddenly ran through
the gate toward him. His face was red, his eyes streaming with tears,
and his breath coming in gasps.

“Doctor, they’ve killed Nelse! Mama says please come down to our house
as quick as you can.”

“Is he dead, Charlie?”

“He’s most dead. I found him down in the woods lying in a gully, one leg
is broken, there’s a big gash over his eye, his back is beat to a jelly,
and one of his arms is broken. We put him in the wagon, and hauled him
to the house. I’m afraid he’s dead now. Oh me!” The boy broke down and
choked with sobs.

“Run, Charlie, for the doctor, and I’ll be there in a minute.”

The boy flew through the gate to the doctor’s house.

When the Preacher reached Mrs. Gaston’s, Aunt Eve was wiping the blood
from Nelse’s mouth.

“De Lawd hab mussy! My po’ ole man’s done kilt.”

“Who could have done this, Eve?”

“Dem Union Leaguers. Dey say dey wuz gwine ter kill him fur not jinin’
’em, en fur tryin’ ter vote ergin ’em.”

“I’ve been afraid of it,” sighed the Preacher as he felt Nelse’s pulse.

“Yassir, en now dey’s done hit. My po’ ole man. I wish I’d a been better
ter ’im. Lawd Jesus, help me now!”

Eve knelt by the bed and laid her face against Nelse’s while the tears
rained down her black face.

“Aunt Eve, it may not be so bad,” said the Preacher hopefully. “His
pulse is getting stronger. He has an iron constitution. I believe he
will pull through, if there are no internal injuries.”

“Praise God! ef he do git well, I tell yer now, Marse John, I fling er
spell on dem niggers bout dis!”

“I am afraid you can do nothing with them. The courts are all in the
hands of these scoundrels, and the Governor of the state is at the head
of the Leagues.”

“I doan want no cotes, Marse John, I’se cote ennuf. I kin cunjure dem
niggers widout any cote.”

The doctor pronounced his injuries dangerous but not necessarily fatal.
Charlie and Dick watched with Eve that night until nearly midnight.
Nelse opened his eyes, and saw the eager face of the boy, his eyes yet
red from crying. “I aint dead, honey!” he moaned.

“Oh! Nelse, I’m so glad!”

“Doan you believe I gwine die! I gwine ter git eben wid dem niggers
’fore I leab dis worl’.”

Nelse spoke feebly, but there was a way about his saying it that boded
no good to his enemies, and Eve was silent. As Nelse improved, Eve’s
wrath steadily rose.

The next day she met in the street one of the negroes who had threatened
Nelse.

“How’s Mistah Gaston dis mawnin’ M’am?” he asked.

Without a word of warning she sprang on him like a tigress, bore him
to the ground, grasped him by the throat and pounded his head against a
stone. She would have choked him to death, had not a man who was passing
come to the rescue.

“Lemme lone, man, I’se doin’ de wuk er God!”

“You’re committing murder, woman.”

When the negro got up he jumped the fence and tore down through a corn
field, as though pursued by a hundred devils, now and then glancing over
his shoulder to see if Eve were after him.

The Preacher tried in vain to bring the perpetrators of this outrage
on Nelse to justice. He identified six of them positively. They were
arrested, and when put on trial immediately discharged by the judge who
was himself a member of the League that had ordered Nelse whipped.

*****

Tom Camp’s daughter was now in her sixteenth year and as plump and
winsome a lassie, her Scotch mother declared, as the Lord ever made. She
was engaged to be married to Hose Norman, a gallant poor white from the
high hill country at the foot of the mountains. Hose came to see her
every Sunday riding a black mule, gaily trapped out in martingales with
red rings, double girths to his saddle and a flaming red tassel tied on
each side of the bridle. Tom was not altogether pleased with his future
son-in-law. He was too wild, went to too many frolics, danced too much,
drank too much whiskey and was too handy with a revolver.

“Annie, child, you’d better think twice before you step off with that
young buck,” Tom gravely warned his daughter as he stroked her fair hair
one Sunday morning while she waited for Hose to escort her to church.

“I have thought a hundred times, Paw, but what’s the use. I love him. He
can just twist me ’round his little finger. I’ve got to have him.”

“Tom Camp, you don’t want to forget you were not a saint when I stood up
with you one day,” cried his wife with a twinkle in her eye.

“That’s a fact, ole woman,” grinned Tom.

“You never give me a day’s trouble after I got hold of you. Sometimes
the wildest colts make the safest horses.”

“Yes, that’s so. It’s owing to who has the breaking of ’em,”
 thoughtfully answered Tom.

“I like Hose. He’s full of fun, but he’ll settle down and make her a
good husband.”

The girl slipped close to her mother and squeezed her hand.

“Do you love him much, child?” asked her father.

“Well enough to live and scrub and work for him and to die for him, I
reckon.”

“All right, that settles it, you’re too many for me, you and Hose and
your Maw. Get ready for it quick. We’ll have the weddin’ Wednesday
night. This home is goin’ to be sold Thursday for taxes and it will be
our last night under our own roof. We’ll make the best of it.”

It was so fixed. On Wednesday night Hose came down from the foothills
with three kindred spirits, and an old fiddler to make the music. He
wanted to have a dance and plenty of liquor fresh from the mountain-dew
district. But Tom put his foot down on it.

“No dancin’ in my house, Hose, and no licker,” said Tom with emphasis.
“I’m a deacon in the Baptist church. I used to be young and as good
lookin’ as you, my boy, but I’ve done with them things. You’re goin’
to take my little gal now. I want you to quit your foolishness and be a
man.”

“I will, Tom, I will. She is the prettiest sweetest little thing in this
world, and to tell you the truth I’m goin’ to settle right down now to
the hardest work I ever did in my life.”

“That’s the way to talk, my boy,” said Tom putting his hand on Hose’s
shoulder. “You’ll have enough to do these hard times to make a livin’.”

They made a handsome picture, in that humble home, as they stood there
before the Preacher. The young bride was trembling from head to foot
with fright. Hose was trying to look grave and dignified and grinning in
spite of himself whenever he looked into the face of his blushing mate.
The mother was standing near, her face full of pride in her daughter’s
beauty and happiness, her heart all a quiver with the memories of her
own wedding day seventeen years before. Tom was thinking of the morrow
when he would be turned out of his home and his eyes filled with tears.

The Rev. John Durham had pronounced them man and wife and hurried away
to see some people who were sick. The old fiddler was doing his best.
Hose and his bride were shaking hands with their friends, and the boys
were trying to tease the bridegroom with hoary old jokes.

Suddenly a black shadow fell across the doorway. The fiddle ceased,
and every eye was turned to the door. The burly figure of a big negro
trooper from a company stationed in the town stood before them. His face
was in a broad grin, and his eyes bloodshot with whiskey. He brought his
musket down on the floor with a bang.

“My frien’s, I’se sorry ter disturb yer but I has orders ter search dis
house.”

“Show your orders,” said Tom hobbling before him.

“Well, deres one un ’em!” he said still grinning as he cocked his gun
and presented it toward Tom. “En ef dat aint ennuf dey’s fifteen mo’
stanin’ ’roun’ dis house. It’s no use ter make er fuss. Come on,
boys!”

[Illustration: 0147]

Before Tom could utter another word of protest six more negro troopers
laughing and nudging one another crowded into the room. Suddenly one of
them threw a bucket of water in the fire place where a pine knot blazed
and two others knocked out the candles.

There was a scuffle, the quick thud of heavy blows, and Hose Norman fell
to the floor senseless. A piercing scream rang from his bride as she was
seized in the arms of the negro who first appeared. He rapidly bore her
toward the door surrounded by the six scoundrels who had accompanied
him.

“My God, save her! They are draggin’ Annie out of the house,” shrieked
her mother.

“Help! Help! Lord have mercy!” screamed the girl as they bore her away
toward the woods, still laughing and yelling.

Tom overtook one of them, snatched his wooden leg off, and knocked him
down. Hose’s mountain boys were crowding round Tom with their pistols in
their hands.

“What shall we do, Tom? If we shoot we may kill Annie.”

“Shoot, men! My God, shoot! There are things worse than death!”

They needed no urging. Like young tigers they sprang across the orchard
toward the woods whence came the sound of the laughter of the negroes.

“Stop de screechin’!” cried the leader.

“She nebber get dat gag out now.”

“Too smart fur de po’ white trash dis time sho’!” laughed one.

Three pistol shots rang out like a single report! Three more! and three
more! There was a wild scramble. Taken completely by surprise, the
negroes fled in confusion. Four lay on the ground. Two were dead, one
mortally wounded and three more had crawled away with bullets in their
bodies. There in the midst of the heap lay the unconscious girl gagged.

“Is she hurt?” cried a mountain boy.

“Can’t tell, take her to the house quick.”

They laid her across the bed in the room that had been made sweet and
tidy for the bride and groom. The mother bent over her quickly with a
light. Just where the blue veins crossed in her delicate temple there
was a round hole from which a scarlet stream was running down her white
throat.

Without a word the mother brought Tom, showed it to him, and then fell
into his arms and burst into a flood of tears.

“Don’t, don’t cry so Annie! It might have been worse. Let us thank God
she was saved from them brutes.”

Hose’s friends crowded round Tom now with tear-stained faces.

“Tom, you don’t know how broke up we all are over this. Poor child, we
did the best we could.”

“It’s all right, boys. You’ve been my friends to-night. You’ve saved my
little gal. I want to shake hands with you and thank you. If you hadn’t
been here--My God, I can’t think of what would ’a happened! Now it’s all
right. She’s safe in God’s hands.”

The next morning when Tom Camp called at the parsonage to see the
Preacher and arrange for the funeral of his daughter he found him in
bed.

“Dr. Durham is quite sick, Mr. Camp, but he’ll see you,” said Mrs.
Durham.

“Thank you, M’am.”

She took the old soldier by the hand and her voice choked as she said,
“You have my heart’s deepest sympathy in your awful sorrow.”

“It’ll be all for the best, M’am. The Lord gave and the Lord has taken
away. I will still say, Blessed is the name of the Lord!”

“I wish I had such faith.” She led Tom into the room where the Preacher
lay.

“Why, what’s this, Preacher? A bandage over your eye, looks like
somebody knocked you in the head?”

“Yes, Tom, but it’s nothing. I’ll be all right by tomorrow. You needn’t
tell me anything that happened at your house. I’ve heard the black
hell-lit news. It will be all over this county by night and the town
will be full of grim-visaged men before many hours. Your child has not
died in vain. A few things like this will be the trumpet of the God of
our fathers that will call the sleeping manhood of the Anglo-Saxon race
to life again. I must be up and about this afternoon to keep down the
storm. It is not time for it to break.”

“But, Preacher, what happened to you?”

“Oh! nothing much, Tom.”

“I’ll tell you what happened,” cried Mrs. Durham standing erect with her
great dark eyes flashing with anger.

“As he came home last night from a visit to the sick, he was ambushed
by a gang of negroes led by a white scoundrel, knocked down, bound and
gagged and placed on a pile of dry fence rails. They set fire to the
pile and left him to burn to death. It attracted the attention of Doctor
Graham who was passing. He got to him in time to save him.”

“You don’t say so!”

“I’m sorry, Tom, I’m so weak this morning I couldn’t come to see you. I
know your poor wife is heartbroken.”

“Yes, sir, she is, and it cuts me to the quick when I think that I gave
the orders to the boys to shoot. But, Preacher, I’d a killed her with my
own hand if I couldn’t a saved her no other way. I’d do it over again a
thousand times if I had to.”

“I don’t blame you, I’d have done the same thing. I can’t come to see
you to-day, Tom, I’ll be down to your house to-morrow a few minutes
before we start for the cemetery. I must get up for dinner and prevent
the men from attacking these troops. They’ll not dare to try to sell
your place to-day. The public square is full of men now, and it’s only
nine o’clock. You go home and cheer up your wife. How is Hose?”

“He’s still in bed. The Doctor says his skull is broken in one place,
but he’ll be over it in a few weeks.”

Tom hobbled back to his house, shaking hands with scores of silent men
on the way.

The Preacher crawled to his desk and wrote this note to the young
officer in command of the post,

_My Dear Captain,_

_In the interest of peace and order I would advise you to telegraph to
Independence for two companies of white regulars to come immediately on
a special, and that you start your negro troops on double quick marching
order to meet them. There will be a thousand armed men in Hambright by
sundown, and no power on earth can prevent the extermination of that
negro company if they attack them. I will do my best to prevent further
bloodshed but I can do nothing if these troops remain here to-day.
Respectfully,_

_John Durham._

The Commandant acted on the advice immediately.

It was the week following before the sales began. There was no help
for it. The town and the county were doomed to a ruin more complete and
terrible than the four years of war had brought. Independence had been
saved by a skillful movement of General Worth, who sought an interview
with Legree when his council first issued their levy of thirty per cent
for municipal purposes.

“Mr. Legree, let’s understand one another,” said the General.

“All right, I’m a man of reason.”

“A bird in hand is worth two in the bush!”

“Every time, General.”

“Well, call off your dogs, and rescind your order for a thirty per cent
tax levy, and I’ll raise $30,000 in cash and pay it to you in two days.”

“Make it $50,000 and it’s a bargain.”

“Agreed.”

The General raised twenty thousand in the city, went North and borrowed
the remaining thirty thousand.

Legree and his brigands received this ransom and moved on to the next
town.

Poor Hambright was but a scrawny little village on a red hill with no
big values to be saved, and no mills to interest the commercial world,
and the auctioneer lifted his hammer.




CHAPTER XVIII--THE RED FLAG OF THE AUCTIONEER

THE excitement through which Tom Camp had passed in the death of his
daughter, and the stirring events connected with it, had been more than
his feeble body could endure. He had been stricken with paroxysms of
pain and nausea from his old wounds. For three days and nights he
had suffered unspeakable agonies. He had borne his pain with stoical
indifference.

“Tom, old man, do look at me! You skeer me,” said his wife leaning
tenderly over him.

“Oh! I’m all right, Annie.”

“What was you studyin’ about then?”

“I was just a thinkin’ we didn’t kill babies in the war. Them was awful
times, but they wuz nothin’ to what we’re goin’ through now. The Lord
knows best, but I can’t understand it.”

“Well, don’t talk any more. You’re too weak.”

“I must git up, Annie. Got to git out anyhow. The Sheriff’s goin’ to
sell us out to-day, and I want to sorter look ’round once before we
go.”

So, leaning on his wife’s arm, he hobbled around the place saying
good-bye to its familiar objects. They stopped before the garden gate.

“Don’t go in there, Tom, I can’t stand it,” cried his wife. “When I
think of leavin’ that garden I’ve worked so hard on all these years, and
that’s give us so many good things to eat, and never failed us the year
round, I just feel like it’ll tear my heart out.”

“Do you mind the day we set out these trees, Annie, an’ you, my own
purty gal holdin’ ’em fur me while I packed the dirt around ’em, and
told you how sweet you wuz?”

“Yes, and I love every twig of ’em. They’ve all helped me in times
of need. Oh! Lord, it’s hard to give it up!” She couldn’t keep back the
tears.

“Well, now, ole woman, you mustn’t break down. You’re strong and well
and I’m all shot to pieces and crippled and no ’count. But the Lord
still lives. We’ll get this place back. The Lord’s just trying our
faith. He thinks mebbe I’ll give up.”

“You think we can ever get it back?”

“General Worth sent me word he couldn’t do anything now, but to let it
go and keep a stiff upper lip. The General ain’t no fool.”

“Surely the Lord can’t let us starve.”

“Starve! I reckon not! The foxes have holes, the birds of the air nests,
but the Son of Man had not where to lay His head, but He never starved.
No, God’s in Heaven. I’ll trust Him.”

A mocking bird whose mate had just built her nest to rear a second brood
for the season was seated on the topmost branch of a cedar near the
house, and singing as though he would fill heaven and earth with the
glory of his love.

“Just listen at that bird, Tom!” whispered his wife. “He does sing
sweet, don’t he?”

“Oh dear, oh dear, how can I give it all up! I’ve fed that bird and his
mate for years. He knows my voice. I can call him down out of that tree.
Many a night when you were away in the war he sat close to my window
and sang softly to me all night. When I’d wake, I’d hear him singin’ low
like he was afraid he’d wake somebody. I’d sit down there by the window
and cry for you and dream of your comin’ home till he’d sing me to
sleep in the chair. And now we’ve got to leave him. Oh Lord, my heart is
broken! I can’t see the way!”

She buried her face on Tom’s shoulder and shook with sobs.

“Hush, hush, honey, we must face trouble. We are used to it.”

“But not this, Tom. It’ll tear my heart out when I have to leave.”

“It can’t be helped, Annie. We’ve got to pay for this nigger
government.”

Eleven o’clock was the hour fixed for the sale. At half past ten a crowd
of negroes had gathered. There were only two or three white men present,
the Agent of the Freedman’s Bureau and some of his henchmen.

They began to inspect the place. Tim Shelby was present, dressed in a
suit of broadcloth and a silk hat placed jauntily on his close-cropped
scalp.

“That’s a fine orchard, gentlemen,” Tim exclaimed.

“Yes, en dats er fine gyarden,” said a negro standing near.

“Let’s look at the house,” said Tim starting to the door.

Tom stood up in the doorway with a musket in his hand, “Put your foot on
that doorstep and I’ll blow your brains out, you flat-nosed baboon!”

Tim paused and bowed with a smile.

“Ain’t the premises for sale, Mr. Camp?”

“Yes, but my family ain’t for inspection by niggers.”

“Just wanted to see the condition of the house, sir,” said Tim still
smiling.

“Well, I’m livin’ here yet, and don’t you forget it,” answered Tom with
quiet emphasis. Tim walked away laughing.

Tom stepped out of the house, and with his wooden leg marked a dead
line around the house about ten feet from each corner. To the crowd
that stood near he said in a clear ringing voice as he stood up in the
doorway.

[Illustration: 0158]

“I’ll kill the first nigger that crosses that line.”

There was no attempt to cross it. They did not like the look of Tom’s
face as he sat there pale and silent. And they could hear the sobs of
his wife inside.

The sale was a brief formality. There was but one bidder, the Honourable
Tim Shelby. It was knocked down to Tim for the sum of eighty-five
dollars, the exact amount of the tax levy which Legree and his brigands
had fixed.

Tim was not buying on his own account. He was the purchasing agent of
the subsidiary ring which Legree had organised to hold the real estate
forfeited for taxes until a rise in value would bring them millions of
profit. They had stolen from the state Treasury the money to capitalise
this company. Where it was possible to exact a cash ransom, they always
took it and cancelled the tax order, preferring the certainty of good
gold in their pockets to the uncertainties of politics.

They tried their best to get a cash ransom of ten thousand dollars for
the town of Hambright. But the ruined people could not raise a thousand.
So Tim Shelby as the agent of the “Union Land and Improvement Company,”
 became the owner of farm after farm and home after home.

It was a vain hope that relief could come from any quarter. The red flag
of the Sheriff’s auctioneer fluttered from two thousand three hundred
and twenty doors in the county. This was over two-thirds of the total.

Those who were saved, just escaped by the skin of their teeth. They sold
old jewelry or plate that had been hidden in the war, or they sold their
corn and provisions, trusting to their ability to live on dried fruit,
berries, walnuts, hickory nuts, and such winter vegetables as they could
raise in their gardens.

The Preacher secured for Tom a tumbled-down log cabin on the outskirts
of town, with a half-acre of poor red hill land around it, which his
wife at once transformed into a garden. She took up the bulbs and
flowers that she had tended so lovingly about the door of their old
home, and planted them with tears around this desolate cabin. Now and
then she would look down at the work and cry. Then she would go bravely
back to it. As nobody occupied her old home, she went back and forth
until she moved all the jonquils and sweet pinks from the borders of
the garden walk, and reset them in the new garden. She moved then her
strawberries and rapsberries, and gooseberries, and set her fall cabbage
plants. In three weeks she had transformed a desolate red clay lot into
a smiling garden. She had watered every plant daily, and Tom had watched
her with growing wonder and love.

“Ole woman, you’re an angel!” he cried, “if God had sent one down from
the skies she couldn’t have done any more.”

* * * * *

The problem which pressed heaviest of all on the Preacher’s heart in
this crisis was how to save Mrs. Gaston’s home.

“If that place is sold next week, my dear,” he said to his wife, “she
will never survive.”

“I know it. She is sinking every day. It breaks my heart to look at
her.”

“What can we do?”

“I’m sure I can’t tell. We’ve given everything we have on earth except
the clothes on our back. I haven’t another piece of jewelry, or even an
old dress.”

“The tax and the costs may amount to a hundred and seventy-five dollars.
There isn’t a man in this county who has that much money, or I’d borrow
it if I had to mortgage my body and soul to do it.”

“I’ll tell you what you might do,” his wife suddenly exclaimed.
“Telegraph your old college mate in Boston that you will accept his
invitation to supply his pulpit those last two Sundays in August. They
will pay you handsomely.”

“It may be possible, but where am I to get the money for a telegram and
a ticket?”

“Surely you can borrow some here!”

“I don’t know a man in the county who has it.”

“Then go to the young Commandant of the post here. Tell him the facts.
Tell him that a widow of a brave Confederate soldier is about to be
turned out of her home because she can’t pay the taxes levied by
this infamous negro government. Ask him to loan you the money for the
telegram and the ticket.”

The Preacher seized his hat and made his way as fast as possible to the
camp. The young Captain heard his story with grave courtesy.

“Certainly, doctor,” he said, “I’ll loan you the forty dollars with
pleasure. I wish I could do more to relieve the distress of the people.
Believe me, sir, the people of the North do not dream of the awful
conditions of the South. They are being fooled by the politicians. I’ll
thank God when I am relieved of this job and get home. What has amazed
me is that you hot-headed Southern people have stood it thus far. I
don’t know a Northern community that would have endured it.”

“Ah, Captain, the people are heartsick of bloodshed, They surrendered in
good faith. They couldn’t foresee this. If they had”--

The Preacher paused, his eyes grew misty with tears, and he looked
thoughtfully out on the blue mountain peaks that loomed range after
range in the distance until the last bald tops were lost in the clouds.

“If General Lee had dreamed of such an infamy being forced on the South
two years after his surrender, as this attempt to make the old slaves
the rulers of their masters, and to destroy the Anglo-Saxon civilisation
of the South--he would have withdrawn his armies into that Appalachian
mountain wild and fought till every white man in the South was
exterminated.

“The Confederacy went to pieces in a day, not because the South could no
longer fight, but because they were fighting the flag of their fathers,
and they were tired of it. They went back to the old flag. They expected
to lose their slaves and repudiate the dogma of Secession forever. But,
they never dreamed of Negro dominion, or Negro deification, of Negro
equality and amalgamation, now being rammed down their throats with
bayonets. They never dreamed of the confiscation of the desolate
homes of the poor and the weak and the brokenhearted. Over two hundred
thousand Southern men fought in the Union army in answer to Lincoln’s
call--even against their own flesh and blood. But if this program had
been announced, every one of the two hundred thousand Southern soldiers
who wore the blue, would have rallied around the firesides of the South.
This infamy was something undreamed save in the souls of a few desperate
schemers at Washington who waited their opportunity, and found it in the
nation’s blind agony over the death of a martyred leader.”

The Preacher pressed the Captain’s hand and hastened to tell Mrs. Gaston
of his plans. He found her seated pale and wistful at her window looking
out on the lawn, now being parched and ruined since Nelse was disabled
and could no longer tend it.

Charlie was trying to kiss the tears away from her eyes.

“Mama dear, you mustn’t cry any more!”

“I can’t help it, darling.”

“They can’t take our home away from us. I tore the sign down they nailed
on the door, and Dick burned it up!”

“But they will do it, Charlie. The Sheriff will sell it at auction next
week, and we will never have a home of our own again.”

Charlie bounded to the door and showed the Preacher in.

“I have good news for you, Mrs. Gaston! I start to Boston to-night to
preach two Sundays. I am going to try to borrow the money there to save
your home. We will not be too sure till it’s done, but you must cheer
up!”

“Oh! doctor, you’re giving me a new lease on life!” she cried, looking
up at him through tears of gratitude.

That night the Preacher hurried on his way to Boston.

The days dragged slowly one after another, and still no word came to the
anxious waiting woman. It was only two days now until the day fixed for
the sale.

She asked the Sheriff to come to see her. He was a brutal illiterate
henchman of Legree, who had been appointed to the office to do his
bidding. He was a brother of the immortal “Hog” Scoggins, who had
represented an adjoining county in the Legislature.

“Mr. Scoggins, I’ve sent for you to ask you to postpone the sale until
Dr. Durham returns from Boston. I expect to get the money from him to
pay the tax bill.”

“Can’t do it, M’um. They’s er lot er folks comin’ ter bid on the place.”

“But I tell you I’m going to pay the tax bill.”

“Well, M’um, hit’ll have ter be paid afore the time sot, er I’ll be
erbleeged to sell.”

“I’m sure Dr. Durham will get the money.”

“Ef he does, hit ’ll be the fust time hit’s happened in this county
sence the sales begun.”

In vain she waited for a letter or a telegram from Boston. Charlie went
faithfully asking Dave Haley, the postmaster, two or three times on the
arrival of each mail.

“I tell ye there’s nothin’ fur ye!” he yelled as he glared at the boy.
“Ef ye don’t go way from that winder, I’ll pitch ye out the door!”

The scoundrel had recognised the letter in Dr. Durham’s handwriting and
had hidden it, suspecting its contents.

When the day came for the sale Mrs. Gaston tried to face the trial
bravely. But it was too much for her. When she saw a great herd of
negroes trampling down her flowers, laughing, cracking vulgar jokes, and
swarming over the porches, she sank feebly into her chair, buried her
face in her hands and gave way to a passionate flood of tears. She was
roused by the thumping of heavy feet in the hall, and the unmistakable
odour of perspiring negroes. They had begun to ransack the house on
tours of inspection. The poor woman’s head drooped and she fell to the
floor in a dead swoon.

There was a sudden charge as of an armed host, the sound of blows, a
wild scramble, and the house was cleared. Aunt Eve with a fire shovel,
Charlie with a broken hoe handle, and Dick with a big black snake whip
had cleared the air.

Aunt Eve stood on the front door-step shaking the shovel at the crowd.

“Des put yo big flat hoofs in dis house ergin! I’ll split yo heads wide
open! You black cattle!”

“Dat we will!” railed Dick as he cracked the whip at a little negro
passing.

Charlie ran into his mother’s room to see what she was doing, and found
her lying across the floor on her face.

“Aunt Eve, come quick, Mama’s dying!” he shouted.

They lifted her to the bed, and Dick ran for the doctor.

Dr. Graham looked very grave when he had completed his examination.

“Come here, my boy, I must tell you some sad news.”

Charlie’s big brown eyes glanced up with a startled look into the
doctor’s face.

“Don’t tell me she’s dying, doctor, I can’t stand it.”

The doctor took his hand. “You’re getting to be a man now, my son, you
will soon be thirteen. You must be brave. Your mother will not live
through the night.”

The boy sank on his knees beside the still white figure, tenderly
clasped her thin hand in his, and began to kiss it slowly. He would kiss
it, lay his wet cheek against it, and try to warm it with his hot young
blood.

It was about nine o’clock when she opened her eyes with a smile and
looked into his face.

“My sweet boy,” she whispered.

“Oh! Mama, do try to live! Don’t leave me,” he sobbed in quivering tones
as he leaned over and kissed her lips. She smiled faintly again.

“Yes, I must go, dear. I am tired. Your papa is waiting for me. I see
him smiling and beckoning to me now. I must go.”

A sob shook the boy with an agony no words could frame.

“There, there, dear, don’t,” she soothingly said, “you will grow to be a
brave strong man. You will fight this battle out, and win back our
home and bring your own bride here in the far away days of sunshine and
success I see for you. She will love you, and the flowers will blossom
on the lawn again. But I am tired. Kiss me--I must go.”

Her heart fluttered on for a while, but she never spoke again.

At ten o’clock Mrs. Durham tenderly lifted the boy from the bedside,
kissed him, and said as she led him to his room, “She’s done with
suffering, Charlie. You are going to live with me now, and let me love
you and be your mother.”

* * * * *

The Preacher had made a profound impression on his Boston congregation.

They were charmed by his simple direct appeal to the heart. His fiery
emphasis, impassioned dogmatic faith, his tenderness and the strange
pathos of his voice swept them off their feet. At night the big church
was crowded to the doors, and throngs were struggling in vain to gain
admittance. At the close of the services he was overwhelmed with the
expressions of gratitude and heartfelt sympathy with which they thanked
him for his messages.

He was feasted and dined and taken out into the parks behind spanking
teams, until his head was dizzy with the unaccustomed whirl.

The Preacher went through it all with a heavy heart. Those beautiful
homes with their rich carpets, handsome furniture, and those long lines
of beautiful carriages in the parks, made a contrast with the agony of
universal ruin which he left at home that crushed his soul.

He hastened to tell the story of Mrs. Gaston to a genial old merchant
who had taken a great fancy to him.

A tear glistened in the old man’s eye as he quickly rose.

“Come right down to my store. I’ll get you a money order before the
post-office closes. I’ve got tickets for you to go to the Coliseum
with me to-night and hear the music!--the great Peace Jubilee. We are
celebrating the return of peace and prosperity, and the preservation of
the Union. It’s the greatest musical festival the world ever saw.”

The Preacher was dazed with the sense of its sublimity and the pathetic
tragedy of the South that lay back of its joy.

The great Coliseum, constructed for the purpose, seated over forty
thousand people. Such a crowd he had never seen gathered together within
one building. The soul of the orator in him leaped with divine power
as he glanced over the swaying ocean of human faces. There were twelve
thousand trained voices in the chorus. He had dreamed of such music in
Heaven when countless hosts of angels should gather around God’s throne.
He had never expected to hear it on this earth. He was transported with
a rapture that thrilled and lifted him above the consciousness of time
and sense.

They rendered the masterpieces of all the ages. The music continued hour
after hour, day after day, and night after night.

The grand chorus within the Coliseum was accompanied by the ringing of
bells in the city, and the firing of cannon on the common, discharged
in perfect time with the melody that rolled upward from those twelve
thousand voices and broke against the gates of Heaven! When every
voice was in full cry, and every instrument of music that man had ever
devised, throbbed in harmony, and a hundred anvils were ringing a chorus
of steel in perfect time, Parepa Rosa stepped forward on the great
stage, and in a voice that rang its splendid note of triumph over all
like the trumpet of the archangel, sang the Star Spangled Banner!

Men and women fainted, and one woman died, unable to endure the strain.
The Preacher turned his head away and looked out of the window. A soft
wind was blowing from the South. On its wings were borne to his heart
the cry of the widow and orphan, the hungry and the dying still being
trampled to death by a war more terrible than the first, because it was
waged against the unarmed, women and children, the wounded, the starving
and the defenceless! He tried in vain to keep back the tears. Bending
low, he put his face in his hands and cried like a child.

“God forgive them! They know not what they do!” he moaned.

The kindly old man by his side said nothing, supposing he was overcome
by the grandeur of the music.




CHAPTER XIX--THE RALLY OF THE CLANSMEN

WHEN the Preacher took the train in Boston for the South, his friendly
merchant, a deacon, was by his side.

“Now, you put my name and address down in your note book, William Crane.
And don’t forget about us.”

“I’ll never forget you, deacon.”

“Say, I just as well tell you,” whispered the deacon bending close, “we
are not going to allow you to stay down South. We’ll be down after you
before long--just as well be packing up!”

The Preacher smiled, looked out of the car window, and made no reply.

“Well, good-bye, Doctor, good-bye. God bless you and your work and your
people! You’ve brought me a message warm from God’s heart. I’ll never
forget it.”

“Good-bye, deacon.”

As the train whirled southward through the rich populous towns and
cities of the North, again the sharp contrast with the desolation of his
own land cut him like a knife. He thought of Legree and Haley,
Perkins and Tim Shelby robbing widows and orphans and sweeping the
poverty-stricken Southland with riot, pillage, murder and brigandage,
and posing as the representatives of the conscience of the North. And
his heart was heavy with sorrow.

On reaching Hambright he was thunderstruck at the news of the sale of
Mrs. Gaston’s place and her tragic death.

“Why, my dear, I sent the money to her on the first Monday I spent in
Boston!” he declared to his wife.

“It never reached her.”

“Then Dave Haley, the dirty slave driver, has held that letter. I’ll see
to this.” He hurried to the postoffice.

“Mr. Haley,” he exclaimed, “I sent a money order letter to Mrs. Gaston
from Boston on Monday a week ago.”

“Yes, sir,” answered Haley in his blandest manner, “it got here the day
after the sale.”

“You’re an infamous liar!” shouted the Preacher.

“Of course! Of course! All Union men are liars to hear rebel traitors
talk.”

“I’ll report you to Washington for this rascality.”

“So do, so do. Mor’n likely the President and the Post-Office
Department’ll be glad to have this information from so great a man.”

As the Preacher was leaving the post-office he encountered the Hon. Tim
Shelby dressed in the height of fashion, his silk hat shining in the
sun, and his eyes rolling with the joy of living. The Preacher stepped
squarely in front of Tim.

“Tim Shelby, I hear you have moved into Mrs. Gaston’s home and are using
her furniture. By whose authority do you dare such insolence?”

“By authority of the law, sir. Mrs. Gaston died intestate. Her effects
are in the hands of our County Administrator, Mr. Ezra Perkins. I’ll be
pleased to receive you, sir, any time you would like to call!” said Tim
with a bow.

“I’ll call in due time,” replied the Preacher, looking Tim straight in
the eye.

Haley had been peeping through the window, watching and listening to
this encounter.

“These charmin’ preachers think they own this county, brother Shelby,”
 laughed Haley as he grasped Tim’s outstretched hand.

“Yes, they are the curse of the state. I wish to God they had succeeded
in burning him alive that night the boys tried it. They’ll get him later
on. Brother Haley, he’s a dangerous man. He must be put out of the way,
or we’ll never have smooth sailing in this county.”

“I believe you’re right, he’s just been in here cussin’ me about that
letter of the widder’s that didn’t get to her in time. He thinks he can
run the post-office.”

“Well, we’ll show him this county’s in the hands of the loyal!” added
Tim.

“Heard the news from Charleston?”

“Heard it? I guess I have. I talked with the commanding General in
Charleston two weeks ago. He told me then he was going to set aside that
decision of the Supreme Court in a ringing order permitting the marriage
of negroes to white women, and commanding its enforcement on every
military post. I see he’s done it in no uncertain words.”

“It’s a great day, brother, for the world. There’ll be no more colour
line.”

“Yes, times have changed,” said Tim with a triumphant smile. “I guess
our white hot-bloods will sweat and bluster and swear a little when they
read that order. But we’ve got the bayonets to enforce it. They’d just
as well cool down.”

“That’s the stuff,” said Haley, taking a fresh chew of tobacco.

“Let ’em squirm. They’re flat on their backs. We are on top, and we
are going to stay on top. I expect to lead a fair white bride into my
house before another year and have poor white aristocrats to tend my
lawn.” Tim worked his ears and looked up at the ceiling in a dreamy sort
of way.

“That’ll be a sight won’t it!” exclaimed Haley with delight. “Where’s
that scoundrel Nelse that lived with Mrs. Gaston?”

“Oh, we fixed him,” said Tim. “The black rascal wouldn’t join the
League, and wouldn’t vote with his people, and still showed fight after
we beat him half to death, so we put a levy of fifty dollars on his
cabin, sold him out, and every piece of furniture, and every rag of
clothes we could get hold of. He’ll leave the country now, or we’ll kill
him next time.”

“You ought to a killed him the first time, and then the job would ha’
been over.”

“Oh, we’ll have the country in good shape in a little while, and don’t
you forget it.”

The news of the order of the military commandant of “District No. 2,”
 comprising the Carolinas, abrogating the decisions of the North Carolina
Supreme Court, forbidding the intermarriage of negroes and whites, fell
like a bombshell on Campbell county. The people had not believed that
the military authorities would dare go to the length of attempting to
force social equality.

This order from Charleston was not only explicit, its language was
peculiarly emphatic. It apparently commanded intermarriage, and ordered
the military to enforce the command at the point of the bayonet.

The feelings of the people were wrought to the pitch of fury. It
needed but a word from a daring leader, and a massacre, of every negro,
scalawag and carpet-bagger in the county might have followed. The Rev.
John Durham was busy day and night seeking to allay excitement and
prevent an uprising of the white population.

Along with the announcement of this military order, came the startling
news that Simon Legree, whose infamy was known from end to end of the
state, was to be the next Governor, and that the Hon. Tim Shelby was a
candidate for Chief Justice of the Supreme Court.

Legree was in Washington at the time on a mission to secure a stand of
twenty thousand rifles from the Secretary of War, with which to arm the
negro troops he was drilling for the approaching election. The grant was
made and Legree came back in triumph with his rifles.

Relief for the ruined people was now a hopeless dream. Black despair
was clutching at every white man’s heart. The taxpayers had held a
convention and sent their representatives to Washington exposing the
monstrous thefts that were being committed under the authority of the
government by the organised band of thieves who were looting the
state. But the thieves were the pets of politicians high in power. The
committee of taxpayers were insulted and sent home to pay their taxes.

And then a thing happened in Hambright that brought matters to a sudden
crisis.

The Hon. Tim Shelby as school commissioner, had printed the notices for
an examination of school teachers for Campbell county. An enormous tax
had been levied and collected by the county for this purpose, but no
school had been opened. Tim announced, however, that the school would be
surely opened the first Monday in October.

Miss Mollie Graham, the pretty niece of the old doctor, was struggling
to support a blind mother and four younger children. Her father and
brother had been killed in the war. Their house had been sold for taxes,
and they were required now to pay Tim Shelby ten dollars a month for
rent. When she saw that school notice her heart gave a leap. If she
could only get the place, it would save them from beggary.

She fairly ran to the Preacher to get his advice.

“Certainly, child, try for it. It’s humiliating to ask such a favour of
that black ape, but if you can save your loved ones, do it.”

So with trembling hand she knocked at Tim’s door. He required all
applicants to apply personally at his house. Tim met her with the bows
and smirks of a dancing master.

“Delighted to see your pretty face this morning, Miss Graham,” he cried
enthusiastically.

The girl blushed and hesitated at the door.

“Just walk right in the parlour, I’ll join you in a moment.”

She bravely set her lips and entered.

“And now what can I do for you, Miss Graham?”

“I’ve come to apply for a teacher’s place in the school.”

“Ah indeed, I’m glad to know that. There is only one difficulty. You
must be loyal. Your people were rebels, and the new government has
determined to have only loyal teachers.”

“I think I’m loyal enough to the old flag now that our people have
surrendered,” said the girl.

“Yes, yes, I dare say, but do you think you can accept the new régime
of government and society which we are now establishing in the South?
We have abolished the colour line. Would you have a mixed school if
assigned one?”

“I think I’d prefer to teach a negro school outright to a mixed one,”
 she said after a moment’s hesitation.

Tim continued, “You know we are living in a new world. The supreme law
of the land has broken down every barrier of race and we are henceforth
to be one people. The struggle for existence knows no race or colour.
It’s a struggle now for bread. I’m in a position to be of great help to
you and your family if you will only let me.”

The girl suddenly rose impelled by some resistless instinct.

“May I have the place then?” she asked approaching the door.

“Well, now you know it depends really altogether on my fancy. I’ll tell
you what I’ll do. You’re still full of silly prejudices. I can see that.
But if you will overcome them enough to do one thing for me as a test,
that will cost you nothing and of which the world will never be the
wiser, I’ll give you the place and more, I’ll remit the ten dollars a
month rent you’re now paying. Will you do it?”

“What is it?” the girl asked with pale quivering lips.

“Let me kiss you--once!” he whispered.

With a scream, she sprang past him out of the door, ran like a deer
across the lawn, and fell sobbing in her mother’s arms when she reached
her home.

The next day the town was unusually quiet. Tim had business with the
Commandant of the company of regulars still quartered at Hambright.
He spent most of the day with him, and walked about the streets
ostentatiously showing his familiarity with the corporal who accompanied
him. A guard of three soldiers was stationed around Tim’s house for two
nights and then withdrawn.

The next night at twelve o’clock two hundred white-robed horses
assembled around the old home of Mrs. Gaston where Tim was sleeping. The
moon was full and flooded-the lawn with silver glory. On those horses
sat two hundred white-robed silent men whose closefitting hood disguises
looked like the mail helmets of ancient knights.

It was the work of a moment to seize Tim, and bind him across a horse’s
back. Slowly the grim procession moved to the court house square.

When the sun rose next morning the lifeless body of Tim Shelby was
dangling from a rope tied to the iron rail of the balcony of the court
house. His neck was broken and his body was hanging low--scarcely three
feet from the ground. His thick lips had been split with a sharp knife
and from his teeth hung this placard:

“_The answer of the Anglo-Saxon race to Negro lips that dare pollute
with words the womanhood of the South. K. K. K._”

And the Ku Klux Klan was master of Campbell county.

The origin of this Law and Order League which sprang up like magic in a
night and nullified the programme of Congress though backed by an army
of a million veteran soldiers, is yet a mystery.

The simple truth is, it was a spontaneous and resistless racial uprising
of clansmen of highland origin living along the Appalachian mountains
and foothills of the South, and it appeared almost simultaneously in
every Southern state produced by the same terrible conditions.

It was the answer to their foes of a proud and indomitable race of men
driven to the wall. In the hour of their defeat they laid down their
arms and accepted in good faith the results of the war. And then, when
unarmed and defenceless, a group of pot-house politicians for political
ends, renewed the war, and attempted to wipe out the civilisation of the
South.

This Invisible Empire of White Robed Anglo-Saxon Knights was simply the
old answer of organised manhood to organised crime. Its purpose was to
bring order out of chaos, protect the weak and defenceless, the widows
and orphans of brave men who had died for their country, to drive from
power the thieves who were robbing the people, redeem the commonwealth
from infamy, and reëstablish civilisation.

Within one week from its appearance, life and property were as safe as
in any Northern community.

When the negroes came home from their League meeting one night they ran
terror stricken past long rows of white horsemen. Not a word was spoken,
but that was the last meeting the “Union League of America” ever held in
Hambright.

Every negro found guilty of a misdemeanor was promptly thrashed and
warned against its recurrence. The sudden appearance of this host of
white cavalry grasping at their throats with the grip of cold steel
struck the heart of Legree and his followers with the chill of a deadly
fear.

It meant inevitable ruin, overthrow, and a prison cell for the
“loyal” statesmen who were with him in his efforts to maintain the new
“republican form of government” in North Carolina.

At the approaching election, this white terror could intimidate every
negro in the state unless he could arm them all, suspend the writ of
_Habeas Corpus_, and place every county under the strictest martial law.

Washington was besieged by a terrified army of the “loyal” who saw their
occupation threatened. They begged for more troops, more guns for negro
militia, and for the reestablishment of universal martial law until the
votes were properly counted.

But the great statesmen laughed them to scorn as a set of weak cowards
and fools frightened by negro stories of ghosts. It was incredible to
them that the crushed, poverty stricken and unarmed South could dare
challenge the power of the National Government. They were sent back with
scant comfort.

The night that Ezra Perkins and Haley got back from Washington, where
they had gone summoned by Legree and Hogg, to testify to the death of
Tim Shelby, they saw a sight that made their souls quake.

At ten o’clock, the Ku Klux Klan held a formal parade through the
streets of Hambright. How the news was circulated nobody knew, but it
seemed everybody in the county knew of it. The streets were lined with
thousands of people who had poured in town that afternoon.

At exactly ten o’clock, a bugle call was heard on the hill to the west
of the town, and the muffled tread of soft shod horses came faintly
on their ears. Women stood on the sidewalks, holding their babies and
smiling, and children were laughing and playing in the streets.

They rode four abreast in perfect order slowly through the town. It was
utterly impossibly to recognise a man or a horse, so complete was the
simple disguise of the white sheet which blanketed the horse fitting
closely over his head and ears and falling gracefully over his form
toward the ground.

No citizen of Hambright was in the procession. They were all in the
streets watching it pass. There were fifteen hundred men in line.
But the reports next day all agreed in fixing the number at over five
thousand.

Perkins and Haley had watched it from a darkened room.

“Brother Haley, that’s the end! Lord I wish I was back in Michigan, jail
er no jail,” said Perkins mopping the perspiration from his brow.

“We’ll have ter dig out purty quick, I reckon,” answered Haley.

“And to think them fools at Washington laughed at us!” cried Perkins
clinching his fists.

And that night, mothers and fathers gathered their children to bed with
a sense of grateful security they had not felt through years of war and
turmoil.




CHAPTER XX--HOW CIVILISATION WAS SAVED

THE success of the Ku Klux Klan was so complete, its organisers were
dazed. Its appeal to the ignorance and superstition of the Negro at once
reduced the race to obedience and order. Its threat against the scalawag
and carpet-bagger struck terror to their craven souls, and the “Union
League,” “Red Strings,” and “Heroes of America” went to pieces with
incredible rapidity.

Major Stuart Dameron, the chief of the Klan in Campbell county was
holding a conference with the Rev. John Durham in his study.

“Doctor, our work has succeeded beyond our wildest dream.”

“Yes, and I thank God we can breathe freely if only for a moment, Major.
The danger now lies in our success. We are necessarily playing with
fire.”

“I know it, and it requires my time day and night to prevent reckless
men from disgracing us.”

“It will not be necessary to enforce the death penalty against any other
man in this county, Major. The execution of Tim Shelby was absolutely
necessary at the time and it has been sufficient.”

“I agree with you. I’ve impressed this on the master of every lodge, but
some of them are growing reckless.”

“Who are they?”

“Young Allan McLeod for one. He is a dare devil and only eighteen years
old.

“He’s a troublesome boy. I don’t seem to have any influence with him.
But I think Mrs. Durham can manage him. He seems to think a great deal
of her, and in spite of his wild habits, he comes regularly to her
Sunday School class.”

“I hope she can bring him to his senses.”

“Leave him to me then a while. We will see what can be done.”

*****

Hogg’s Legislature promptly declared the Scotch-Irish hill counties in a
state of insurrection, passed a militia bill, and the Governor issued a
proclamation suspending the writ of _Habeas Corpus_ in these counties.

Fearing the effects of negro militia in the hill districts, he surprised
Hambright by suddenly marching into the court house square a regiment of
white mountain guerrillas recruited from the outlaws of East Tennessee
and commanded by a noted desperado, Colonel Henry Berry. The regiment
had two pieces of field artillery.

It was impossible for them to secure evidence against any member of
the Klan unless by the intimidation of some coward who could be made to
confess. Not a disguise had ever been penetrated. It was the rule of the
order for its decrees to be executed in the district issuing the decree
by the lodge furthest removed in the county from the scene. In this way
not a man or a horse was ever identified.

The Colonel made an easy solution of this difficulty, however. Acting
under instructions from Governor Hogg, he secured from Haley and Perkins
a list of every influential man in every precinct in the county, and a
list of possible turncoats and cowards. He detailed five hundred of his
men to make arrests, distributed them throughout the county and arrested
without warrants over two hundred citizens in one day.

The next day Berry hand-cuffed together the Rev. John Durham and Major
Dameron, and led them escorted by a company of cavalry on a grand
circuit of the county, that the people might be terrified by the
sight of their chains. An ominous silence greeted them on every
hand. Additional arrests were made by this troop and twenty-five more
prisoners led into Hambright the next day.

The jail was crowded, and the court house was used as a jail. Over a
hundred and fifty men were confined in the court room. Rev. John Durham
was everywhere among the crowd, laughing, joking and cheering the men.

“Major Dameron, a jail never held so many honest men before,” he said
with a smile, as he looked over the crowd of his church members gathered
from every quarter of the county.

“Well, Doctor, you’ve got a quorum here of your church and you can call
them to order for business.”

“That’s a fact, isn’t it?”

“There’s old Deacon Kline over there who looks like he wished he hadn’t
come!” The Preacher walked over to the deacon.

“What’s the matter, brother Kline, you look pensive?”

The deacon laughed. “Yes, I don’t like my bed. I’m used to feathers.”

“Well, they say they are going to give you feathers mixed with tar so
you won’t lose them so easily.”

“I’ll have company, I reckon,” said the deacon with a wink.

“The funny thing, deacon, is that Major Dameron tells me there isn’t a
man in all the crowd of two hundred and fifty arrested who ever went
on a raid. It’s too bad you old fellows have to pay for the follies of
youth.”

“It is tough. But we can stand it, Preacher.” They clasped hands.

“Haven’t smelled a coward anywhere have you, deacon?”

“I’ve seen one or two a little fidgety, I thought. Cheer ’em up with a
word, Preacher.”

Springing on the platform of the judge’s desk he looked over the crowd
for a moment, and a cheer shook the building.

“Boys, I don’t believe there’s a single coward in our ranks.” Another
cheer.

“Just keep cool now and let our enemies do the talking. In ten days
every man of you will be back at home at his work.”

“How will we get out with the writ suspended?” asked a man standing
near.

“That’s the richest thing of all. A United States judge has just decided
that the Governor of the state cannot suspend the rights of a citizen of
the United States under the new Fourteenth Amendment to the Constitution
so recently rammed down our throats. Hogg is hoisted on his own petard.
Our lawyers are now serving out writs of _Habeas Corpus_ before this
Federal judge under the Fourteenth Amendment, and you will be discharged
in less than ten days unless there’s a skunk among you. And I don’t
smell one anywhere.” Again a cheer shook the building.

An orderly walked up to the Preacher and handed him a note.

“What is it?”

“Read it!” The men crowded around.

“Read it, Major Dameron, I’m dumb,” said the Preacher.

“A military order from the dirty rascal. Berry, commanding the
mountain bummers, forbidding the Rev. John Durham to speak during his
imprisonment!”

A roar of laughter followed this announcement.

“That’s cruel! It’ll kill him!” cried deacon Kline as he jabbed the
Preacher in the ribs.

In a few minutes, the Preacher was back in his place with five of the
best singers from his church by his side. He began to sing the old hymns
of Zion and every man in the room joined until the building quivered
with melody.

“Now a good old Yankee hymn, that suits this hour, written by an an old
Baptist preacher I met in Boston the other day!” cried the Preacher.

                   “My country ’tis of thee,

                   Sweet land of liberty,

                        Of thee I sing!”

Heavens, how they sang it, while the Preacher lined it off, stood above
them beating time, and led in a clear mighty voice! Again the orderly
appeared with a note.

“What is it now?” they cried on every side.

Again Major Dameron announced “Military order No. 2, forbidding the Rev.
John Durham to sing or induce anybody to sing while in prison.”

Another roar of laughter that broke into a cheer which made the glass
rattle. When the soldier had disappeared, the Rev. John Durham ascended
the platform, looked about him with a humourous twinkle in his eye,
straightened himself to his full height and crowed like a rooster! A
cheer shook the building to its foundations. Roar after roar of its
defiant cadence swept across the square and made Haley and Perkins
tremble as they looked at each other over their conference table with
Berry.

“What the devil’s the matter now?” cried Haley.

“Do you suppose it’s a rescue?” whispered Perkins.

“No, it’s some new trick of that damned Preacher. I’ll chain him in a
room to himself,” growled Berry.

“Better not, Colonel. He’s the pet of these white devils. Ye’d better
let him alone.” Berry accepted the advice.

Five days later the prisoners were arraigned before the United States
judge, Preston Rivers, at Independence. Not a scrap of evidence could
be produced against them. Governor Hogg was present, with a flaming
military escort. He held a stormy interview with Judge Rivers.

“If you discharge these prisoners, you destroy the government of this
state, sir!” thundered Hogg.

“Are they not citizens of the United States? Does not the Fourteenth
Amendment apply to a white man as well as a negro?” quietly asked the
judge.

“Yes, but they are conspirators against the Union. They are murderers
and felons.”

“Then prove it in my court and I’ll hand them back to you. They are
entitled to a trial, under our Constitution.”

“I’ll demand your removal by the President,” shouted Hogg.

“Get out of this room, or I’ll remove you with the point of my boot!”
 thundered the judge with rising wrath. “You have suspended the writ of
_Habeas Corpus_ to win a political campaign. The Ku Klux Klan has broken
up your Leagues. You are fighting for your life. But I’ll tell you now,
you can’t suspend the Constitution of the United States while I’m a
Federal judge in this state. I am not a henchman of yours to do your
dirty campaign work. The election is but ten days off. Your scheme is
plain enough. But if you want to keep these men in prison it will be
done on sworn evidence of guilt and a warrant, not on your personal
whim.”

The Governor cursed, raved and threatened in vain. Judge Rivers
discharged every prisoner and warned Colonel Berry against the
repetition of such arrests within his jurisdiction.

When these prisoners were discharged, a great mass meeting was called to
give them a reception in the public square of Independence. A platform
was hastily built in the square and that night five thousand excited
people crowded past the stand, shook hands with the men and cheered till
they were hoarse. The Governor watched the demonstration in helpless
fury from his room in the hotel.

The speaking began at nine o’clock. Every discordant element of the old
South’s furious political passions was now melted into harmonious unity.
Whig and Democrat who had fought one another with relentless hatred sat
side by side on that platform. Secessionist and Unionist now clasped
hands. It was a White Man’s Party, and against it stood in solid array
the Black Man’s Party, led by Simon Legree.

Henceforth there could be but one issue, are you a White Man or a Negro?

They declared there was but one question to be settled:--

“_Shall the future American be an Anglo-Saxon or a Mulatto?_”

These determined impassioned men believed that this question was more
important than any theory of tariff or finance and that it was larger
than the South, or even the nation, and held in its solution the
brightest hopes of the progress of the human race. And they believed
that they were ordained of God in this crisis to give this question its
first authoritative answer.

The state burst into a flame of excitement that fused in its white heat
the whole Anglo-Saxon race.

In vain Hogg marched and counter-marched his twenty thousand state
troops. They only added fuel to the fire. If they arrested a man, he
became forthwith a hero and was given an ovation. They sent bands of
music and played at the jail doors, and the ladies filled the jail with
every delicacy that could tempt the appetite or appeal to the senses.

Hogg and Legree were in a panic of fear with the certainty of defeat,
exposure and a felon’s cell yawning before them.

Two days before the election, the prayer meeting was held at eight
o’clock in the Baptist church at Ham-bright. It was the usual mid-week
service, but the attendance was unusually large.

After the meeting, the Preacher, Major Dameron, and eleven men quietly
walked back to the church and assembled in the pastor’s study. The
door opened at the rear of the church and could be approached by a side
street.

“Gentlemen,” said Major Dameron, “I’ve asked you here to-night to
deliver to you the most important order I have ever given, and to have
Dr. Durham as our chaplain to aid me in impressing on you its great
urgency.”

“We’re ready for orders, Chief,” said young Ambrose Kline, the deacon’s
son.

“You are to call out every troop of the Klan in full force the night
before the election. You are to visit every negro in the county, and
warn every one as he values his life not to approach the polls at this
election. Those who come, will be allowed to vote without molestation.
All cowards will stay at home. Any man, black or white, who can be
scared out of his ballot is not fit to have one. Back of every ballot is
the red blood of the man that votes. The ballot is force. This is simply
a test of manhood. It will be enough to show who is fit to rule the
state. As the masters of the eleven township lodges of the Klan, you are
the sole guardians of society to-day. When a civilised government has
been restored, your work will be done.”

“We will do it, sir,” cried Kline.

“Let me say, men,” said the Preacher, “that I heartily endorse the plan
of your chief. See that the work is done thoroughly and it will be done
for all time. In a sense this is fraud. But it is the fraud of war. The
spy is a fraud, but we must use him when we fight. Is war justifiable?

“It is too late now for us to discuss that question. We are in a war,
the most ghastly and hellish ever waged, a war on women and children,
the starving and the wounded, and that with sharpened swords. The Turk
and Saracen once waged such a war. We must face it and fight it out.
Shall we flinch?”

“No! no!” came the passionate answer from every man.

“You are asked to violate for the moment a statutory law. There is a
higher law. You are the sworn officers of that higher law.”

The group of leaders left the church with enthusiasm and on the
following night they carried out their instructions to the letter.

The election was remarkably quiet. Thousands of soldiers were used at
the polls by Hogg’s orders. But they seemed to make no impression on the
determined men who marched up between their files and put the ballots in
the box.

Legree’s ticket was buried beneath an avalanche. The new “Conservative”
 party carried every county in the state save twelve and elected one
hundred and six members of the new Legislature out of a total of one
hundred and twenty.

The next day hundreds of carpet-bagger thieves fled to the North, and
Legree led the procession.

Legree had on deposit in New York two millions of dollars, and the
total amount of his part of the thefts he had engineered reached five
millions. He opened an office on Wall Street, bought a seat in the Stock
Exchange, and became one of the most daring and successful of a group of
robbers who preyed on the industries of the nation.

The new Legislature appointed a Fraud Commission which uncovered
the infamies of the Legree régime, but every thief had escaped. They
promptly impeached the Governor and removed him from office, and the
old commonwealth once more lifted up her head and took her place in the
ranks of civilised communities.




CHAPTER XXI--THE OLD AND THE NEW NEGRO

NELSE was elated over the defeat and dissolution of the Leagues that
had persecuted him with such malignant hatred. When the news of the
election came he was still in bed suffering from his wounds. He had
received an internal injury that threatened to prove fatal.

“Dar now!” he cried, sitting up in bed, “Ain’t I done tole you no
kinky-headed niggers gwine ter run dis gov’ment!”

“Keep still dar, ole man, you’ll be faintin’ ergin,” worried Aunt Eve.

“Na honey, I’se feelin’ better. Gwine ter git up and meander down town
en ax dem niggers how’s de Ku Kluxes comin’ on dese days.”

In spite of all Eve could say he crawled out of bed, fumbled into his
clothes and started down town, leaning heavily on his cane. He had gone
about a block, when he suddenly reeled and fell. Eve was watching him
from the door, and was quickly by his side. He died that afternoon at
three o’clock. He regained consciousness before the end, and asked Eve
for his banjo.

He put it lovingly into the hands of Charlie Gaston who stood by the bed
crying.

“You keep ’er, honey. You lub ’er talk better’n any body in de work,
en ’member Nelse when you hear ’er moan en sigh. En when she talk
short en sassy en make ’em all gin ter shuffle, dat’s me too. Dat’s me
got back in ’er.”

Charlie Gaston rode with Aunt Eve to the cemetery. He walked back home
through the fields with Dick.

“I wouldn’ cry ’bout er ole nigger!” said Dick looking into his
reddened eyes.

“Can’t help it. He was my best friend.”

“Haint I wid you?”

“Yes, but you ain’t Nelse.”

“Well, I stan’ by you des de same.”




CHAPTER XXII--THE DANGER OF PLAYING WITH FIRE

THE following Saturday the Rev. John Durham preached at a cross roads
school house in the woods about ten miles from Hambright. He preached
every Saturday in the year at such a mission station. He was fond of
taking Charlie with him on these trips. There was an unusually large
crowd in attendance, and the Preacher was much pleased at this evidence
of interest. It had been a hard community to impress. At the close of
the services, while the Preacher was shaking hands with the people,
Charlie elbowed his way rapidly among the throng to his side.

“Doctor, there’s a nigger man out at the buggy says he wants to see you
quick,” he whispered.

“All right, Charlie, in a minute.”

“Says to come right now. It’s a matter of life and death, and he don’t
want to come into the crowd.”

A troubled look flashed over the Preacher’s face and he hastily followed
the boy, fearing now a sinister meaning to his great crowd.

“Preacher,” said the negro looking timidly around, “dc Ku Klux is gwine
ter kill ole Uncle Rufus Lattimore ter night. I come ter see ef you
can’t save him. He aint done nuthin’ in God’s work ’cept he would’n’
pull his waggin clear outen de road one day fur dat redheaded Allan
McLeod ter pass, en he cussed ’im black and blue en tole ’im he
gwine git eben wid ’im.”

“How do you know this?”

“I wuz huntin’ in de woods en hear a racket en dim’ er tree. En de Ku
Kluxes had der meetin’ right under de tree. En I hear ev’ry word.”

“Who was leading the crowd?”

“Dat Allan McLeod, en Hose Norman.”

“Where are they going to meet?”

“Right at de cross-roads here at de school house at mid-night. Dey sont
er man atter plenty er licker en dey gwine ter git drunk fust. I was
erfeered ter come ter de meetin’ case I see er lot er de boys in
de crowd. Fur de Lawd sake, Preacher, do save de ole man. He des es
harmless ez er chile. En I’m gwine ter marry his gal, en she des plum
crazy. We’se got five men ter fight fur ’im but I spec dey kill ’em
all ef you can’t he’p us.”

“Are you one of General Worth’s negroes?”

“Yassir. I run erway up here, ’bout dat Free’mens Bureau trick dey put
me up ter, but I’se larned better sense now.”

“Well, Sam, you go to Uncle Rufus and tell him not to be afraid. I’ll
stop this business before night.”

The negro stepped into the woods and disappeared.

“Charlie, we must hurry,” said the Preacher springing in his buggy. He
was driving a beautiful bay mare, a gift from a Kentucky friend. Her
sleek glistening skin and big round veins showed her fine blood.

“Well, Nancy, it’s your life now or a man’s, or maybe a dozen. You must
take us to Hambright in fifty minutes over these rough hills!” cried the
Preacher. And he gave her the reins.

The mare bounded forward with a rush that sent four spinning circles
of sand and dust from each wheel. She had seldom felt the lines slacken
across her beautiful back except in some great emergency. She swung past
buggies and wagons without a pause. The people wondered why the Preacher
was in such a hurry. Over long sand stretches of heavy road the mare
flew in a cloud of dust. The Preacher’s lips were firmly set, and a
scowl on his brow. They had made five miles without slackening up.

The mare was now a mass of white foam, her big-veined nostrils wide open
and quivering, and her eyes flashing with the fire of proud ancestry.
The slackened lines on her back seemed to her an insufferable insult!
“Doctor, you’ll kill Nancy!” pleaded Charlie.

“Can’t help it, son, there’s a lot of drunken devils, masquerading as Ku
Klux, going to kill a man to-night. If we can’t reach Major Dameron’s
in time for him to get a lot of men and stop them there’ll be a terrible
tragedy.”

On the mare flew lifting her proud sensitive head higher and higher,
while her heart beat her foaming flanks like a trip hammer. She never
slackened her speed for the ten miles, but dashed up to Major Dameron’s
gate at sundown, just forty-nine minutes from the time she started. The
Preacher patted her dripping neck.

“Good, Nancy! good! I believe you’ve got a soul!” She stood with her
head still high, pawing the ground.

“Major Dameron, I’ve driven my mare here at a killing speed to tell you
that young McLeod and Hose Norman have a crowd of desperadoes organised
to kill old Rufus Lattimore to-night. You must get enough men together,
and get there in time to stop them. Sam Worth overheard their plot,
knows every one of them, and there will be a battle if they attempt it.”

“My God!” exclaimed the Major.-“You haven’t a minute to spare. They are
already loading up on moonshine whiskey.”

“Doctor Durham, this is the end of the Ku Klux Klan in this county. I’ll
break up every lodge in the next forty-eight hours. It’s too easy for
vicious men to abuse it. Its power is too great. Besides its work is
done.”

“I was just going to ask you to take that step, Major. And now for God’s
sake get there in time to-night. I’d go with you but my mare can’t stand
it.”

“I’ll be there on time. Never fear,” replied the Major, springing on his
horse already saddled at the door.

The Preacher drove slowly to his home, the mare pulling steadily on her
lines. She walked proudly into her stable lot, her head high and fine
eyes flashing, reeled and fell dead in the shafts! The Preacher couldn’t
keep back the tears. He called Dick and left him and Charlie the
sorrowful task of taking off her harness. He hurried into the house and
shut himself up in his study.

That night when the crowd of young toughs assembled at their rendezvous
it was barely ten o’clock.

Suddenly a pistol shot rang from behind the school-house, and before
McLeod and Lis crowd knew what had happened fifty white horsemen wheeled
into a circle about them. They were completely surprised and cowed.
Major Dameron rode up to McLeod.

“Young man, you are the prisoner of the Chief of the Ku Klux Klan of
Campbell county. Lift your hand now and I’ll hang you in five minutes.
You have forfeited your life by disobedience to my orders. You go back
to Hambright with me under guard. Whether I execute you depends on
the outcome of the next two days’ conferences with the chiefs of the
township lodges.”

The Major wheeled his horse and rode home. The next day he ordered
every one of the eleven township chiefs to report in person to him, at
different hours the same day. To each one his message was the same.
He dissolved the order and issued a perpetual injunction against any
division of the Klan ever going on another raid.

There were only a few who could see the wisdom of such hasty action.
The success had been so marvellous, their power so absolute, it seemed
a pity to throw it all away. Young Kline especially begged the Major to
postpone his action.

“It’s impossible Kline. The Klan has done its work. The carpet-baggers
have fled. The state is redeemed from the infamies of a negro
government, and we have a clean economical administration, and we can
keep it so as long as the white people are a unit without any secret
societies.”

“But, Major, we may be needed again.”

“I can’t assume the responsibility any longer. The thing is getting
beyond my control. The order is full of wild youngsters and revengeful
men. They try to bring their grudges against neighbours into the order,
and when I refuse to authorise a raid, they take their disguises and go
without authority. An archangel couldn’t command such a force.”

Within two weeks from the dissolution of the Klan by its Chief, every
lodge had been reorganised. Some of the older men had dropped out, but
more young men were initiated to take their places. Allan McLeod led in
this work of prompt reorganisation, and was elected Chief of the county
by the younger element which now had a large majority.

He at once served notice on Major Dameron, the former Chief, that if he
dared to interfere with his work-even by opening his mouth in criticism,
he would order a raid, and thrash him.

When the Major found this note under his door one morning, he read and
re-read it with increasing wrath. Springing on his horse he went in
search of McLeod. He saw him leisurely crossing the street going from
the hotel to the court house.

Throwing his horse’s rein to a passing boy, he walked rapidly to him
and, without a word, boxed his ears as a father would an impudent child.
McLeod was so astonished, he hesitated for a moment whether to strike
or to run. He did neither, but blushed red and stammered, “What do you
mean, sir?”

“Read that letter, you young whelp!” The Major thrust the letter into
his hand.

“I know nothing of this.”

“You’re a liar. You are its author. No other fool in this county would
have conceived it. Now, let me give you a little notice. I am prepared
for you and your crowd. Call any time. I can whip a hundred puppies of
your breed any time by myself with one hand tied behind me, and never
get a scratch. Dare to lift your finger against me, or any of the men
who refused to go with your new fool’s movement, and I’ll shoot you on
sight as I would a mad dog.” Before McLeod could reply, the Major turned
on his heels and left him.

McLeod made no further attempt to molest the Major, nor did he allow
any raids bent on murder. The sudden authority placed in his hands in
a measure sobered him. He inaugurated a series of petty deviltries,
whipping negroes and poor white men against whom some of his crowd had a
grudge, and annoying the school teachers of negro schools.




CHAPTER XXIII--THE BIRTH OF A SCALAWAG

THE overwhelming defeat of their pets in the South, and the toppling
of their houses of paper built on Negro supremacy, brought to Congress a
sense of guilt and shame, that required action. Their own agents in
the South were now in the penitentiary or in exile for well established
felonies, and the future looked dark.

They found the scapegoat in these fool later day Ku Klux marauders.
Once more the public square at Ham-bright saw the bivouac of the regular
troops of the United States Army. The Preacher saw the glint of their
bayonets with a sense of relief.

With this army came a corps of skilled detectives, who set to work.
All that was necessary, was to arrest and threaten with summary death
a coward, and they got all the information he could give. The jail was
choked with prisoners and every day saw a squad depart for the stockade
at Independence. Sam Worth gave information that led to the immediate
arrest of Allan McLeod. He was the first man led into the jail.

The officers had a long conference with him that lasted four hours.

And then the bottom fell out. A wild stampede of young men for the
West! Somebody who held the names of every man in the order had proved a
traitor.

Every night from hundreds of humble homes might be heard the choking
sobs of a mother saying good-bye in the darkness to the last boy the
war had left her old age. When the good-bye was said, and the father,
waiting in the buggy at the gate, had called for haste, and the boy was
hurrying out with his grip-sack, there was a moan, the soft rush of a
coarse homespun dress toward the gate and her arms were around his neck
again.

“I can’t let you go, child! Lord have mercy! He’s the last!” And the low
pitiful sobs!

“Come, come, now Ma, we must get away from here before the officers are
after him!”

“Just a minute!”

A kiss, and then another long and lingering. A sigh, and then a
smothered choking cry from a mother’s broken heart and he was gone.

Thus Texas grew into the Imperial Commonwealth of the South.

*****

To save appearance McLeod was removed to Independence with the other
prisoners, and in a short time released, with a number of others against
whom insignificant charges were lodged.

When he returned to Hambright the people looked at him with suspicion.

“How is it, young man,” asked the Preacher, “that you are at home so
soon, while brave boys are serving terms in Northern prisons?”

“Had nothing against me,” he replied.

“That’s strange, when Sam Worth swore that you organised the raid to
kill Rufe Lattimore.”

“They didn’t believe him.”

“Well, I’ve an idea that you saved your hide by puking. I’m not sure
yet, but information was given that only the man in command of the whole
county could have possessed.”

“There were a half-dozen men who knew as much as I did. You mustn’t
think me capable of such a thing, Dr. Durham!” protested McLeod with
heightened colour.

“It’s a nasty suspicion. I’d rather sec a child of mine transformed into
a cur dog, and killed for stealing sheep, than fall to the level of such
a man. But only time will prove the issue.”

“I’ve made up my mind to turn over a new leaf,” said McLeod. “I’m sick
of rowdyism. I’m going to be a law-abiding, loyal citizen.”

“That’s just what I’m afraid of!” exclaimed the Preacher with a sneer as
he turned and left him.

And his fears were soon confirmed. Within a month the Independence
Observer contained a dispatch from Washington announcing the appointment
of Allan McLeod a Deputy United States Marshal for the District of
Western North Carolina, together with the information that he had
renounced his allegiance to his old disloyal associates, and had become
an enthusiastic Republican; and that henceforth he would labour with
might and main to establish peace and further the industrial progress of
the South.

“I knew it. The dirty whelp!” cried the Preacher, as he showed the paper
to his wife.

“Now don’t be too hard on the boy, Doctor Durham,” urged his wife. “He
may be sincere in his change of politics. You never did like him.”

“Sincere! yes, as the devil is always sincere. He’s dead in earnest now.
He’s found his level, and his success is sure. Mark my words the boy’s
a villain from the crown of his head to the soles of his feet. He has
bartered his soul to save his skin, and the skin is all that’s left.”

“I’m sorry to think it. I couldn’t help liking him.”

“And that’s the funniest freak I ever knew your fancy to take, my
dear,--I never could understand it.”

When McLeod had established his office in Hambright, he made special
efforts to allay the suspicions against his name. His indignant denials
of the report of his treachery convinced many that he had been wronged.
Two men alone, maintained toward him an attitude of contempt, Major
Dameron and the Preacher.

He called on Mrs. Durham, and with his smooth tongue convinced her
that he had been foully slandered. She urged him to win the Doctor.
Accordingly he called to talk the question over with the Preacher and
ask him for a fair chance to build his character untarnished in the
community.

The Preacher heard him through patiently, but in silence. Allan was
perspiring before he reached the end of his plausible explanation. It
was a tougher task than he thought, this deliberate lying, under the
gaze of those glowing black eyes that looked out from their shaggy brows
and pierced through his inmost soul.

“You’ve got an oily tongue. It will carry you a long way in this world.
I can’t help admiring the skill with which you are fast learning to use
it. You’ve fooled Mrs. Durham with it, but you can’t fool me,” said the
Preacher.

“Doctor, I solemnly swear to you I am not guilty.”

“It’s no use to add perjury to plain lying. I know you did it. I know
it as well as if I were present in that jail and heard you basely betray
the men, name by name, whom you had lured to their ruin.”

“Doctor, I swear you are mistaken!”

“Bah! Don’t talk about it. You nauseate me!” The Preacher sprang to
his feet, paced across the floor, sat down on the edge of his table and
glared at McLeod for a moment. And then with his voice low and quivering
with a storm of emotion he said, “The curse of God upon you--the God of
your fathers! Your fathers in far-off Scotland’s hills, who would have
suffered their tongues torn from their heads and their skin stripped
inch by inch from their flesh sooner than betray one of their clan in
distress. You have betrayed a thousand of your own men, and you, their
sworn chieftain! Hell was made to consume such leper trash!” McLeod was
dazed at first by this outburst. At length he sprang to his feet livid
with rage.

“I’ll not forget this, sir!” he hissed.

“Don’t forget it!” cried the Preacher trembling with passion as he
opened the door. “Go on and live your lie.”




CHAPTER XXIV--A MODERN MIRACLE

MRS. DURHAM, the Doctor wants you,” said Charlie when McLeod’s footfall
had died away.

“Charlie, dear, why don’t you call me ‘Mama’--surely you love me a
little wee bit, don’t you?” she asked, taking the boy’s hand tenderly in
hers.

“Yes’m,” he replied hanging his head.

“Then do say Mama. You don’t know how good it would be in my ears.”

“I try to but it chokes me,” he half whispered, glancing timidly up at
her. “Let me call you Aunt Margaret, I always wanted an aunt and I think
your name Margaret’s so sweet,” he shyly added.

She kissed him and said, “All right, if that’s all you will give me.”
 She passed on into the library where the Preacher waited her.

“My dear, I’ve just given young McLeod a piece of my mind. I wanted to
say to you that you are entirely mistaken in his character. He’s a bad
egg. I know all the facts about his treachery. He’s as smooth a liar as
I’ve met in years.”

“With all his brute nature, there’s some good in him,” she persisted.

“Well, it will stay in him. He will never let it get out.”

“All right, have your way about it for the time. We’ll see who is right
in the long run. Now I’ve a more pressing and tougher problem for your
solution.”

“What is it?”

“Dick.”

“What’s he done this time?”

“He steals everything he can get his hands on.”

“He is a puzzle.”

“He’s the greatest liar I ever saw,” she continued. “He simply will not
tell the truth if he can think up a lie in time. I’d say run him off
the place, but for Charlie. He seems to love the little scoundrel. I’m
afraid his influence over Charlie will be vicious, but it would break
the child’s heart to drive him away. What shall we do with him?”

The Preacher laughed. “I give it up, my dear, you’ve got beyond my
depth now. I don’t know whether he’s got a soul. Certainly the very
rudimentary foundations of morals seem lacking. I believe you could take
a young ape and teach him quicker. I leave him with you. At present it’s
a domestic problem.”

“Thanks, that’s so encouraging.”

Dick was a puzzle and no mistake about it. But to Charlie his rolling
mischievous eyes, his cunning fingers and his wayward imagination were
unfailing fountains of life. He found every bird’s nest within two
miles of town. He could track a rabbit almost as swiftly and surely as
a hound. He could work like fury when he had a mind to, and loaf a half
day over one row of the garden when he didn’t want to work, which was
his chronic condition.

When the revival season set in for the negroes in the summer, the days
of sorrow began for householders. Every negro in the community became
absolutely worthless and remained so until the emotional insanity
attending their meetings wore off.

Aunt Mary, Mrs. Durham’s cook, got salvation over again every summer
with increasing power and increasing degeneration in her work. Some
nights she got home at two o’clock and breakfast was not ready until
nine. Some nights she didn’t get home at all, and Mrs. Durham had to get
breakfast herself.

It was a hard time for Dick who had not yet experienced religion, and
on whom fell the brunt of the extra work and Mrs. Durham’s fretfulness
besides.

“I tell you what less do, Charlie!” he cried one day. “Less go down ter
dat nigger chu’ch, en bus’ up de meetin’! I’se gettin’ tired er dis.”

“How’ll you do it?”

“I show you somefin’?” He reached under his shirt next to his skin, and
pulled out Dr. Graham’s sun glass.

“Where’d you get that, Dick?”

“Foun’ it whar er man lef’ it.” He walled his eyes solemnly.

“Des watch here when I turns ’im in de sun. I kin set dat pile er
straw er fire wid it!”

“You mustn’t set the church afire!” warned Charlie.

“Naw, chile, but I git up in de gallery, en when ole Uncle Josh gins ter
holler en bawl en r’ar en charge, I fling dat blaze er light right on
his bal’ haid, en I set him afire sho’s you bawn!”

“Dick, I wouldn’t do it,” said Charlie, laughing in spite of himself.

Charlie refused to accompany him. But Dick’s mind was set on the
necessity of this work of reform. So in the afternoon he slipped off
without leave and quietly made his way into the gallery of the Negro
Baptist church.

The excitement was running high. Uncle Josh had preached one sermon an
hour in length, and had called up the mourners. At least fifty had come
forward. The benches had been cleared for five rows back from the pulpit
to give plenty of room for the mourners to crawl over the floor, walk
back and forth and shout when they “came through,” and for their friends
to fan them.

This open place was covered with wheat straw to keep the mourners off
the bare floor, and afford some sort of comfort for those far advanced
in mourning, who went into trances and sometimes lay motionless for
hours on their backs or flat on their faces.

The mourners had kicked and shuffled this straw out to the edges and the
floor was bare. Uncle Josh had sent two deacons out for more straw.

In the meantime he was working himself up to another mighty climax of
exhortation to move sinners to come forward.

“Come on ter glory you po, po sinners, en flee ter de Lamb er God befo
de flames er hell swaller you whole! At de last great day de Sperit
’ll flash de light er his shinin’ face on dis ole parch up sinful
worl’, en hit ’ll ketch er fire in er minute, an de yearth ’ll melt
wid furvient heat! Whar ’ll you be den po tremblin’ sinner? Whar ’ll
you be when de flame er de Sperit smites de moon and de stars wid
fire, en dey gin ter drap outen de sky en knock big holes in de burnin’
yearth? Whar ’ll you be when de rocks melt wid dat heat, en de sun
hide his face in de black smoke dat rise fum de pit?”

Moans and groans and shrieks, louder and louder filled the air. Uncle
Josh paused a moment and looked for his deacons with the straw. They
were just coming up the steps with a great armful over their heads.

“What’s de matter wid you breddern! Fetch on dat wheat straw! Here’s
dese tremblin’ souls gwine down inter de flames er hell des fur de lak
er wheat straw!”

The brethren hurried forward with the wheat straw, and just as they
reached Uncle Josh standing perspiring in the midst of his groaning
mourners, Dick flashed from the gallery a stream of dazzling light on
the old man’s face and held it steadily on his bald head. Josh was too
astonished to move at first. He was simply paralysed with fear. It was
all right to talk about the flame of the Spirit, but he wasn’t exactly
ready to run into it. Suddenly he clapped his hands on the top of his
head and sprang straight up in the air yelling in a plain everyday
profane voice, “God-der-mighty! What’s dat?”

The brethren holding the straw saw it and stood dumb with terror. The
light disappeared from Uncle Josh’s head and lit the straw in splendour
on one of the deacon’s shoulders. Aunt Mary’s voice was heard above the
mourners’ din, clear, shrill and soul piercing.

“G-l-o-r-y! G-l-o-r-y ter God! De flame er de Sperit! De judgment day!
Yas Lawd, I’se here! Glory! Halleluyah!”

Suddenly the straw on the deacon’s back burst into flames! And
pandemonium broke loose. A weak-minded sinner screamed, “De flames er
Hell!”

The mourners smelled the smoke and sprang from the floor with white
staring eyes. When they saw the fire and got their bearings they made
for the open,--they jumped on each others’ back and made for the door
like madmen. Those nearest the windows sprang through, and when the
lower part of the window was jammed, big buck negroes jumped on the
backs of the lower crowd and plunged through the two upper sashes with a
crash that added new terror to the panic.

In two minutes the church was empty, and the yard full of crazy,
shouting negroes.

Dick stepped from the gallery into the crowd as the last ones emerged,
ran up to the pulpit and stamped out the fire in the straw with his bare
feet. He looked around to see if they had left anything valuable behind
in the stampede, and sauntered leisurely out of the church.

“Now dog-gone ’em let ’em yell!” he muttered to himself.

When Uncle Josh sufficiently recovered his senses to think, and saw
the church still standing, with not even a whiff of smoke to be seen,
instead of the roaring furnace he had expected, he was amazed. He
called his scattered deacons together and they went cautiously back to
investigate.

“Hit’s no use in talkin’ Bre’r Josh, dey sho wuz er fire!” cried one of
the deacons.

“Sho’s de Lawd’s in heaben. I feel it gittin’ on my fingers fo I drap
dat straw!” said another.

“Hit smite me fust right on top er my haid!” whispered Uncle Josh in
awe.

They cautiously approached the pulpit and there in front of it lay the
charred fragments of the burned straw pile.

They gathered around it in awe-struck wonder. One of them touched it
with his foot.

“Doan do dat!” cried Uncle Josh, lifting his hand with authority.

They drew back, Uncle Josh saw the immense power in that heap of charred
straw. Some of it was a little damp and it had been only partly burned.

“Dar’s de mericle er de Sperit!” he solemnly declared.

“Yas Lawd!” echoed a deacon.

“Fetch de hammer, en de saw, en de nails, en de boards en build right
dar en altar ter de Sperit!” were his prophetic commands.

And they did. They got an old show case of glass, put the charred straw
in it, and built an open box work around it just where it fell in front
of the pulpit.

Then a revival broke out that completely paralysed the industries of
Campbell county. Every negro stopped work and went to that church. Uncle
Josh didn’t have to preach or to plead. They came in troops towards the
magic altar, whose fame and mystery had thrilled every superstitious
soul with its power. The benches were all moved out and the whole church
floor given up to mourners. Uncle Josh had an easy time walking around
just adding a few terrifying hints to trembling sinners, or helping to
hold some strong sister when she had “come through,” with so much glory
in her bones that there was danger she would hurt somebody.

After a week the matter became so serious that the white people set in
motion an investigation of the affair. Dick had thrown out a mysterious
hint that he knew some things that were very funny.

“Doan you tell nobody!” he would solemnly say to Charlie.

And then he would lie down on the grass and roll and laugh. At length
by dint of perseverance, and a bribe of a quarter, the Preacher induced
Dick to explain the mystery. He did, and it broke up the meeting.

Uncle Josh’s fury knew no bounds. He was heartbroken at the sudden
collapse of his revival, chagrined at the recollection of his own terror
at the fire, and fearful of an avalanche of backsliders from the meeting
among those who had professed even with the greatest glory.

He demanded that the Preacher should turn Dick over to him for
correction. The Preacher took a few hours to consider whether he should
whip him himself or turn him over to Uncle Josh. Dick heard Uncle Josh’s
demand. Out behind the stable he and Charlie held a council of war.

“You go see Miss Mar’get fur me, en git up close to her, en tell her
taint right ter ’low no low down black nigger ter whip me!”

“All right Dick, I will,” agreed Charlie.

“Case ef ole Josh beats me I gwine ter run away. I nebber git ober dat.”

Dick had threatened to run away often before when he wanted to force
Charlie to do something for him. Once he had gone a mile out of town
with his clothes tied in a bundle, and Charlie trudging after him
begging him not to leave.

The boy did his best to save Dick the humiliation of a whipping at the
hands of Uncle Josh, but in vain.

When Uncle Josh led him out to the stable lot, his face was not pleasant
to look upon. There was a dangerous gleam in Dick’s eye that boded no
good to his enemy.

“You imp er de debbil!” exclaimed Uncle Josh shaking his switch with
unction.

“I fool you good enough, you ole bal’ headed ape!” answered Dick
gritting his teeth defiantly.

“I make you sing enudder chune fo I’se done wid you.”

“En if you does, nigger, you know what I gwine do fur you?” cried Dick
rolling his eyes up at his enemy.

“What kin you do, honey? asked Uncle Josh, humouring his victim now with
the evident relish of a cat before his meal on a mouse.

“Ef you hits me hard, I gwine ter burn you house down on you haid some
night, en run erway des es sho es I kin stick er match to it,” said
Dick.

“You is, is you?” thundered Josh with wrath.

“Dat I is. En I burn yo ole chu’ch de same night.”

Uncle Josh was silent a moment. Dick’s words had chilled his heart.
He was afraid of him, but he was afraid to back down from what was now
evidently his duty. So without further words he whipped him. Yet to save
his life he could not hit him as hard as he thought he deserved.

That night Dick disappeared from Hambright, and for weeks every evening
at dusk the wistful face of Charlie Gaston could be seen on the big hill
to the south of town vainly watching for somebody. He would always take
something to eat in his pockets, and when he gave up his vigil he would
place the food under a big shelving rock where they had often played
together. But the birds and ground squirrels ate it. He would slip back
the next day hoping to see Dick jump out of the cave and surprise him.

And then at last he gave it up, sat down under the rock and cried. He
knew Dick would grow to be a man somewhere out in the big world and
never come back.




BOOK TWO--LOVE’S DREAM




CHAPTER I--BLUE EYES AND BLACK HAIR


SHE’S coming next month, Charlie,” said Mrs. Durham, looking up from a
letter.

“Who is it now. Auntie, another divinity with which you are going to
overwhelm me?” asked Gaston smiling as he laid his book down and leaned
back in his chair.

“Some one I’ve been telling you about for the last month.”

“Which one?”

“Oh, you wretch! You don’t think about anything except your books. I’ve
been dinning that girl’s praises into your ears for fully five weeks,
and you look at me in that innocent way and ask which one?”

“Honestly, Aunt Margaret, you’re always telling me about some beautiful
girl, I get them mixed. And then when I see them, they don’t come up to
the advance notices you’ve sent out. To tell you the truth, you are
such a beautiful woman, and I’ve got so used to your standard, the girls
can’t measure up to it.”

“You flatterer. A woman of forty-two a standard of beauty! Well, it’s
sweet to hear you say it, you handsome young rascal.”

“It’s the honest truth. You are one of the women who never show the
addition of a year. You have spoiled my eyesight for ordinary girls.”

“Hush, sir, you don’t dare to talk to any girl like you talk to me. They
all say you’re afraid of them.”

“Well, I am, in a sense. I’ve been disappointed so many times.”

“Oh! you ’ll find her yet and when you do!”--

“What do you think will happen?”

“I’m certain you will be the biggest fool in the state.”

“That will make it nice for the girl, won’t it?”

“Yes, and I shall enjoy your antics. You who have dissected love with
your brutal German philosophy, and found every girl’s faults with such
ease,--it will be fun to watch you flounder in the meshes at last.”

“Auntie, seriously, it will be the happiest day of my life. For four
years my dreams have been growing more and more impossible. Who is this
one?”

“She is the most beautiful girl I know, and the brightest and the best,
and if she gets hold of you she will clip your wings and bring you down
to earth. I ’ll watch you with interest,” said Mrs. Durham looking
over the letter again and laughing.

“What are you laughing at?”

“Just a little joke she gets off in this letter.”

“But who is she? You haven’t told me.”

“I did tell you--she’s General Worth’s daughter, Miss Sallie. She writes
she is coming up to spend a month at the Springs, with her friend Helen
Lowell, of Boston, and wants me to corral all the young men in the
community and have them fed and in fine condition for work when they
arrive.”

“She evidently intends to have a good time.”

“Yes, and she will.”

“Fortunately my law practice is not rushing me at this season. My total
receipts for June last year were two dollars and twenty-five cents. It
will hardly go over two-fifty this year.”

“I’ve told her you’re a rising young lawyer.”

“I have plenty of room to rise, Auntie. If you will just keep on letting
me board with you, I hope to work my practice up to ten dollars a month
in the course of time.”

“Don’t you want to hear something about Miss Sallie?”

“Of course, I was just going to ask you if she’s as homely as that last
one you tried to get off on me.”

“I’ve told you she’s a beauty. She made a sensation at her finishing
school in Baltimore. It’s funny that she was there the last year you
were at the Johns Hopkins University. She’s the belle of Independence,
rich, petted, and the only child of old General Worth, who thinks the
sun rises and sets in her pretty blue eyes.”

“So she has blue eyes?”

“Yes, blue eyes and black hair.”

“What a funny combination! I never saw a girl with blue eyes and black
hair.”

“It’s often seen in the far South. I expect you to be drowned in those
blue eyes. They are big, round and child-like, and look out of their
black lashes as though surprised at their dark setting. This contrast
accents their dreamy beauty, and her eyes seem to swim in a dim blue
mist like the point where the sea and sky meet on the horizon far out on
the ocean. She is bright, witty, romantic and full of coquetry. She is
determined to live her girl’s life to its full limit. She is fond of
society and dances divinely.”

“That’s bad. I never even cut the pigeon’s wing in my life--and I’m too
old to learn.”

“She has a full queenly figure, small hands and feet, delicate wrists, a
dimple in one cheek only, and a mass of brown-black hair that curls when
it’s going to rain.”

“That’s fine, we wouldn’t need a barometer on life’s voyage, would we?”

“No, but you will be looking for a pilot and a harbour before you’ve
known her a month. Her upper lip is a little fuller and projects
slightly over the lower, and they are both beautifully fluted and curved
like the petals of a flower, which makes the most tantalising mouth a
standing challenge for a kiss.”

“Oh! Auntie, you’re joking! You never saw such a girl. You’re breaking
into my heart, stealing glances at my ideal.”

“All right, sir, wait and see for yourself. She has pretty shell-like
ears, her laughter is full, contagious, and like music. She plays
divinely on the piano, can’t sing a note, but dresses to kill. You might
as well wind up your affairs, and get ready for the first serious work
of your life. You will have your hands full after you see her.”

“But did I understand you to say she’s rich?”

“Yes, they say her father is worth half a million.”

“Do you think she could be interested in the poor in this county?”

“Yes, she doesn’t seem to know she’s an heiress. Her father, the
General, is a deacon in the Baptist church at Independence, and hates
dudes and fops with all his old-fashioned soul. His idea of a man is one
of character, and the capacity of achievement, not merely a possessor of
money. Still, I imagine he is going to give any man trouble who tries to
take his daughter away from him.”

“I’m afraid that money lets me out of the race.”

“Nothing of the sort, when you see her you will never allow a little
thing like that to worry you.”

“It’s not her dollars that will worry me. It’s the fact that she’s got
them and I haven’t. But, anyhow, Auntie, from your description you can
book me for one night at least.”

“I’m going to book you for her lackey, her slave, devoted to her every
whim while she’s here. One night--the idea!”

“Auntie, you’re too generous to others. I’ve no notion all this
rigmarole about your Miss Sallie Worth is true. But I ’ll do anything
to please you.”

“Very well, I ’ll see whom you are trying to please later.”

“I must go,” said Gaston, hastily rising. “I have an engagement to
discuss the coming political campaign with the Hon. Allan McLeod, the
present Republican boss of the state.”

“I didn’t know you hobnobbed with the enemy.”

“I don’t. But as far as I can understand him, he purposes to take me
up on an exceeding high mountain and offer me the world and the fulness
thereof. We all like to be tempted whether we fall or not. The Doctor
hates McLeod. I think he holds some grudge against him. What do you
think of him, Auntie? He swears by you. I used to dislike him as a boy,
but he seems a pretty decent sort of fellow now, and I can’t help liking
just a little anybody who loves you. I confess he has a fascination for
me.”

“Why do you ask my opinion of him?” slowly asked Mrs. Durham.

“Because I’m not quite sure of his honesty. He talks fairly, but there’s
something about him that casts a doubt over his fairest words. He says
he has the most important proposition of my life to place before me
to-day, and I’m at a loss how to meet him--whether as a well-meaning
friend or a scheming scoundrel. He’s a puzzle to me.”

“Well Charlie, I don’t mind telling you that he is a puzzle to me.
I’ve always been strangely attracted to him, even when he was a big
red-headed brute of a boy. The Doctor always disliked him and I thought,
misjudged him. He has always paid me the supremest deference, and of
late years the most subtle flattery. No woman, who feels her life a
failure, as I do mine, can be indifferent to such a compliment from
a man of trained mind and masterful character. This is a sore subject
between the Doctor and myself. And when I see him shaking hands a little
too lingeringly with admiring sisters after his services, I repay him
with a chat with my devoted McLeod. Don’t ask me. I like him, and I
don’t like him. I admire him and at the same time I suspect and half
fear him.”

“Strange we feel so much alike about him. But your heart has always been
very close to mine, since you slipped your arm around me that night
my mother died. I know about what he will say, and I know about what I
’ll do.” He stooped and kissed his fostermother tenderly.

“Charlie, I’m in earnest about my pretty girl that’s coming. Don’t
forget it.”

“Bah! You’ve fooled me before.”




CHAPTER II--THE VOICE OF THE TEMPTER


McLEOD was waiting with some impatience in his room at the hotel.

“Walk in Gaston, you’re a little late. However, better late than never.”
 McLeod plunged directly into the purpose of his visit.

“Gaston you’re a man of brains, and oratorical genius. I heard your
speech in the last Democratic convention in Raleigh, and I don’t say
it to flatter you, that was the greatest speech made in any assembly in
this state since the war.”

“Thanks!” said Gaston with a wave of his arm.

“I mean it. You know too much to be in sympathy with the old moss-backs
who are now running this state. For fourteen years, the South has
marched to the polls and struck blindly at the Republican party, and
three times it struck to kill. The Southern people have nothing in
common with these Northern Democrats who make your platforms and
nominate your candidate. You don’t ask anything about the platform or
the man. You would vote for the devil if the Democrats nominated him,
and ask no questions; and what infuriates me is you vote to enforce
platforms that mean economic ruin to the South.”

“Man shall not live by bread alone, McLeod.”

“Sure, but he can’t live on dead men’s bones. You vote in solid mass
on the Negro question, which you settled by the power of Anglo-Saxon
insolence when you destroyed the Reconstruction governments at a blow.
Why should you keep on voting against every interest of the South,
merely because you hate the name Republican?”

“Why? Simply because so long as the Negro is here with a ballot in his
hands he is a menace to civilisation. The Republican party placed him
here. The name Republican will stink in the South for a century, not
because they beat us in war, but because two years after the war, in
profound peace, they inaugurated a second war on the unarmed people of
the South, butchering the starving, the wounded, the women and children.
God in heaven, will I ever forget that day they murdered my mother!
Their attempt to establish with the bayonet an African barbarism on the
ruins of Southern society was a conspiracy against human progress. It
was the blackest crime of the nineteenth century.”

“You are talking in a dead language. We are living in a new world.”

“But principles are eternal.”

“Principles? I’m not talking about principles. I’m talking about
practical politics. The people down here haven’t voted on a principle in
years. They’ve been voting on old Simon Legree. He left the state nearly
a quarter of a century ago.”

“Yes, McLeod, but his soul has gone marching on. The Republican party
fought the South because such men as Legree lived in it, and abused the
negroes, and the moment they won, turn and make Legree and his breed
their pets. Simon Legree is more than a mere man who stole five
millions of dollars, alienated the races, and covered the South with the
desolation of anarchy. He is an idea. He represents everything that the
soul of the South loathes, and that the Republican party has tried to
ram down our throats, Negro supremacy in politics, and Negro equality in
society.”

“You are talking about the dead past, Gaston. I’m surprised at a man
of your brain living under such a delusion. How can there be Negro
supremacy when they are in a minority?”

“Supremacy under a party system is always held by a minority. The
dominant faction of a party rules the party, and the successful party
rules the state. If the Negro only numbered one-fifth the population and
they all belonged to one party, they could dictate the policy of that
party.”

“You know that a few white brains really rule that black mob.”

“Yes, but the black mob defines the limits within which you live and
have your being.”

“Gaston, the time has come to shake off this nightmare, and face the
issues of our day and generation. We are going to win in this campaign,
but I want you. I like you. You are the kind of man we need now to take
the field and lead in this campaign.”

“How are you going to win?”

“We are going to form a contract with the Farmer’s Alliance and break
the backbone of the Bourbon Democracy of the South. The farmers have now
a compact body of 50,000 voters, thoroughly organised, and combined with
the negro vote we can hold this state until Gabriel blows his trumpet.”

“That’s a pretty scheme. Our farmers are crazy now with all sorts of
fool ideas,” said Gaston thoughtfully.

“Exactly, my boy, and we’ve got them by the nose.”

“If you can carry through that programme, you’ve got us in a hole.”

“In a hole? I should say we’ve got you in the bottomless pit with the
lid bolted down. You ’ll not even rise at the day of judgment. It
won’t be necessary!” laughed McLeod, and as he laughed changed his tone
in the midst of his laughter.

“And what is the great proposition you have to make to me?” asked
Gaston.

“Join with us in this new coalition, and stump the state for us.
Your fortune will be made, win or lose. I ’ll see that the National
Republican Committee pays you a thousand dollars a week for your
speeches, at least five a week, two hundred dollars apiece. If we lose,
you will make ten thousand dollars in the canvass, and stand in line for
a good office under the National Administration. If we win, I ’ll
put you in the Governor’s Palace for four years. There’s a tide in the
affairs of men, you know. It’s at the flood at this moment for you.”

Gaston was silent a moment and looked thoughtfully out of the window.
The offer was a tremendous temptation. A group of old fogies had
dominated the Democratic party for ten years, and had kept the younger
men down with their war cries and old soldier candidates, until he had
been more than once disgusted. He felt as sure of McLeod’s success as if
he already saw it. It was precisely the movement he had warned the old
pudding-head set against in the preceding campaign in which they had
deliberately alienated the Farmer’s Alliance. They had pooh poohed his
warning and blundered on to their ruin.

It was the dream of his life to have money enough to buy back his
mother’s old home, beautify it, and live there in comfort with a great
library of books he would gather. The possibility of a career at the
state Capital and then at Washington for so young a man was one of
dazzling splendour to his youthful mind. For the moment it seemed almost
impossible to say no.

McLeod saw his hesitation and already smiled with the certainty of
triumph. A cloud overspread his face when Gaston at length said, “I
’ll give you my answer to-morrow.”

“All right, you’re a gentleman. I can trust you. Our conversation is of
course only between you and me.”

“Certainly, I understand that.”

All that day and night he was alone fighting out the battle in his soul.
It was an easy solution of life that opened before him. The attainment
of his proudest ambitions lay within his grasp almost without a
struggle. Such a campaign, with his name on the lips of surging
thousands around those speaker’s stands, was an idea that fascinated him
with a serpent charm.

All that he had to do was to give up his prejudices on the Negro
question. His own party stood for no principle except the supremacy of
the Anglo-Saxon. On the issue of the party platforms, he was in accord
with the modern Republican utterances at almost every issue, and so were
his associates in the Southern Democracy. The Negro was the point.
What was the use now of persisting in the stupid reiteration of the old
slogan of white supremacy? The Negro had the ballot. He was still the
ward of the nation, and likely to be for all time, so far as he could
see. The Negro was the one pet superstition of the millions who
lived where no negro dwelt. His person and his ballot were held more
peculiarly sacred and inviolate in the South than that of any white man
elsewhere.

The possibility of a reunion in friendly understanding and sympathy
between the masses of the North and the masses of the South seemed
remote and impossible in his day and generation.

He asked himself the question, could such a revolution toward universal
suffrage ever go backward, no matter how base the motive which gave it
birth? Why not give up impracticable dreams, accept things as they are,
and succeed?

He did not confer with the Rev. John Durham on this question, because
he knew what his answer would be without asking. A thousand times he
had said to him, with the emphasis he could give to words, “_My boy, the
future American must be an Anglo-Saxon or a Mulatto! We are now deciding
which it shall be. The future of the world depends on the future of this
Republic. This Republic can have no future if racial lines are broken,
and its proud citizenship sinks to the level of a mongrel breed of
Mulattoes. The South must tight this battle to a finish. Two thousand
years look down upon the struggle, and Two thousand years of the future
bend low to catch the message of life or death!_”

He could see now his drawn face with its deep lines and his eyes
flashing with passion as he said this. These words haunted Gaston now
with strange power as he walked along the silent streets.

He walked down past his old home, stopped and leaned on the gate, and
looked at it long and lovingly. What a flood of tender and sorrowful
memories swept his soul! He lived over again the days of despair when
his mother was an invalid. He recalled their awful poverty, and then the
last terrible day with that mob of negroes trampling over the lawn and
overrunning the house. He saw the white face of his mother whose memory
he loved as he loved life. And now he recalled a sentence from her dying
lips. He had all but lost its meaning.

“You will grow to be a brave strong man. You will fight this battle out,
and win back our home, and bring your own bride here in the far away
days of sunshine and success I see for you.”

_You will fight this battle out_--he had almost lost that sentence in
his hunger for that which followed. It came to his soul now ringing like
a trumpet call to honour and duty.

He turned on his heel and walked rapidly home. He looked at his watch.
It was two o’clock in the morning.

“We will fight it out on the old lines,” he said to McLeod next day.

“You will find me a pretty good fighter.”

“Unto death, let it be,” answered Gaston firmly setting his lips.

“I admire your pluck, but I’m sorry for your judgment. You know you’re
beaten before you begin.”

“Defeat that’s seen has lost its bitterness before it comes.”

“Then get ready the flowers for the funeral. I hoped you would have
better sense. You are one of the men now I ’ll have to crush first,
thoroughly, and for all time. I’m not afraid of the old fools. I ’ll
be fair enough to tell you this,” said McLeod.

“Not since Legree’s day has the Republican party had so dangerous a man
at its head,” said Gaston thoughtfully to himself as McLeod strode away
across the square. “He has ten times the brains of his older master, and
none of his superstitions. He will give me a hard fight.”




CHAPTER III--FLORA

HAMBRIGHT had changed but little in the eighteen years of peace that
had followed the terrors of Legree’s régime. The population had doubled,
though but few houses had been built. The town had not grown from the
development of industry, but for a very simple reason--the country
people had moved into the town, seeking refuge from a new terror that
was growing of late more and more a menace to a country home, the roving
criminal negro.

The birth of a girl baby was sure to make a father restless, and when
the baby looked up into his face one day with the soft light of a
maiden, he gave up his farm and moved to town.

The most important development of these eighteen years was the complete
alienation of the white and black races as compared with the old
familiar trust of domestic life.

When Legree finished his work as the master artificer of the
Reconstruction Policy, he had dug a gulf between the races as deep
as hell. It had never been bridged. The deed was done and it had
crystallised into the solid rock that lies at the basis of society. It
was done at a formative period, and it could no more be undone now than
you could roll the universe back in its course.

The younger generation of white men only knew the Negro as an enemy of
his people in politics and society.

He never came in contact with him except in menial service, in which
the service rendered was becoming more and more trifling, and his habits
more insolent. He had his separate schools, churches, preachers and
teachers, and his political leaders were the beneficiaries of Legree’s
legacies.

With the Anglo-Saxon race guarding the door of marriage with fire and
sword, the effort was being made to build a nation inside a nation of
two antagonistic races. No such thing had ever been done in the history
of the human race, even under the development of the monarchial and
aristocratic forms of society. How could it be done under the formulas
of Democracy with Equality as the fundamental basis of law? And yet this
was the programme of the age.

Gaston was feeling blue from the reaction which followed his temptation
by McLeod. His duty was clear the night before as he walked firmly
homeward, recalling the tragedy of the past. Now in the cold light
of day, the past seemed far away and unreal. The present was near,
pressing, vital. He laid down a book he was trying to read, locked his
office and strolled down town to see Tom Camp.

This old soldier had come to be a sort of oracle to him. His affection
for the son of his Colonel was deep and abiding, and his extravagant
flattery of his talents and future were so evidently sincere they always
acted as a tonic. And he needed a tonic to-day.

Tom was seated in a chair in his yard under a big cedar, working on a
basket, and a little golden-haired girl was playing at his feet. It was
his old home he had lost in Legree’s day, but had got back through the
help of General Worth, who came up one day and paid back Tom’s gift of
lightwood in gleaming yellow metal. His long hair and full beard were
white now, and his eyes had a soft deep look that told of sorrows borne
in patience and faith beyond the ken of the younger man. It was this
look on Tom’s face that held Gaston like a magnet when he was in
trouble.

“Tom, I’m blue and heartsick. I’ve come down to have you cheer me up a
little.”

“You’ve got the blues? Well that is a joke!” cried Tom. “You, young and
handsome, the best educated man in the county, the finest orator in
the state, life all before you, and God fillin’ the world to-day with
sunshine and spring flowers, and all for you! You blue! That is a joke.”
 And Tom’s voice rang in hearty laughter.

“Come here, Flora, and kiss me, you won’t laugh at me, will you?”

The child climbed up into his lap, slipped her little arms around his
neck and hugged and kissed him.

“Now, once more, dearie, long and close and hard--oh! That’s worth a
pound of candy!” Again she squeezed his neck and kissed him, looking
into his face with a smile.

“I love you, Charlie,” she said with quaint seriousness.

“Do you, dear? Well, that makes me glad. If I can win the love of as
pretty a little girl as you I’m not a failure, am I?” And he smoothed
her curls.

“Ain’t she sweet?” cried Tom with pride as he laid aside his basket and
looked at her with moistened eyes.

“Tom, she’s the sweetest child I ever saw.”

“Yes, she’s God’s last and best gift to me, to show me He still loved
me. Talk about trouble. Man, you’re a baby. You ain’t cut your teeth
yet. Wait till you’ve seen some things I’ve seen. Wait till you’ve seen
the light of the world go out, and staggerin’ in the dark met the devil
face to face, and looked him in the eye, and smelled the pit. And then
feel him knock you down in it, and the red waves roll over you and
smother you. I’ve been there.”

Tom paused and looked at Gaston. “You weren’t here when I come to the
end of the world, the time when that baby was born, and Annie died
with the little red bundle sleepin’ on her breast. The oldest girl was
murdered by Legree’s nigger soldiers. Then Annie give me that little
gal. Lord, I was the happiest old fool that ever lived that day! And
then when I looked into Annie’s dead face, I went down, down, down! But
I looked up from the bottom of the pit and I saw the light of them
blue eyes and I heard her callin’ me to take her. How I watched her and
nursed her, a mother and a father to her, day and night, through the
long years, and how them little fingers of hers got hold of my heart!
Now, I bless the Lord for all His goodness and mercy to me. She will
make it all right. She’s going to be a lady and such a beauty! She’s
goin’ to school now, and me and the General’s goin’ to take her ter
college bye and bye, and she’s goin’ to marry some big handsome fellow
like you, and her crippled grey haired daddy ’ll live in her house in
his old age. The Lord is my shepherd I shall not want.”

“Tom, you make me ashamed.”

“You ought to be, man, a youngster like you to talk about gettin’ the
blues. What’s all your education for?”

“Sometimes I think that only men like you have ever been educated.”

“G’long with your foolishness, boy. I ain’t never had a show in this
world. The nigger’s been on my back since I first toddled into the
world, and I reckon he ’ll ride me into the grave. They are my only
rivals now making them baskets and they always undersell me.”

Gaston started as Tom uttered the last sentence.

“With you, boy, it’s all plain sailin’. You’re the best looking chap in
the county. I was a dandy when I was young. It does me good to look at
you if you don’t care nothin’ about fine clothes. Then you’re as sharp
as a razor. There ain’t a man in No’th Caliny that can stand up agin you
on the stump. I’ve heard ’em all. You ’ll be the Governor of this
state.”

That was always the climax of Tom’s prophetic flattery. He could think
of no grander end of a human life than to crown it in the Governor’s
Palace of North Carolina. He belonged to the old days when it was a
bigger thing to be the Governor of a great state than to hold any office
short of the Presidency,--when men resigned seats in the United States
Senate to run for Governor, and when the national government was so
puny a thing that the bankers of Europe refused to loan money on United
States bonds unless countersigned by the State of Virginia. And that was
not so long ago. The bankers sent that answer to Buchanan’s Secretary of
the Treasury.

“Tom, you’ve lifted me out of the dumps. I owe you a doctor’s fee,”
 cried Gaston with enthusiasm as he placed Flora back on the grass and
started to his office.

“All I charge you is to come again. The old man’s proud of his young
friend. You make me feel like I’m somebody in the old world after all.
And some day when you’re great and rich and famous and the world’s full
of your name, I ’ll tell folks I know you like my own boy, and I ’ll
brag about how many times you used to come to see me.”

“Hush, Tom, you make me feel silly,” said Gaston as he warmly pressed
the old fellow’s hand. He went back toward his office with lighter step
and more buoyant heart. His mind was as clear as the noonday sun that
was now flooding the green fresh world with its splendour. He would
stand by his own people. He would sink or swim with them. If poverty and
failure were the result, let it be so. If success came, all the better.
There were things more to be desired than gold.




CHAPTER IV--THE ONE WOMAN


GASTON called at the post-office to get his mail.

One relief the Cleveland administration had brought Hambright--a decent
citizen in charge of the post-office. Dave Haley had given place to
a Democrat and was now scheming and working with McLeod for the
“salvation” of it the state, which of course meant for the old slave
trader the restoration of his office under a Republican administration.
If the South had held no other reason for hating the Republican party,
the character of the men appointed to Federal office was enough to send
every honest man hurrying into the opposite party without asking any
questions as to its principles.

Sam Love, the new postmaster was a jovial, honest, lazy, good-natured
Democrat whose ideal of a luxurious life was attained in his office. He
handed Gaston his mail with a giggle.

“What’s the matter with you, Sam?”

“Nuthin’ ‘tall. I just thought I’d tell you that I like her
handwriting,” he laughed.

“How dare you study the handwriting on my letters, sir!”

“What’s the use of being postmaster? There ain’t no big money in it. I
just take pride in the office,” said Sam genially. “That’s a new one,
ain’t it?”

Gaston looked at the letter incredulously. It was a new one,--a big
square envelope with a seal on the back of it, addressed to him in the
most delicate feminine hand, and postmarked “Independence.”

“Great Scott, this is interesting,” he cried, breaking the seal.

When the postmaster saw he was going to open it right there in the
office, he stepped around in front and looking over his shoulder said,
“What is it, Charlie?”

“It’s an invitation from the Ladies’ Memorial Association to deliver the
Memorial day oration at Independence the 10th of May. That’s great. No
money in it, but scores of pretty girls, big speech, congratulations,
the lion of the hour! Don’t you wish you were really a man of brains,
Sam?”

“No, no, I’m married. It would be a waste now.”

“Sam, I ’ll be there. Got the biggest speech of my life all cocked and
primed, full of pathos and eloquence,--been working on it at odd times
for four years. They ’ll think it a sudden inspiration.”

“What’s the name of it?”

“The Message of the New South to the Glorious Old.”

“That sounds bully, that ought to fetch ’em.”

“It will, my boy, and when Dave Haley gets this postoffice away from you
in the dark days coming, I ’ll publish that speech in a pamphlet,
and you can peddle it at a quarter and make a good living for your
children.”

“Don’t talk like that, Gaston, that isn’t funny at all. You don’t think
the Radicals have got any chance?”

“Chance! Between you and me they ’ll win.”

Sam went back to the desk without another word, a great fear suddenly
darkening the future. McLeod had gotten off the same joke on him the day
before. It sounded ominous coming from both sides like that. He took up
his party paper, “The Old Timer’s Gazette” and read over again the sure
prophecies of victory and felt better.

Gaston accepted the invitation with feverish haste. He had it all ready
to put in the office for the return mail to Independence. But he was
ashamed to appear in such a hurry, so he held the letter over until the
next day. He proudly showed the invitation to Mrs. Durham.

“What do you think of that, Auntie?”

“Immense. You will meet Miss Sallie sure. That letter is in her
handwriting. She’s the Secretary of the Association and signed the
Committee’s names.”

“You don’t say that’s the great and only one’s handwriting!”

“Couldn’t be mistaken. It has a delicate distinction about it. I’d know
it anywhere.”

“It is beautiful,” acknowledged Gaston looking thoughtfully at the
letter.

“I wish you had a new suit, Charlie.”

“I wouldn’t mind it myself, if I had the money. But clothes don’t
interest me much, just so I’m fairly decent.”

“I ’ll loan you the money, if you will promise me to devote yourself
faithfully to Sallie.”

“Never. I ’ll not sell my interest in all those acres of pretty girls
just for one I never saw and a suit of clothes. No thanks. I’m going
down there with a premonition I may find Her of whom I’ve dreamed. They
say that town is full of beauties.”

“You’re so conceited. That’s all the more reason you should look your
best.”

“I don’t care so much about looks. I’m going to do my best, whatever I
look.”

“Oh, you know you’re good looking and you don’t care,” said his foster
mother with pride.

On the 10th of May Independence was in gala robes. The long rows of
beautiful houses, with dark blue grass lawns on which giant oaks spread
their cool arms, were gay with bunting, and with flowers, flowers
everywhere! Every urchin on the street and every man, woman and child
wore or carried flowers.

The reception committee met Gaston at the depot on the arrival of the
excursion train that ran from Ham-bright. He was placed in an open
carriage beside a handsome chattering society woman, and drawn by two
prancing horses, was escorted to the hotel, where he was introduced to
the distinguished old soldiers of the Confederacy.

At ten o’clock the procession was formed. What a sight! It stretched
from the hotel down the shaded pavements a mile toward the cemetery,
two long rows of beautiful girls holding great bouquets of flowers. This
long double line of beauty and sweetness opened, and escorted gravely
by the oldest General of the Confederacy present, he walked through this
mile of smiling girls and flowers. Behind him tramped the veterans, some
with one arm, some with wooden legs.

When they passed through, the double line closed, and two and two the
hundreds of girls carried their flowers in solemn procession. Here was
the throbbing soul of the South, keeping fresh the love of her heroic
dead.

They spread out over the great cemetery like a host of ministering
angels. There was a bugle call. They bent low a moment, and flowers were
smiling over every grave from the greatest to the lowliest.

And then to a stone altar marked “To the Unknown Dead,” they came and
heaped up roses. Then a group of sad-faced women dressed in black, with
quaint little bonnets wreathing their brows like nuns, went silently
over to the National Cemetery across the way and each taking a basket,
walked past the long lines of the dead their boys had fought and dropped
a single rose on every soldier’s grave. They were women whose boys were
buried in strange lands in lonely unmarked trenches. They were doing now
what they hoped some woman’s hand would do for their lost heroes.

The crowd silently gathered around the speakers’ stand and took their
seats in the benches placed beneath the trees.

Gaston had never seen this ceremony so lavishly and beautifully
performed before. He was overwhelmed with emotion. His father’s straight
soldierly figure rose before him in imagination, and with him all the
silent hosts that now bivouacked with the dead. His soul was melted with
the infinite pathos and pity of it all.

He had intended to say some sharp epigrammatic things that would cut the
chronic moss-backs that cling to the platforms on such occasions. But
somehow when he began they were melted out of his speech. He spoke with
a tenderness and reverence that stilled the crowd in a moment like low
music.

His tribute to the dead was a poem of rhythmic and exalted thoughts. The
occasion was to him an inspiration and the people hung breathless on his
words. His voice was never strained but was penetrated and thrilled with
thought packed until it burst into the flame of speech. He felt with
conscious power his mastery of his audience. He was surprised at his own
mood of extraordinary tenderness as he felt his being softened by that
oldest religion of the ages, the worship of the dead--as old as sorrow
and as everlasting as death! He was for the moment clay in the hands of
some mightier spirit above him.

He had spoken perhaps fifteen minutes when suddenly, straight in front
of him, he looked into the face of the One Woman of all his dreams!

There she sat as still as death, her beautiful face tense with
breathless interest, her fluted red lips parted as if half in wonder,
half in joy, over some strange revelation, and her great blue eyes
swimming in a mist of tears. He smiled a look of recognition into her
soul and she answered with a smile that seemed to say “I’ve known you
always. Why haven’t you seen me sooner?” He recognised her instantly
from Mrs. Durham’s description and his heart gave a cry of joy. From
that moment every word that he uttered was spoken to her. Sometimes as
he would look straight through her eyes into her soul, she would flush
red to the roots of her brown-black hair, but she never lowered her
gaze. He closed his speech in a round of applause that was renewed again
and again.

His old classmate, Bob St. Clare, rushed forward to greet him.

“Old fellow, you’ve covered yourself with glory. By George, that was
great! Come, here’s a hundred girls want to meet you.”

He was introduced to a host of beauties who showered him with
extravagant compliments which he accepted without affectation. He knew
he had outdone himself that day, and he knew why. The One Woman he had
been searching the world for was there, and inspired him beyond all he
had ever dared before.

He was disappointed in not seeing her among the crowd who were shaking
his hand. He looked anxiously over the heads of those near by to see if
she had gone. He saw her standing talking to two stylishly dressed young
men.

When the crowd had melted away from the rostrum, she walked straight
toward him extending her hand with a gracious smile.

He knew he must look like a fool, but to save him he could not help it,
he was simply bubbling over with delight as he grasped her hand, and
before she could say a word he said, “You are Miss Sallie Worth, the
Secretary of the Association. My foster mother has described you so
accurately I should know you among a thousand.”

“Yes, I have been looking forward with pleasure to our trip to the
Springs when I knew we should meet you. I am delighted to see you a
month earlier.” She said this with a simple earnestness that gave it a
deeper meaning than a mere commonplace.

“Do you know that you nearly knocked me off my feet when I first saw you
in the crowd?”

“Why? How?” she asked.

“You startled me.”

“I hope not unpleasantly,” she said, looking up at him with her blue
eyes twinkling.

“Oh! Heavens no! You are such a perfect image of the girl she described
that I was so astonished I came near shouting at the top of my voice,
‘There she is!’ And that would have astonished the audience, wouldn’t
it?”

“It would indeed,” she replied blushing just a little.

“But I’m forgetting my mission, Mr. Gaston. Papa sent me to apologise
for his absence to-day. He was called out of the city on some mill
business. He told me to bring you home to dine with him. I’m the
Secretary, you know and exercise authority in these matters, so I’ve
fixed that programme. You have no choice. The carriage is waiting.”




CHAPTER V--THE MORNING OF LOVE

TO his dying day Gaston will never forget that ride to her home with
Sallie Worth by his side. It was a perfect May day. The leaves on
the trees were just grown and flashed in their green satin under the
Southern sun, and every flower seemed in full bloom.

A great joy filled his heart with a sense of divine restfulness. He was
unusually silent. And then she said something that made him open his
eyes in new wonder.

“Don’t drive so fast Ben, and go around the longest way, I’m enjoying
this.” She paused and a mischievous look came into her eyes as she saw
his expression. “I’ve got the lion here by my side. I want to show all
the girls in town that I’m the only one here to-day. It isn’t often I’ve
a great man tied down fast like this.”

“Why did you spoil the first part of that pretty speech with the last?”
 he said with a frown.

“It was only your vanity that made me pause.”

“Could you read me like that?”

“Of course, all men are vain, much vainer than women.” Again there was a
long silence.

They had reached the outskirts of the city now and were driving slowly
through the deep shadows of a great forest.

“What beautiful trees!” he exclaimed.

“They are fine. Do you love big trees?”

“Yes, they always seem to me to have a soul. It used to make me almost
cry to watch them fall beneath Nelse’s axe. I’d never have the heart to
clear a piece of woods if I owned it.”

“I’m so glad to hear you say that. Papa laughed at me when I said
something of the sort when he wanted to cut these woods. He left them
just to please me. They belong to our place. They hide the house till
you get right up to the gate, but I love them.”

Again he looked into her eyes and was silent.

“Now, I come to think of it, you’re the only girl I’ve met to-day who
hasn’t mentioned my speech. That’s strange.”

“How do you know that I’m not saving up something very pretty to say to
you later about it?”

“Tell me now.”

“No, you’ve spoiled it by your vanity in asking.” She said this looking
away carelessly.

“Then I ’ll interpret your silence as the highest compliment you can
pay me. When words fail we are deeply moved.”

“Vanity of vanity, all is vanity saith the preacher!” she exclaimed
lifting her pretty hands.

They turned through a high arched iron gateway, across which was written
in gold letters, “Oakwood.”

On a gently rising hill on the banks of the Catawba river rose a
splendid old Southern mansion, its big Greek columns gleaming through
the green trees like polished ivory. A wide porch ran across the full
width of the house behind the big pillars, and smaller columns supported
the full sweep of a great balcony above. The house was built of brick
with Portland cement finish, and the whole painted in two shades of
old ivory, with moss-green roof and dark rich Pompeian red brick
foundations. With its green background of magnolia trees it seemed like
a huge block of solid ivory flashing in splendour from its throne on the
hill. The drive wound down a little dale, around a great circle filled
with shrubbery and flowers and up to the pillared porte-cochere.

“Oh! what a beautiful home!” Gaston exclaimed with feeling.

“It is beautiful, isn’t it?” she said with delight. “I love every brick
in its walls, every tree and flower and blade of grass.”

“I’ve always dreamed of a home like that. Those big columns seem to link
one to the past and add dignity and meaning to life.”

“Then you can understand how I love it, when I was born here and every
nook and corner has its love message for me from the past that I have
lived, as well as its wider meaning which you see.”

“The old South built beautiful homes, didn’t they? And that was one of
the finest things about the proud old days,” he said.

“Yes, and the new South of which you spoke to-day will not forget this
heritage of the old, when it comes to itself and shakes off its long
suffering and poverty!”

Strange to hear that sort of a speech from a girl who loves society,
dances divinely and dresses to kill. He thought of the words of his
foster mother with a pang. He hoped she was joking about those things.
But he had a strong suspicion from the consciousness of power with which
she had tried once or twice to tease him that they were going to prove
fatally true.

“Mother tells me you were in Baltimore, in that swell girls’ school on
North Charles Street when I was a student at the University?”

“Yes, and we gave reception after reception to the Hopkins men and you
never once honoured us with your presence.”

“But I didn’t know you were there, Miss Sallie.”

“Of course not. If you had, I wouldn’t speak to you now. They said you
were a recluse. That you never went into society and didn’t speak to a
woman for four years.”

“How did you hear that?”

“Bob St. Clare told me after I came home by way of apology for your bad
manners in so shamefully neglecting a young woman from your own state.”

“I ’ll make amends, now.”

“Oh! I’m not suffering from loneliness as I did then. You know Bob put
us up to inviting you to deliver the address. He said you were the only
orator in North Carolina.”

“Bob’s the best friend I ever had. We entered college together at
fifteen, and became inseparable friends.”

He helped her from the carriage and she ran lightly up the high stoop.

“Now come here and look at the view of the river before Papa comes and
begins to talk about the tremendous water power in the falls.”

He followed her to the end of the long porch overlooking the river.
Behind the house the hill abruptly plunged downward to the waters’
edge in a mountainous cliff. The river wound around this cliff past the
house, emerging into a valley where it described a graceful curve almost
doubling on itself and rolled softly away amid green overhanging willows
and towering sycamores till lost in the distance toward the blue spurs
of King’s Mountain.

“A glorious view!” said Gaston, looking long and lovingly at the silver
surface of the river.

“Do you love the water, Mr. Gaston?”

“Passionately. I was born among the hills, but the first time I saw
the ocean sweeping over five miles of sand reefs and breaking in white
thundering spray at my feet, I stood there on a sand dune on our wild
coast and gazed entranced for an hour without moving. Of all the things
God ever made on this earth I love the waters of the sea, and all moving
water suggests it to me. That river says, I must hurry to the sea!”

“It is strange we should have such similar tastes, she said seriously.
But it did not seem strange to him. Somehow he expected to find her
agree with every whim and fancy of his nature.

“Now we will find Mama. She is such an invalid she rarely goes out. Papa
will be home any minute.”

“We are glad to welcome you Mr. Gaston,” said her mother in a kindly
manner. “I’m sure you’ve enjoyed the drive this beautiful day if Sallie
hasn’t been trying to tease you. The boys say she’s very tiresome at
times.”

“Why Mama, I’m surprised at you. The idea of such a thing! There’s not a
word of truth in it, is there, Mr. Gaston?”

“Certainly not, Miss Sallie. I ’ll testify, Mrs. Worth, that your
daughter has been simply charming.”

She ran to meet her father at the door. There was the sound of a hearty
kiss, a little whispering, and the General stepped briskly into the
parlour where she had left her guest.

“Pleased to welcome you to our home, young man. They say down town that
you made the greatest speech ever heard in Independence. Sorry I missed
it. We ’ll have you to dinner anyway. I knew your brave father in the
army. And now I come, to think of it, I saw you once when you were a
boy. I was struck with your resemblance to your father then, as now. You
showed me the way down to Tom Camp’s house. Don’t you remember?”

“Certainly General, but I didn’t flatter myself that you would recall
it.”

“I never forget a face. I hope you have been enjoying yourself?”

“More than I can express, sir.”

“I ’ll join you bye and bye,” said the General, taking leave.

“Now isn’t he a dear old Papa?” she said demurely.

“He certainly knows how to make a timid young man feel at home.”

“Are you timid?”

“Hadn’t you noticed it?”

“Well, hardly.” She shook her head and closed her eyes in the most
tantalising way. “To see the cool insolence of conscious power with
which you looked that great crowd in the face when you arose on that
platform, I shouldn’t say I was struck with your timidity.”

“I was really trembling from head to foot.”

“I wonder how you would look if really cool!”

“Honestly, Miss Sallie, I never speak to any crowd without the intensest
nervous excitement. I may put on a brave front, but it’s all on the
surface.”

“I can’t believe it,” she said shaking her head.

She looked at his serious face a moment and was silent.

“It’s queer how we run out of something to say, isn’t it?” she asked at
length.

“I hadn’t thought of it.”

“Come up to the observatory and I’ll show you Lord Cornwallis’ look-out
when he had his headquarters here during the Revolution.”

She lifted her soft white skirts and led the way up the winding mahogany
stairs into the observatory from which the surrounding country could be
seen for miles.

“Here Lord Cornwallis waited in vain for Colonel Ferguson to join him
with his regiment from King’s Mountain.”

“Where my great-grandfather was drawing around him his cordon of death
with his fierce mountain men!” interrupted Gaston.

“Was your great-grandfather in that battle?”

“Yes, it was fought on his land, and his two-story log house with the
rifle holes cut in the chimney jambs still stands.”

“Then we will shake hands again,” she cried with enthusiasm, “for we are
both children of the Revolution!”

Gaston took her beautiful hand in his and held it lingeringly. Never in
all his life had the mere touch of a human hand thrilled him with such
strange power, How long he held it he could not tell but it was with a
sort of hurt surprise he felt her gently withdraw it at last.

They had reached the parlour again, and he slowly fell into an easy
chair.

“Do you dance, Miss Sallie?”

“Why yes, don’t you dance?”

“Never tried in my life.”

“Don’t you approve of dancing?”

“I never had time to think about it. It always seemed silly to me.”

“It’s great fun.”

“I’d take lessons if you would agree to teach me, and I could dance with
you all the time, and keep all the other fellows away.”

“Well, I must say that’s doing fairly well for a timid young man’s
first day’s acquaintance. What will you say when you once become fully
self-possessed?” She lifted her high arched eyebrows and looked at him
with those blue eyes full of tantalising fun until he had to look down
at the floor to keep from saying more than he dared. When he looked up
again he changed the subject.

“Miss Sallie, I feel like I’ve known you ever since I was born.” She
blushed and made no reply.

Dinner was announced, and Gaston was amazed to see Allan McLeod enter
chattering familiarly with the General. He seemed on the most intimate
terms with the family and his eye lingered fondly on Sallie’s face in a
way that somehow Gaston resented as an impertinence.

“I didn’t even know you were acquainted with the Hon. Allan McLeod, Miss
Sallie,” said Gaston as they entered the parlour alone.

“Yes, he was a sort of ward of Papa’s when he was a boy. Papa hates
his politics, but he has always been in and out almost like one of the
family since I can remember. I think he’s’ a fascinating man, don’t
you?”

“I do, but I don’t like him.”

“Well, he’s a great friend of mine, you mustn’t quarrel.”

Gaston went to the hotel with his brain in a whirl wondering just what
she meant. It was nearly twelve o’clock before he left the General’s
house. How he had passed these eleven hours he could not imagine. They
seemed like eleven minutes in one way. In another he seemed to have
lived a lifetime that day.

“By George, she’s an angel!” he kept saying over and over to himself as
he climbed to his room forgetting the elevator.




CHAPTER VI--BESIDE BEAUTIFUL WATERS

WHEN Gaston tried to sleep, he found it impossible. His brain was
on fire, every nerve quivering with some new mysterious power and his
imagination soaring on tireless wings. He rolled and tossed an hour,
then got up, and sat by his open window looking out over the city
sleeping in the still white moonlight. He looked into the mirror and
grinned.

“What is the matter with me!” he exclaimed. “I believe I’m going crazy.”

He sat down and tried to work the thing out by the formulas of cold
reason. “It’s perfectly absurd to say I’m in love. My wild romancing
about a passion that will grasp all life in its torrent sweep is only a
boy’s day dream. The world is too prosy for that now.”

Yet in spite of this argument the room seemed as bright as day, and the
moon was only a pale sister light to the radiance from the face of the
girl he had seen that day. Her face seemed to him smiling close into
his now. The light of her eyes was tender and soothing like the far away
memory of his mother’s voice.

“It’s a passing fancy,” he said at last, after he had sat an hour
dreaming and dreaming of scenes he dared not frame in words even alone.
He stood by the window again.

“What a beautiful old world this is after all!” he thought as he gazed
out on the tops of the oaks whose young leaves were softly sighing at
the touch of the night winds. Turning his eye downward to the street
he saw the men loading the morning papers into the wagons for the early
mail.

“I wonder what sort of report of my speech they put in?” he exclaimed.
Unable to sleep he hastily dressed, went down and bought a paper.

On the front page was a flattering portrait, two columns in width, with
a report of his speech filling the entire page, and an editorial review
of a column and a half. He was hailed as the coming man of the state in
this editorial, which contained the most extravagant praise. He knew it
was the best thing he had ever done, and he felt for the minute proud
of himself and his achievement. This contemplation of his own greatness
quieted his nerves and he fell asleep. He was awakened by the first
rolling of carts on the pavements at dawn. He knew he had not slept more
than two hours but he was as wide awake as though he had slept soundly
all night.

“I must be threatened with that spell of fever Auntie has been worrying
about since I was a boy!” he laughed as he slowly dressed.

“It’s now six o’clock, and my train don’t leave till nine,” he mused.
“But am I going on that train, that’s the question?”

The fact was, now he came to think of it, there was no need of hurrying
home. He would stay a while and look this mystery in the face until he
was disillusioned. Besides he wanted to find out what McLeod’s visit
meant. He had a vague feeling of uneasiness when he recalled the way
McLeod had assumed about the General’s house. He had told Sallie he must
hurry home on the morning’s train for no earthly reason than that he had
intended to do so when he came.

So after breakfast he wrote her a little note.

“_My Dear Miss Worth,_

“_My train left me. Will you have compassion on a stranger in a strange
city and let me call to see you again to-day? Charles Gaston._”

He waited impatiently until he heard his train leave, and then told the
boy to make tracks for the General’s house.

A peal of laughter rang through the hall when Sallie’s dancing eyes read
that note.

“Oh! the storyteller!” she cried.

And this was the answer she sent back.

“_Certainly. Come out at once. I ’ll take you buggy driving all by
myself over a lovely road up the river. I do this in acknowledgment of
the gracious flattery you pay me in the story you told about the train.
Of course I know you waited till the train left before you sent the
note. Sallie Worth._”

“Now I wonder if that young rascal of a boy told her I wrote that note
an hour ago? I ’ll wring his neck if he did. Come here boy!”

The negro came up grinning in hopes of another quarter.

“Did you tell that young lady anything about when I wrote that note?”

“Na-sah! Nebber tole her nuffin. She des laugh and laugh fit ter kill
herse’f des quick es she reads de note.”

Gaston smiled and threw him another tip.

“Yassah, she’s a knowin’ lady, sho’s you bawn, I been dar lots er times
fo’ dis!”

Gaston was tempted to ask him for whom he carried those former messages.
He walked with bounding steps, his being tingling to his finger tips
with the joy of living. The avenue leading the full length of the city
toward the General’s house was two miles long before it reached the
woods at the gate. It seemed only a step this morning.

As he passed through the cool shade of the woods a squirrel was playing
hide and seek with his mate on the old crooked fence beside the road.
His little nimble mistress flew up a great tree to its topmost bough and
chattered and laughed at her lover as he scrambled swiftly after her.
She waited until he was just reaching out his arm to grasp her, and
then with another scream of laughter leaped straight out into the air to
another tree top, and then another and another until lost in the heart
of the forest.

“I wonder if that’s going to be my fate!” he mused as he turned into the
gateway.

Again the majestic beauty of that gleaming mass of ivory on the hill
with its green background swept his soul with its power. It seemed a
different shade of colour now that he saw it with the sun at another
angle. Its surface seemed to have the soft sheen of creamy velvet.

He paused and sighed, “Why should I be so poor! If I only had a house
like that I’d turn that big banquet hall on the left wing into a
library, and I’d ask no higher heaven.”

And he fell to wondering if it would really be worth the having without
the face and voice of the girl who was there within waiting for him.
No, he was sure of it this morning for the first time in his life.
The certainty of this conviction brought to his heart a feeling of
loneliness and despair. When he thought of his abject poverty and the
long years of struggle before him, and of that beautiful accomplished
young woman rich, petted, the belle of the city, the gulf that separated
their lives seemed impassable.

“I’m playing with fire!” he said to himself as he looked up at the
graceful pillars with their carved and fluted capitals. “Well, let it be
so. Let me live life to its deepest depths and its highest reach. It is
better to love and lose than never to love at all.” And he walked into
the cool hall with the ease and assurance of its master.

Sallie greeted him with the kindliest grace.

“I’m so glad you stayed to-day, Mr. Gaston. I should have been really
chagrined to think I made so slight an impression on you that you could
walk deliberately away on a pre-arranged schedule. I am not used to
being treated so lightly.”

He tried to make some answer to this half serious banter, but was so
absorbed in just looking at her he said nothing.

She was dressed in a morning gown of a soft red material, trimmed with
old cream lace. The material of a woman’s dress had never interested him
before. He knew calico from silk, but beyond that he never ventured an
opinion. To colour alone he was responsive. This combination of red and
creamy white, with the bodice cut low showing the lines of her beautiful
white shoulders and the great mass of dark hair rising in graceful
curves from her full round neck heightened her beauty to an
extraordinary degree. As she walked, the clinging folds of her dress,
outlining her queenly figure, seemed part of her very being and to be
imbued with her soul. He was dazzled with the new revelation of her
power over him.

“Have you no apology, sir, for pretending that you were going home this
morning?” she said seating herself by his side.

“You didn’t ask me to stay with fervour.”

“It ought not to have been necessary.”

“Didn’t you really know I was not going?”

“Yes.”

“I’m glad.”

“Yes, you see I’m twenty-one years old, and I’ve seen such things happen
before!” she purred this slowly and burst into laughter.

“Now, Miss Sallie, that’s cruel to throw me down in a heap of dead dogs
I don’t even know.”

“Don’t you like dogs?”

“Four legged ones, yes. But I like my friends alive.”

“Oh! It didn’t kill any of them. They are all strong and hearty. But if
you’re so domestic in your tastes why haven’t you settled in life?”

“Been waiting to find the woman of my dreams.”

“And you haven’t found her?”

“Not up to yesterday.”

“Oh! I forgot,” she said archly, “you’re so timid.”

“Honestly, I was.”

“Up to yesterday!” she murmured. “Well, tell me what your dreams
demanded? What kind of a creature must she be?”

“I have forgotten.”

“What! Forgotten the dreams of your ideal woman?”

“Yes.”

“Since when?”

“Yesterday.”

“Thanks. We are getting on beautifully, aren’t we? You will get over
your timidity in time, I’m sure.”

He smiled, looked down at the pattern of the carpet and did not speak
for some minutes. His soul was thrilled and satisfied in her presence.
As he lifted his eyes from the floor they rested on the piano.

“Will you play for me, Miss Sallie? Auntie says you play delightfully.”

“Auntie? Who is Auntie?”

“Mrs. Durham, my foster mother, of course. Excuse my unconscious
assumption of your familiarity with all my antecedents. I can’t get over
the impression that I have known you all my life.”

“And that reminds me that I started to say something to you yesterday
that was perfectly ridiculous, but caught myself in time.”

“I wish you had said it.”

“Mrs. Durham is a great flatterer of those she loves. She thinks I can
play. But I’m the veriest amateur.”

“Let me be the judge.”

She was looking over her music, and he had opened the piano.

“I ’ll play for you with pleasure. Sit there in that big arm chair.
I’m sorry I tired you so early in the day with my chatter.”

And before he could protest her fingers were touching the piano with the
ease of the born musician.

He sat enraptured as he watched the sinuous grace with which her fingers
touched the ivory keys and heard their answering cry which seemed the
breath of her own soul in echo.

She had an easy apparently careless touch. To old familiar music
she gave a charm that was new, adding something indefinable to the
musician’s thought that gave luminous power to its interpretation. He
had no knowledge of the technique of music, but now he knew that she was
improvising. The piano was the voice of her own beautiful soul, and it
was pulsing with a tenderness that melted him to tears.

Suddenly the music ceased, and she turned her face full on his before
he could brush away a big tear that rolled down. She flushed, closed the
piano, and quietly resumed her place by his side.

“And, now, you haven’t told me how well I played. You’re the first young
man so careless.”

“I have told you.”

“How?”

“The way you told me yesterday that you understood me--with a tear.”

“I appreciate it more than words.”

“So did I,” he slowly said. Again there was a long silence.

“But we do love to hear folks say in words what they think sometimes. I
confess I was immensely elated over the fine things the paper said about
me this morning.”

“It’s a wonder too. Our editor is a cranky sort of fellow. I was afraid
he’d say a lot of mean things about you. But Papa says you swallowed him
whole.”

“Did you wish him to say kind things about me?”

“Of course,” she said, and then the look of mischief came back in her
eye. “Were you not our guest? I should have felt like whipping him if he
hadn’t said nice things.”

“Then I ’ll tell you what I think about your playing. You gave those
strings a soul for the first time for me, beautiful, living, throbbing,
that spoke a message of its own. The piece you improvised, I shall never
forget. Such music seems to me the grasping of the infinite by hands
that touch the impalpable and bringing it for a moment within the sphere
of matter that a kindred soul may hear and see and feel.”

She started to make some reply but her lips quivered and she looked away
across the valley at the river and made no answer.

At dinner the General was in his most genial mood, laughing and joking,
and drawing out Gaston on politics and cotton-mill developments, and
trying with all his might to tease his daughter.

As he took his departure for the mills, he said, “Young man, I’d ask you
to go with me and look at the machinery, but I see it’s no use. I heard
her twisting you around her fingers with that piano a while ago.”

“Papa, don’t be so silly!’ cried Sallie, slipping her arm around him,
putting one hand over his mouth, and kissing him.

“Go on to your work. I ’ll entertain Mr. Gaston.”

“Indeed you will!” he shouted, throwing her another kiss as he left.

“He’s the dearest father any girl ever had in this world. I know you
loved yours, didn’t you, Mr. Gaston?”

“Mine was killed in battle, Miss Sallie. I never knew him. But I had the
most beautiful mother that ever lived. I lost her when a mere boy. And
the world has never been the same since. I envy you.”

“I forgot. Forgive me,” she softly said, looking up into his face with
tenderness.

“If I had only had a sister! How my heart used to ache when I’d see
other boys playing with a sister! My poor little starved soul was so
hungry, I would go off in the woods sometimes and cry for hours.”

“I wish I had known you when you were a little boy,--I can’t conceive of
a dignified orator swaying thousands running around as a barefooted boy.
But you must have gone barefooted for I think Papa said so, didn’t he?”

“Indeed I did, and sometimes I am afraid for the very good reason I
didn’t have any shoes.”

“Well, you wouldn’t have worn them if you had. I always wanted to be a
boy just to go barefooted. I think girls lose so much of a child’s life
by having to wear shoes.”

“But you never knew what it meant to want shoes and not be able to have
them,” he said, looking at the shining tips of her slippers peeping from
the edge of her dress.

“No, but I never thought these things made a great difference in our
lives after all. I believe it is what we are, not what we have, that
gives life meaning.”

He looked at her intently.

“I must get ready now for our drive. The horse will be here in ten
minutes. Enjoy the view on the porch until I am ready,” and she bounded
up the stairs to her room.

In a few minutes she was by his side again dressed in spotless white as
he had seen her first. She lifted the lines over the sleek horse, and he
dashed swiftly down the drive.

Oh! the peace and bliss of that drive along the lonely river road by its
cool green banks!

How he poured out to her his inmost thoughts--things he had not dared to
whisper alone with himself and God! And then he wondered why he had thus
laid bare his secret dreams to this girl he had known but twenty-four
hours. Nonsense, down in his soul he knew he had known her forever.
Before the world was made, ages and ages ago in eternity he had known
her. He turned to her now drawn by a resistless force as a plant turns
toward the sunlight for its life. How he could talk that day! All he had
ever known of art and beauty, all he knew of the deep truths of life,
were on his lips leaping forth in simple but impassioned words. For
hours he lay at her feet where she sat on a rock, high up on the cliffs
overlooking the river and poured out his heart like a child. And she
listened with a dreamy look as though to the music of a master.

At last she sprang to her feet and looked at her watch.

“Oh! Mama will be furious. It will be after sundown before we can get
home. We must hurry.”

“I ’ll make it all right with your Mama,” he replied as though he were
skilled in meeting such emergencies.

“Don’t you speak to her. It ’ll be all I can do to manage her.”

The twilight was gathering when they reached the house, and an angry
anxious mother was waiting high up on the stoop.

“Watch me smooth every wrinkle out of her brow now!” she whispered as
she flew up the steps.

Before her mother could say a word, a white hand was on her mouth and
pretty lips were whispering something in her ears she had never heard
before. There was the sound of a kiss and he heard Sallie say, “Not a
word!” And the mother greeted him with a smile and a curiously searching
look. She chatted pleasantly until her daughter returned from her room,
and then left her. Again it was nearly twelve o’clock before he reached
the hotel.

The next morning Bob St. Clare broke in on him before he was out of bed.

“Look here, you sly dog, what are you doing slipping and sliding around
here yet?”

“Bob, you’re the man I want to see. Tell me all you know about the
Worths.”

“The Worths? Which one?”

“There’s only one so far as I can see.”

“Well, you may find out there’s two if you should happen to collide with
the General.”

“Does he cut up at times?”

“He’s all right till he turns on you, and then you want to find
shelter.”

“Did you ever run up against him?”

“No, I never got that far. He’s hail-fellow-well-met with every
youngster in town. He will laugh and joke about his daughter until he
thinks she is in earnest about a fellow, and then he swoops down on him
like a hawk. I ’ll bet a hundred dollars he’s playing you now for all
you’re worth against the latest favourite. But Miss Sallie--she’s an
angel!”

“Look here, Bob, you’re not in love with her?”

“Well, I’m convalescing at present my boy. Every boy in the town has
been there, but I don’t believe she cares a snap for a man of us unless
it’s that big redheaded McLeod. I can’t make his position out exactly.”

“Did she jolt you hard when you hit the ground?”

“Easiest thing you ever saw. She has a supreme genius for painless
cruelty. When the time comes she can pull your eye-tooth out in such a
delicate friendly way you will have to swear she hasn’t hurt you.”

“You still go?”

“Lord yes, we all do,--sort of a congress of the lost meet down there.
They all hang on. She keeps the friendship of every poor devil she
kills.”

“You know you make the cold chills run down my back when you talk like
that.”

“Are you in love with her, Gaston?”

“To tell you the truth, I don’t know.”

“Then what in the thunder have you been doing out there two days and
nights, if you haven’t made love to her?”

“Just basking in the sun.”

“Well, you are a fool. Eleven hours the first day, and fifteen hours
yesterday. Confound you, don’t you know a dozen fellows in town are
cursing you for all they can think of?”

“What about?”

“Why for trying to hog the whole time, day and night. She won’t let a
mother’s son of them come near till you’re gone.”

“Well, that’s immense!” exclaimed Gaston slapping his friend on the
back.

233

“Don’t be too sure. She’s just sizing you up. She’s done the same thing
a dozen times before.”

“I don’t believe it.”

And he didn’t go home until the end of the week when the last cent of
his money was gone.




CHAPTER VII--DREAMS AND FEARS

HE was on the train at last homeward bound. Gazing out of the window
of the car he was trying to find where he stood. He must be in love. He
faced the remarkable fact that he had spent a whole week in Independence
at an expensive hotel, and squandered every cent of the small fee he
had received for his address in what would be otherwise a perfectly
senseless manner.

Yet he felt rich. He was sure he had never spent money so wisely
and economically in his life. Beyond the shadow of a doubt he was in
love,--desperately and hopelessly committed to this one girl for life.
He said it in his heart with a shout of triumph. Life was not a sterile
desert of brute work. It was true. Love the magician of the ages, lived
in this world of lost faiths and dead religions.

Now that he was leaving he felt a tingling impulse to leap off the
train, cut across the fields and run back to her--and he laughed aloud,
just as the train came to a sudden stop, and everybody looked at him and
smiled.

A drummer looked up from a novel he was reading and said, “It is a fine
day, partner, isn’t it?”

“Never saw a finer,” answered Gaston with another laugh.

He dwelt long and greedily on the consciousness of this new vitalising
secret he felt for the first time throbbing in his soul. He bathed his
heart in its warmth until he could feel the red blood rush to the ends
of his fingers with its new fever. He breathed its perfume until every
nerve quivered. “I have never lived before. No matter now if I die, I
have lived!” he said slowly and reverently.

He wondered long and wistfully what was in her heart while this wild
tumult was going on in him. He wondered if it were possible she loved
him. It seemed too good to be true. He was afraid to believe it. And yet
his whole soul with every power of his being cried out that she did. He
could not have been mistaken in the message he read in the liquid depths
of her eyes, and the delicate tenderness of her voice. Words may say
nothing, but these signs are the language of the universal. Still,
others had been equally sure, and been deceived. Might not he too make
the fatal mistake? It was possible. And there was the pain.

She had not uttered a single word in all the hours they spent together
that might not be interpreted in a conventional meaningless way.

Yet he had given to every one of these words a soul meaning that spoke
directly to his inner being and not his ear.

He had never spoken a word of shallow love-making to a woman in his
life. To him love was too holy a mystery. It would have been the
blasphemy of the Holy Ghost--a sin that would not be forgiven in this
world or the world to come. His college mates had called him a crank
on this subject. But he shut his lips in a way that always closed the
argument, and they let him alone with his Idol.

“I am afraid yet to put it to the test!” he said at last. “I must have
time to reveal my best self to her. I must see her again, live close to
her day by day, and bring to bear on her every power of body and soul
I possess.” Mrs. Durham met him with dancing eyes. “Oh, I’ve heard from
you, sir!”

“Kiss me Auntie, and be kind. I’m in the last stages of delirium!”

He took her hands both in his and looked at her long. “How good you’ve
been to me, Auntie, in all the past. You never looked so beautiful as
to-day. I want to thank you for every word you’ve said to Miss Sallie
for me. It may have helped just a little anyway.”

“Well you are in the last stages!” she exclaimed gleefully.

“And you are glad of it?”

“Of course, I am, it will make a man of you.”

“But suppose I lose?”

She was silent a moment and then slipped her arm gently about him, drew
down his ear and whispered, “You shall not lose--I’ve set my heart on
it.”

He pressed her hands and said, “How like my sweet mother’s voice was
that!”

And then they fell to discussing plans for giving Miss Sallie and her
friend a jolly time at the Springs.

“But Auntie, these plans don’t seem to me exactly what I’d like. You see
I want to be the whole thing. It may be hopelessly selfish, but I can’t
help it.”

“Well that isn’t best.”

“Say Auntie, what do I look like anyway? How would you describe my make
up? Let’s get at the weak spots and splint them up a little. You know, I
never seriously cared a rap before about my looks.”

“Well”--she answered, slowly regarding him, “I ’ll be perfectly frank
with you.

“You are tall--at least two inches taller than the average man, and your
muscular body gives one the impression of power. You have black hair,
dark-brown eyes that look out from your shaggy straight eye-brows with a
piercing light.”

“You think the brows too shaggy?”

“No, I like them. They suggest reserve power and brain capacity.”

“Good, I never thought of that.”

“You have a face that is massive, almost leonine, and a square-cut
determined mouth, that always clean shaven, sometimes looks too grim.”

“I ’ll remember that and look pleasant.”

“You have a big hand and sometimes shake hands too strongly. You have
a handsome aristocratic foot when you wear decent shoes. You often walk
humpshouldered, and sit so too.”

“I ’ll brace up.”

“You have deep vertical wrinkles between your eyes just where your
straight eyebrows meet.”

“Heavens, I didn’t know I had wrinkles!”

“Yes, but they mean habits of thought like your stooping shoulders, I
don’t object to such wrinkles in a man’s face. But the best feature
of all your stock is your eye. Your big brown eyes are about the only
perfect thing about you. There’s infinite tenderness in them. Now and
then they gleam with a hidden fire that tells of enthusiasm, thought,
will, character, and dauntless courage.”

She looked and they were misty with tears.

He pressed her hand. “Auntie, I didn’t know how much you’ve loved me all
these years. How love opens one’s eyes!”

“You have a high temper, plenty of pride, and are given to looking on
the dark side of things too quickly. You lack poise of character and
sureness of touch yet, but with it all, yours is a masterful nature.”

“One you think that a perfect woman could love?”

“There are no perfect women; but I ’ll match you against any woman I
know. So there, now, take courage.”

“I will,” he gravely answered.

He hurried to his office and read his mail. There were two letters
retaining his services for jury work in important cases. His heart
leaped at the sign of coming success. What a new meaning love gave to
every event in life.

He turned to his books, and began immediately a searching study of every
question involved in these cases. He would carry the court by storm. He
would lead the jury spellbound by his eloquence to a certain verdict.
How clear his brain! He felt he was alive to his finger-tips, and
argus-eyed.

He worked hour after hour without the slightest fatigue or knowledge of
the flight of time. He looked up at last with surprise to find it was
night, and was startled by the voice of the Preacher calling him from
below.

“What’s the matter with you? Mrs. Durham sent me to find you. She was
afraid you had gone up on the roof and walked off.”

“I ’ll be ready in a minute, Doctor,” he called from the window.

“I haven’t known you to take to law so violently in four years. What’s
up? Got a capital case?”

“Yes, I believe I have. It’s a matter of life and death to one poor soul
anyhow.”

“Now, honour bright haven’t you been working all this afternoon on a
love-letter that you’ve just finished and addressed to Independence?”

“‘No sir. To tell you the fact, I didn’t dare to ask her to write to me.
I knew I couldn’t control a pen.”

“My boy, I wish you success with all my heart. It makes me young again
to look into your face. I’ve had my supper, when you’ve finished your
confab with your Auntie, come out here in the square to the seat under
the old oak, I want to talk to you on some important business.”

“What have you been doing,” asked Mrs. Durham.

“Building a home for her!” he cried in a whisper. He went behind the
chair where his foster mother sat pouring his tea, bent low and kissed
her high white forehead. “My own Mother! I ’ll never call you Auntie
again!”

Tears sprang to her eyes, and she kissed his hand, tenderly holding it
to her lips.

“Ah! Love is a wonder worker, isn’t he Charlie?”

“Yes, and I can’t realise the joy that lifts and inspires me when I
think that I am one of the elect. It’s too good to be true. I have been
initiated into the great secret. I have tasted the water of Life. I
shall not see Death.”

She looked at him with pride. “I knew you would make a matchless lover.
I envy Sallie her young eyes and ears!”

“You need not envy her. You will never grow old.”

“So much the worse if we miss the dreams that fill the souls of the
young,” she said with an accent of sorrowful pride.




CHAPTER VIII--THE UNSOLVED RIDDLE

GASTON found the Preacher quietly smoking, seated on the rustic under a
giant oak that stood in the corner of the square.

Under this tree the speakers’ stand had always been built for joint
debates in political campaigns.

Here, when a boy he had heard the great debate between Zebulon B.
Vance and Judge Thomas Settle in the fierce campaign which followed the
overthrow of Le-gree when the Republican party, under the leadership of
Judge Settle made its desperate effort for life. Settle, who was a man
of masterful personality, eloquent, and in dead earnest in his appeal
for a new South, had made a speech of great power to a crowd that were
hostile to every idea for which he stood; and yet he dazzled or stunned
them into sullen silence.

And then he recalled with flashes of memory vivid as lightning, the
miracle that had followed. He could see Vance now as he slowly lifted
his big lion-like head, and calmly looked over the sea of faces with
eagle eyes that could flash with resistless humour or blaze with the
fury of elemental passion. He reviewed the terrible past in which he had
played the tragic role of their war Governor, and tore into tatters with
the facts of history the logic of his opponent. And then he opened his
batteries of wit and ridicule,--wit that cut to the heart’s red blood,
and yet convulsed the hearer with its unexpected turn. Ridicule that
withered and scorched what it touched into ashes. Five thousand people
now in breathless suspense as he swung them into heaven on the wings of
deathless words, now screaming with laughter, and now hushed in tears!

The scene that followed this triumph! Two stalwart mountain men snatched
him from the rostrum and bore him on their shoulders through the
shouting, weeping crowd. Women pressed close and kissed his hands, and
old men reached forward their hands to touch his garments. Ah! if he
could inherit the power of this king among men! To-night as Gaston
walked under that tree with his heart beating with the ecstasy of a
new-found source of life, he felt that he could do, and that he would
do, what the master had done before him!

“Charlie, I’ve heard some startling news since you left home, and I
can’t sleep nights thinking about it.”

“You’ve heard of McLeod’s scheme.”

“Exactly. And it means the ruin of this state and the ruin of the South
unless it can be defeated.”

“How are you going to do it?”

“It’s a puzzle but it’s got to be done. Half the farmers in the
strongholds of Democracy are crazy over their fool Sub-Treasury
and a hundred other fakir dreams. McLeod has promised them
everything--Sub-Treasury, pumpkin leaves for money,--anything they want
if they will join forces with his niggers and carry the state. You are
the man to begin now a quiet but thorough organisation of the young men,
and oust the fools from control of the party.

“When the white race begin to hobnob with the Negro and seek his favour,
they must grant him absolute equality. That means ultimately social as
well as political equality. You can’t ask a man to vote for you and kick
him down your front doorstep and tell him to come around the back way.”

“I think you exaggerate the social danger, but I see the political end
of it.”

“I don’t exaggerate in the least. I am looking into the future. This
racial instinct is the ordinance of our life. Lose it and we have
no future. One drop of Negro blood makes a negro. It kinks the hair,
flattens the nose, thickens the lip, puts out the light of intellect,
and lights the fires of brutal passions. The beginning of Negro equality
as a vital fact is the beginning of the end of this nation’s life. There
is enough negro blood here to make mulatto the whole Republic.”

“Such a danger seems too remote for serious alarm to me,” replied the
younger man.

“Ah! there’s the tragedy,” passionately cried the Preacher. “You younger
men are growing careless and indifferent to this terrible problem. It’s
the one unsolved and unsolvable riddle of the coming century. _Can you
build, in a Democracy, a nation inside a nation of two hostile races?_
We must do this or become mulatto, and that is death. Every inch in
the approach of these races across the barriers that separate them is a
movement toward death. You cannot seek the Negro vote without asking
him to your home sooner or later. If you ask him to your house, he will
break bread with you at last. And if you seat him at your table, he has
the right to ask your daughter’s hand in marriage.”

“It seems to me a far cry to that. But I see the political crisis. What
is your plan?”

“This,--organise the young Democracy in every township in the state, and
put yourself at its head, control the primaries and down the old crowd.
They’ve got to follow you. Fight the campaign with the desperation of
despair. If you are defeated, God have mercy on us, but you will be
ready for the next battle.”

“I ’ll do it,” said Gaston with emphasis.

“Then I want you to go on a mission to Col. Duke, the President of the
National Farmer’s Alliance. He’s a good Baptist. He means well, but
he’s crazy. He dreams of the Presidency when he has established the
Sub-Treasury for the farmers. He’s afraid of the Negro, and is nervous
about using him. He knows I am the most influential Baptist preacher in
the state. Tell him I say you will win, and that we will give him the
nomination for Governor, and put him in line for the Presidency.”

“When shall I go to see him?”

“Immediately. Get ready to-night.”

The next week McLeod was seated in his office at Hambright receiving
reports from his political henchmen at Raleigh.

“I tell you, McLeod, there’s a hitch. Something’s dropped. Duke’s as
coy as a maid of sixteen. He says no decision can be made now until
he submits a lot of rot to all the lodges of the Alliance and the
‘Referendum’ decides these points. You’d better get hold of him and comb
the kinks out of him quick.”

McLeod’s eyes flashed with anger, as he twisted the points of his red
moustache.

“It’s that damned Baptist Preacher,” he said. “I ’ll get even with him
yet if it’s the only thorough job I do on this earth.”




CHAPTER IX--THE RHYTHM OF THE DANCE

BEFORE boarding the train he was to take for Raleigh, he lingered with
Mrs. Durham talking, talking, talking about the wonder of his love. As
he arose to leave he said, “Now, Mother dear”----

“Charlie, you just say that so beautifully to make me your slave.”

“Of course I do. What I was going to say is, I can’t write to her. I
don’t dare. You can. Tell her all about me won’t you? Everything that
you think will interest and please her, and that will be discreet. Your
intuitions will tell you how far to go. Tell her how hard I’m working
and what an important mission I’ve undertaken, and the tremendous things
that hang on its outcome. And tell her how impatiently I’m waiting for
her to come to the Springs. Be sure to tell her that.”

“All right. I ’ll act as your attorney in your absence. But hurry
back, she must not get here first. I want you to be on the spot.”

“I ’ll be here if I have to give up politics and go into business--and
you know how I hate that word ‘business.’”

“I ’ll telegraph you if she comes.”

“Don’t let her come till I get back. Tell her the hotel isn’t fit to
receive guests yet--it never is for that matter--but anything to give me
time to get here.”

He worked with indomitable courage for two weeks, visiting the principal
towns in the state, and everywhere arousing intense enthusiasm. There
was something contagious in his spirit. The young fellows were charmed
by his eager intense way of looking at things, they caught the infection
and he made hundreds of staunch friends.

“You’re just in time!” cried his mother greeting him with radiant face
on his return. “She is coming tomorrow. I’ve a beautiful letter from
her. I think one of the sweetest letters a girl ever wrote.”

“Let me see it!”

“No.”

“Why, Mother, I thought you were all on my side!”

“But I’m not. I’m a woman, and you can’t see some things she says.”

“Then it’s something awfully nice about me.”

“Maybe the opposite.”

“Then you’d resent it for me.”

“I love her too, sir.”

“Let me see the tip end of it where she signs her name!”

“You can see that much, there”----

“Doesn’t she write a lovely hand!” He looked long and lovingly. “That
pretty name!--Sallie! So old-fashioned, and so homelike. It’s music,
isn’t it?”

“I didn’t know you could be so silly, Charlie.”

“It is funny, isn’t it? You know I think after all, we are made out of
the same stuff, saint and sinner, philosopher and fool. The differences
are only skin deep.”

“You don’t think she is made out of ordinary clay?”

“Oh! Lord, no, I meant the men. Every woman is something divine to me.
I think of God as a woman, not a man--a great loving Mother of all Life.
If I ever saw the face of God it was in my mother’s face.”

“Hush! you will make me do anything you wish.”

“No, no, I don’t want to see that letter unless you think it best.”

“Well, you will not see any more of it, sir.”

When Gaston met them at the depot with a carriage to take Sallie, her
mother, and Helen Lowell, her Boston schoolmate, to the Springs, the
first passenger to alight was Bob St. Clare.

“What in the thunder are you doing here! This town is quarantined
against you!” said Gaston.

“Hush!” said Bob in a stage whisper. “She’s here. There’s her valise.”

“That’s why you can’t land. Two’s company, three’s a crowd. I like you,
Bob. But I won’t stand for this.”

The crowd were pouring off the train and had cut off Sallie’s party in
the centre of the car.

“Gaston, I just came up for your sake. I’m looking after Miss Lowell.
I’m lost, ruined. Scared to say a word. I thought maybe, you’d help me
out. We ’ll pool chances. I ’ll talk for you and you talk for me.”

“It’s a bargain, St. Clare.”

“I want a separate carriage,--get me one quick.”

In a few moments, the brief introduction over, Gaston was seated in the
carriage facing Sallie and her mother whirling along the road, over the
long hills toward the Campbell Sulphur Springs in the woods, two miles
from the town.

How beautiful and fresh she looked to him even in a dusty travelling
dress! He was drinking the nectar from the depths of her eyes.

“Now don’t you think Helen the prettiest girl you ever saw, Mr. Gaston?”
 she asked.

“I hadn’t noticed it.”

“Where were your eyes?”

“Elsewhere. I’m so glad you are going to spend a month at the Springs,
Miss Sallie. I used to go to school there when a little boy. They had a
girl’s school there in the winter and boys under twelve were admitted. I
know every nook and corner of the big forest back of the hotel. I ’ll
see that you don’t get lost.”

“That will be fine. But you must bring every goodlooking boy in the
county and make him bow down and worship Helen. She is not used to it,
but she is tickled to death over these Southern boys, and I’m going to
give her the best time she ever had in her life.”

“I ’ll do everything you command--except bow down myself. Bob’s agreed
to do that.”

She smiled in spite of her effort to look serious, and her mother
pinched her arm. She laughed.

“So you and Bob St. Clare were out there plotting before we could get
out of the train?”

“Nothing unlawful, I assure you.”

The first day she allowed Gaston to monopolise, and then began his
torture. She declared there were others with whom she must be friendly.
She determined to give a ball to Helen the next week, and began
preparations.

It was a new business for Gaston, but he did his best to please her, in
a pathetic half-hearted sort of way. He ran all sorts of errands, and
executed her orders with tact.

“Oh! Sallie let the ball go. I don’t care for it. I can do nothing to
ever repay you for the good time I’ve been having,” said Helen as they
sat in her room one night.

“We are going to have it, I tell you. I don’t care how much Mr. Gaston
sulks. I’m not taking orders from him.”

“No, but you’d like to--you know it.”

“What an idea!”

“You know you like him better than all the others put together.”

“Nonsense. I’m as free as a bird.”

“Then what are you blushing for?”

“I’m not.” But her face was scarlet.

“You Southern girls are so queer. The moment you like a man you’re as
sly as a cat, and deny that you even know him. When I find the man I
love I don’t care who knows it, if he loves me.”

“What do you think of Bob St. Clare?”

“I like him.”

“Hasn’t he made love to you yet?”

“No, and the only one of the crowd who hasn’t. I don’t mind confessing
that I never had love made to me before this visit. In Boston it’s a
serious thing for a young man to call once. The second call, means
a family council, and at the third he must make a declaration of his
intentions or face consequences. Down here, the boys don’t seem to have
anything to do except to make their girl friends happy, and feel they
are the queens of the earth, and that their only mission is to minister
to them. And some of your girls are engaged to six boys at the same
time.”

“Don’t you like it?”

“It’s glorious. I feel that if I hadn’t come down here to see you I’d
have missed the meaning of life.”

“Don’t our boys make love beautifully?”

“I never dreamed of anything like it. They make it so seriously, so dead
in earnest, you can’t help believing them.”

“And Bob hasn’t said a word?”

“Hasn’t breathed a hint.”

“Then you have him sure. They are hit hard when they are silent like
that. Bob made love to me the second day he ever saw me.”

“Don’t tease me, dear,” said Helen as she put her pretty rosy cheek
against the dark beauty of the South. “Do you really think he likes me
seriously?”

“He’s crazy about you, goose!”

There was the sound of a kiss.

“I can’t tell stories about it like you, Sallie, I’m afraid I’m in love
with him,” she whispered.

“Well, I ’ll make him court you to-morrow or have him thrashed, if you
say so.”

“Don’t you dare!”

“Then do just as I tell you about this ball and get yourself up
regardless.”

On the night of the ball, Gaston, sitting out on the porch, felt nervous
and fidgety, like a fish out of water. He knew he had no business there,
and yet he couldn’t go away. They had a quarrel about the ball. Sallie
had insisted that Gaston honour her by coming in evening dress whether
he danced or not.

“But, Miss Sallie, I ’ll feel like a fool. Everybody in the country
knows that I never entered a ball-room.”

“Do you care so much what everybody thinks about you?”

“No, but I care what I think of myself.”

“Well, if you don’t come in full dress suit, I won’t speak to you.”

He turned pale in spite of his effort at self control. Then a queer
steel-like look came into his eyes.

“I shall be more than sorry to fail to please you, but I have no dress
suit. I have never had time for social frivolities. I can’t afford to
buy one for this occasion. I couldn’t be nigger enough to hire one, so
that’s the end of it. I ’ll have to come dressed in my own fashion or
stay at home.”

“Then you can stay at home,” she snapped.

“I ’ll not do it,” he coolly replied.

“Well, I like your insolence.”

“I’m glad you do. I ’ll come as I come to all such functions, an
outsider. I ’ll sit out here on the porch in the shadows and see it
from afar. If I could only dance, I assure you I’d try to fill every
number of your card. Not being able to do so, I simply decline to make a
fool of myself.”

“For that compliment, I ’ll compromise with you. Wear that big pompous
Prince Albert suit you spoke in at Independence, and I ’ll come out on
the porch and chat with you a while.”

He sat there now in the shadows waiting for this ball to begin. It was
a clear night the first week in June. The new moon was hanging just over
the tree tops. His heart was full to bursting with the thought that the
girl he loved would, in a few minutes, be whirling over that polished
floor to the strains of a waltz, with another man’s arm around her. He
never knew how deeply he hated dancing before--that rhythmic touch
of the human body, set to the melody of motion, and voiced in the
passionate cry of music. He felt its challenge to his love to mortal
combat,--his love that claimed this one woman as his own, body and soul!

The music from the Italian band was in full swing, its plaintive notes
instinct with the passion of sunny Italy, a music all Southern people
love.

He felt that he should choke. A sudden thought came to him. Tearing a
sheet of paper from a note book he scrawled this line upon it.

“Dear Miss Sallie:--Please let me see you a moment in the parlour before
you enter the ball-room. Gaston.”

At least he would see her in her ball costume first. Yes, and if she
should hate him for it, he would beg her not to dance that night. He saw
McLeod, bowing and scraping in the ball-room arrayed in faultless full
dress, and glancing toward the door. He knew lie was waiting for her to
ask her to dance. How he would like to wring his handsome neck!

The boy returned immediately and said the lady was waiting in the
parlour. He entered with a sense of fear and confusion.

[Illustration: 0278]

She came to him with her bare arm extended, a dazzling vision of
beauty. She was dressed in a creamy white crêpe ball gown, cut modestly
decollete over her full bust and gleaming shoulders, sleeveless, and
held with tiny straps across the curve of the upper arm.

He was stunned. She smiled in triumph, conscious of her resistless
power.

“Forgive me for my selfishness in keeping you here just a moment from
the rest. I wished to see you first.”

“What? to inspect like Mama, to see if I look all right?”

“No, with a mad desire to keep you as long as possible from the others.”

Then she looked up at him and said slowly and softly, “Would it please
you very much if I were not to dance to-night?”

“I wouldn’t dare ask so selfish a thing of you. It is with you a simple
habit of polite society, and you enjoy it as a child does play. I
understand that, and yet if you do not dance to-night, I feel as though
I would crawl round this world on my hands and knees for you if you
would ask it. There are men waiting for you in that ball room whom I
hate.”

She looked at him timidly as though she were afraid he was about to
say too much and replied, “Then I will not dance to-night. I ’ll just
preside over the ball and let Helen be the queen.”

“Words have no power to convey my gratitude. I count all my little
triumphs in life nothing to this. You promised to join me on the porch.
Don’t change that part of the programme. I will talk to your mother
until you come.”

Gaston went down stairs treading on air. He sought her mother and
devoted himself to her with supreme tact. He discovered her tastes and
prejudices and paid her that knightly deference some young men express
easily and naturally to their elders. He had always been a favourite
with old people. He prided himself on it. This faculty he regarded as
a badge of honour. As he sat there and talked with this frail little
woman, his heart went out to her in a great yearning love. She was the
mother of the bride of his soul. He would love her forever for that. No
matter whether she loved him or hated him. He would love the mother who
gave to his thirsty lips the water of Life.

Drawn irresistibly by the magnetism of his mind and manner Mrs. Worth
forgot the flight of time and thought but a moment had past when an hour
after the ball had opened, Sallie came out leaning on McLeod’s arm.

“Mama, have you been monopolising Mr. Gaston for a whole hour?”

“He hasn’t been here a half hour, Miss!” cried her mother.

“He’s been here an hour and ten minutes. I’m going to tell Papa on you
just as soon as I get home.”

“Go back to your dancing.”

“No, thank you, I have an engagement to take a walk with your beau. Come
Mr. Gaston.”

They walked to the spring and along the winding path by the brook at
the foot of the hill, and found a rustic seat. They were both silent for
several moments.

“I saw you were charming Mama, or I would have come sooner.”

“I hope she likes me.”

“She has been praising you ever since your visit to Independence. I
never saw her talk so long to a young man in my life before. You must
have hypnotised her.”

“I hope so.”

A strange happiness filled her heart. She was afraid to look it in the
face; and yet she dared to play with the thought.

“Are you enjoying your triumph to-night? I’ve had war inside.”

“I feel like I am the Emperor of the World and that the Evening Star is
smiling on my court!”

She smiled, tossed her head, leaned against the tree and said, “I wonder
if you are in the habit of saying things like that to girls?”

“Upon my soul and honour, no.”

“Then thanks. I ’ll dream about that, maybe.”

They returned to the hotel and McLeod claimed her. They went back the
same walk, and by a freak of fate he chose the same seat she had just
vacated with Gaston.

“Miss Sallie, you are of age now. You know that I have loved you
passionately since you were a child. I have made my way in life, I am
hungry for a home and your love to glorify it. Why will you keep me
waiting?”

“Simply because I know now I do not love you, Allan, and I never will.
Once and forever, here, to-night I give you my last answer, I will not
be your wife.”

“Then don’t give the answer to-night. I can wait,” he interrupted. “I
am just on the threshold of a great career. Success is sure. I can offer
you a dazzling position. Don’t give me such an answer. Leave the old
answer--to wait.”

“No, I will not. I do not love you. If you were to become the President,
it would not change this fact, and it is everything.”

“Then you love another.”

“That is none of your business, sir. I have known you since childhood. I
have had ample time to know my own mind.”

“All right, we will say good-bye for the present. You have made me a
laughing stock of young fools, but I can stand it. I’ll not give you up,
and if I can’t have you, no other man shall.”

“If you leave my will out of the calculation, you will make a fatal
mistake.”

“Women have been known to change their wills.”

Before leaving her that night Gaston held her hand for an instant as he
bade her good-bye and said, “Miss Sallie, I thank you with inexpressible
gratitude for the honour you have done me.”

“I’ve just been wondering what you have done to deserve it?”

“Absolutely nothing,--that’s why it is so sweet. This has been the
happiest day I ever lived. I cannot see you again before you go. I leave
to-morrow on urgent business. May I come to Independence to see you?”

“Yes, I ’ll be delighted to see you. Good-night.”

Gaston was the last to return to Hambright. He walked the two miles
through the silent starlit woods. He took a short cut his bare feet had
travelled as a boy, and with uncovered head walked slowly through the
dim aisles of great trees. It was good, this cool silence and the soft
mantle of the night about his soul! The stars whispered love. The wind
sighed it through the leaves.

He had withdrawn from the church in his college days because he had
grown to doubt everything--God, heaven, hell, and immortality. To-night
as he walked slowly home he heard that wonderful sentence of the old
Bible ringing down the ages, wet with tears and winged with hope, “_God
is love!_”

He said it now softly and reverently, and the tears came unbidden from
his soul. He felt close to the heart of things. He knew he was close to
the heart of nature. What if nature was only another name for God? And
he whispered it again, “_God is love!_”

“Ah! If I only knew it I would bow down and worship Him forever!” he
cried.

When Sallie reached her mother’s room that night, Mrs. Worth was seated
by her window.

“Why didn’t you dance?”

“Didn’t care to.”

“Sly Miss, you can’t fool me. You didn’t dance because Mr. Gaston
couldn’t. That was a dangerously loud way to talk to him.”

“How did you like him, Mama?”

“Come here, dear, and sit on the edge of my chair. I wish I knew when
you were in earnest about a man. I like him more than I can tell you. He
talked to me so beautifully about his mother, I wanted to kiss him. He
is charming.”

“Why, Mama!”

“I’d like him for a son. There’s a wealth of deep tenderness and manly
power in him.”

“Mama, you’re getting giddy!”

But she kissed her mother twice when she said good night.




CHAPTER X--THE HEART OF A VILLAIN

McLEOD had developed into a man of undoubted power. He was but
thirty-two years old, and the dictator of his party in the state.

He had the fighting temperament which Southern people demand in
their leaders. With this temperament he combined the skill of subtle
diplomatic tact. He had no moral scruples of any kind. The problem of
expediency alone interested him in ethics.

McLeod’s pet aversion was a preacher, especially a Baptist or a
Methodist. His choicest oaths he reserved for them. He made a study of
their weaknesses, and could tell dozens of stories to their discredit,
many of them true. He had an instinct for finding their weak spots and
holding them up to ridicule. He bought every book of militant infidelity
he could find and memorised the bitterest of it. He took special pride
in scoffing at religion before the young converts of Durham’s church.

He was endowed with a personal magnetism that fascinated the young as
the hiss of a snake holds a bird. His serious work was politics and
sensualism. In politics he was at his best. Here he was cunning,
plausible, careful, brilliant and daring. He never lost his head in
defeat or victory. He never forgot a friend, or forgave an enemy. Of his
foe he asked no quarter and gave none.

His ambitions were purely selfish. He meant to climb to the top. As to
the means, the end would justify them. He preferred to associate
with white people. But when it was necessary to win a negro, he never
hesitated to go any length. The centre of the universe to his mind was
A. McLeod.

He was fond of saying to a crowd of youngsters whom he taught to play
poker and drink whiskey, “Boys, I know the world. The great man is the
man who gets there.”

He was generous with his money, and the boys called him a jolly good
fellow. He used to say in explanation of this careless habit, “It won’t
do for an ordinary fool to throw away money as I do. I play for big
stakes. I’m not a spendthrift. I’m simply sowing seed. I can wait for
the harvest.” And when they would admire this overmuch he would warn
them, As a rule my advice is, “Get money. Get it fairly and squarely if
you can, but whatever you do,--get it. When you come right down to it,
money’s your first, last, best and only friend. Others promise well but
when the scratch comes, they fail. Money never fails.”

A boy of fifteen asked him one day when he was mellow with liquor,
“McLeod, which would you rather be, President of the United States or a
big millionaire?”

“Boys,” he replied, smacking his lips, and running his tongue around
his cheeks inside and softly caressing them with one hand, while he half
closed his eyes, “They say old Simon Legree is worth fifty millions of
dollars, and that his actual income is twenty per cent on that. They say
he stole most of it, and that every dollar represents a broken life,
and every cent of it could be painted red with the blood of his victims.
Even so, I would rather be in Legree’s shoes and have those millions a
year than to be Almighty God with hosts of angels singing psalms to me
through all eternity.”

And the shallow-pated satellites cheered this blasphemy with open-eyed
wonder.

The weakest side of his nature was that turned toward women. He was vain
as a peacock, and the darling wish of his soul was to be a successful
libertine. This was the secret of the cruelty back of his desire of
boundless wealth.

He had the intellectual forehead of his Scotch father, large, handsomely
modelled features, nostrils that dilated and contracted widely, and the
thick sensuous lips of his mother. His eyebrows were straight, thick,
and suggested undoubted force of intellect. His hair was a deep red,
thick and coarse, but his moustache was finer and it was his special
pride to point its delicately curved tips.

His vanity was being stimulated just now by two opposite forces. He was
in love, as deeply as such a nature could love, with Sallie Worth. Her
continued rejection of his suit had wounded his vanity, but had roused
all the pugnacity of his nature to strengthen this apparent weakness.

He had discovered recently that he exercised a potent influence over
Mrs. Durham. The moment he was repulsed, his vanity turned for renewed
strength toward her. He saw instantly the immense power even the
slightest indiscretion on her part would give him over the Preacher’s
life. He knew that while he was not a demonstrative man, he loved his
wife with intense devotion. He knew, too, that here was the Preacher’s
weakest spot. In his tireless devotion to his work, he had starved his
wife’s heart. He had noticed that she always called him “Dr. Durham”
 now, and that he had gradually fallen into the habit of calling her
“Mrs. Durham.”

This had been fixed in their habits, perhaps by the change from
housekeeping to living at the hotel. Since old Aunt Mary’s death, Mrs.
Durham had given up her struggle with the modern negro servants, closed
her house, and they had boarded for several years.

He saw that if he could entangle her name with his in the dirty gossip
of village society, he could strike his enemy a mortal blow. He knew
that she had grown more and more jealous of the crowds of silly women
that always dog the heels of a powerful minister with flattery and open
admiration. He determined to make the experiment.

Mrs. Durham, while nine years his senior, did not look a day over
thirty. Her face was as smooth and soft and round as a girl’s, her
figure as straight and full, and her every movement instinct with stored
vital powers that had never been drawn upon.

She was in a dangerous period of her mental development. She had been
bitterly disappointed in life. Her loss of slaves and the ancestral
prestige of great wealth had sent the steel shaft of a poisoned dagger
into her soul. She was unreconciled to it. While she was passing through
the anarchy of Legree’s régime which followed the war, her unsatisfied
maternal instincts absorbed her in the work of relieving the poor and
the broken. But when the white race rose in its might and shook off this
nightmare and order and a measure of prosperity had come, she had fallen
back into brooding pessimism.

She had reached the hour of that soul crisis when she felt life would
almost in a moment slip from her grasp, and she asked herself the
question, “Have I lived?” And she could not answer.

She found herself asking the reasons for things long accepted as fixed
and eternal. What was good, right, truth? And what made it good, right,
or true?

And she beat the wings of her proud woman’s heart against the bars that
held her, until tired, and bleeding she was exhausted but unconquered.

She was furious with McLeod for his open association with negro
politicians.

“Allan, in my soul, I am ashamed for you when I see you thus degrade
your manhood.”

“Nonsense, Mrs. Durham,” he replied, “the most beautiful flower grows in
dirt, but the flower is not dirt.”

“Well, I knew you were vain, but that caps the climax!”

“Isn’t my figure true, whether you say I’m dog-fennel or a pink?”

“No, you are not a flower. Will is the soul of man. The flower is ruled
by laws outside itself. A man’s will is creative. You can make law. You
can walk with your head among the stars, and you choose to crawl in a
ditch. I am out of patience with you.”

“But only for a purpose. You must judge by the end in view.”

“There’s no need to stoop so low.”

“I assure you it is absolutely necessary to my aims in life. And they
are high enough. I appreciate your interest in me, more than I dare to
tell you. You have always been kind to me since I was a wild red-headed
brute of a boy. And you have always been my supreme inspiration in work.
While others have cursed and scoffed you smiled at me and your smile has
warmed my heart in its blackest nights.”

She looked at him with a mother-like tenderness.

“What ends could be high enough to justify such methods?”

“I hate poverty and squalour. It’s been my fate. I’ve sworn to climb out
of it, if I have to fight or buy my way through hell to do it. I dream
of a palatial home, of soft white beds, grand banquet halls, and music
and wine, and the faces of those I love near me. Besides, the work I am
doing is the best for the state and the nation.”

“But how can you walk arm in arm with a big black negro, as they say you
do, to get his vote?”

“Simply because they represent 120,000 votes I need. You can’t tell
their colour when they get in the box. I use these fools as so many
worms. My political creed is for public consumption only. I never allow
anybody to impose on me. I don’t allow even Allan McLeod to deceive
me with a paper platform, or a lot of articulated wind. I’m not a
preacher.”

She winced at that shot, blushed and looked at him curiously for a
moment.

“No, you are not a preacher. I wish you were a better man.”

“So do I, when I am with you,” he answered in a low serious voice.

“But I can’t get over the sense of personal degradation involved in your
association with negroes as your equal,” she persisted.

“The trouble is you’re an unreconstructed rebel. Women never really
forgive a social wrong.”

“I am unreconstructed,” she snapped with pride.

“And you thank God daily for it, don’t you?”

“Yes, I do. Human nature can’t be reconstructed by the fiat of fools who
tinker with laws,” she cried.

“These thousands of black votes are here. They’ve got to be controlled.
I’m doing the job.”

“You don’t try to get rid of them.”

“Get rid of them? Ye gods, that would be a task! The Negro is the
sentimental pet of the nation. Put him on a continent alone, and he will
sink like an iron wedge to the bottomless pit of barbarism. But he is
the ward of the Republic--our only orphan, chronic, incapable. That
wardship is a grip of steel on the throat of the South. Back of it is an
ocean of maudlin sentimental fools. I am simply making the most of the
situation. I didn’t make it to order. I’m just doing the best I can with
the material in hand.”

“Why don’t you come out like a man and defy this horde of fools?”

“Martyrdom has become too cheap. The preachers have a hundred thousand
missionaries now we are trying to support.”

“Allan, I thought you held below the rough surface of your nature high
ideals,--you don’t mean this.”

“What could one man do against these millions?”

“Do!” she cried, her face ablaze. “The history of the world is made up
of the individuality of a few men. A little Yankee woman wrote a crude
book. The single act of that woman’s will caused the war, killed a
million men, desolated and ruined the South, and changed the history of
the world. The single dauntless personality of George Washington three
times saved the colonies from surrender and created the Republic. I am
surprised to hear a man of your brain and reading talk like that!”

“When I am with you and hear your voice I have heroic impulses. You are
the only human being with whom I would take the time to discuss this
question. But the current is too strong. The other way is easier, and it
serves my ends better. Besides, I am not sure it isn’t better from every
point of view. We’ve got the Negro here, and must educate him.”

“Hush! Tell that to somebody that hates you, not to me,” she cried.

“Don’t you think we must educate them?”

“No, I think it is a crime.”

“Would you leave them in ignorance, a threat to society?”

“Yes, until they can be moved. When I see these young negro men and
women coming out of their schools and colleges well dressed, with their
shallow veneer of an imitation culture, I feel like crying over the
farce.”

“Surely, Mrs. Durham, you believe they are better fitted for life?”

“They are not. They are lifted out of their only possible sphere of
menial service, and denied any career. It is simply inhuman. They are
led to certain slaughter of soul and body at last. It is a horrible
tragedy.”

Allan looked at her, smiled, and replied, “I knew you were a bitter and
brilliant woman but I didn’t think you would go to such lengths even
with your pet aversions.”

“It’s not an aversion, or a prejudice, sir. It’s a simple fact of
history. Education increases the power of the human brain to think and
the heart to suffer. Sooner or later these educated negroes feel the
clutch of the iron hand of the white man’s unwritten laws on their
throat. They have their choice between a suicide’s grave or a prison
cell. And the numbers who dare the grave and the prison cell daily
increase. The South is kinder to the Negro when he is kept in his
place.”

“You are a quarter of a century behind the times.”

“Am I so old?” she laughed.

“The sentiment, not the woman. You are the most beautiful woman I ever
saw.”

“I like all my boys to feel that way about me.”

“You don’t class me quite with the rest, do you?” She blushed the
slightest bit. “No, I’ve always taken a peculiar interest in you. I have
quarrelled with everybody who has hated and spoken evil of you. I have
always believed you were capable of a high and noble life of great
achievement.”

“And your faith in me has been my highest incentive to give the lie to
my enemies and succeed. And I will. I will be the master of this state
within two years. And I want you to remember that I lay it all at your
feet. The world need not know it,--you know it.” He spoke with intense
earnestness.

“But I don’t want you to make such a success at the price of Negro
equality. I feel a sense of unspeakable degradation for you when I hear
your name hissed. At least I was your teacher once. Come Allan, give up
Negro politics and devote yourself to an honourable career in law!”

He shook his head with calm persistence.

“No, this is my calling.”

“Then take a nobler one.”

“To succeed grandly is the only title to nobility here.”

“Is the Doctor on speaking terms with you now?”

“Oh! yes, I joke him about his hide-bound Bourbonism, and he tells me
I am all sorts of a villain. But we have made an agreement to hate one
another in a polite sort of way as becomes a teacher in Israel and a
statesman with responsibilities. By the way, I saw him driving to the
Springs with a bevy of pretty girls a few hours ago.”

“Indeed, I didn’t know it!”

“Yes, he seemed to be having a royal time and to have renewed his
youth.”

An angry flush came to her face and she made no reply. McLeod glanced at
her furtively and smiled at this evidence that his shot had gone home.

“Would you drive with me to the Springs? We will get there before this
party starts back.” She hesitated, and answered, “yes.”




CHAPTER XI--THE OLD OLD STORY


WHEN Gaston arrived in Independence he went direct to St. Clare’s.

“Where the Dickens have you been, Gaston?”

“Jumping from Murphy to Manteo making love to hayseed statesmen.”

“What luck?”

“They’re all crazy. They swear they are going to have the United States
establish a Sub-Treasury in Raleigh and issue Government script they can
use as money on their pumpkins, or they are going to tear the nation to
tatters and vote for a nigger for Governor if necessary!”

“Can’t you get into their fool heads that an alliance with the
Republican party is the last way on earth for them to go about their
Sub-Treasury schemes?”

“Can’t seem to do a thing with them. McLeod’s stuffed them full. I’m
sick of it. I’ve a notion to let them go with the niggers and go to the
devil. It’s growing on me that there must be another way out. I can’t
get down in the dirt and prostitute my intellect and lie to these fools.
We’ve got to get rid of the Negro.”

“A large job, old man.”

“Yes, it is, and thank God I’m done with it for a week. I’m going
to heaven now for a few days. I ’ll see her in an hour. I rise on
tireless wings!”

“Look out you don’t come down too suddenly. The earth may feel hard.”

“Bob, I’m going to risk it. I’m going to look fate squarely in the face
and get my answer like a little man, for life or death.”

Mrs. Worth met Gaston and greeted him with warmest cordiality.

“We are charmed to welcome you to Oakwood again, Mr. Gaston.”

“I assure you, Mrs. Worth, I never saw a home so beautiful. I feel as
though I am in paradise when I get here.”

“I hope to see more of you this time, I feel that I know you so much
better since our talk at the Springs.”

“Thank you, Mrs. Worth.” He said this so simply and earnestly she could
but feel his deep appreciation of her attitude of welcome.

“Sallie will be down in a minute.”

Gaston smiled in spite of himself.

“What are you laughing at?”

“I was just thinking how sweetly her name sounded on your lips.”

“Do you like these old-fashioned Southern names?”

“I think they are lovely.”

“Well, that’s my name too.”

Sallie suddenly stepped from the hall into the doorway.

“Now, Mama, there you are again carrying on with one of my beaux! I
don’t know what I will do with you!”

Mrs. Worth actually blushed, sprang up and struck Sallie lightly on the
arm with her fan exclaiming, “Oh! you sly thing, to stand out there and
listen to what I said! Mr. Gaston I turn her over to you to punish her
for such conduct.”

“Isn’t she a dear?” said Sallie when her mother was gone.

“I was charmed with her at the Springs, but the gracious way she made me
feel at home this morning completely won my heart.”

“I can do anything with Mama. She’s the dearest mother that ever lived.
She always seems to know intuitively my heart’s wish, and, if it’s best,
give it to me, and if it’s not, she makes me cease to desire it. I wish
I could manage Papa as easily.”

“I’m sure he idolises you, Miss Sallie.”

“He does, but when he lays the law down, that settles it. I can’t move
him one inch.”

“That’s the way with forceful men, who do things in the world.”

“Well, I confess I like to have my own way sometimes. I wonder if you
are like that?”

“I ’ll be frank with you. Somehow I never could be anything else if I
tried. I don’t think a man of strong character will yield to every whim
of a woman, whether wife or daughter.”

“I heard of a man the other day who whipped his wife,” she said in a
far away tone of voice. “Come, my horse is ready, go with me for another
ride to-day. I am going to take you across the river and show you a
pretty drive over there.”

They were soon lost in the deep shadows of the stately pine forest that
lay beyond the Catawba. The road was a cross-country narrow way that
wound in and out around the big trees.

They jogged slowly along while he bathed his soul in the joy of her
presence. Oh, to be alone and near her! There seemed to him a magic
power in the touch of her dress as she sat in the little buggy so close
by his side. For hours, again he lay at her feet and drank the wine of
her beauty until his heart was drunk with love.

Once he opened his lips to tell her, and a great fear awed him into
silence. He longed to pour out to her his passion, but feared
her answer. He Had studied her every word and tone and look and
hand-pressure since he had known her. He was sure she loved him. And yet
he was not sure. She was so skilled in the science of self defence, so
subtle a mistress of all the arts of polite society in which the soul’s
deepest secrets are hid from the world, he was paralysed now as the
moment drew near. He put it off another day and gave himself up to the
pure delight of her face and form and voice and presence.

That evening when she entered the home her mother caught her hand and
softly whispered, “Did he court you to-day, Sallie?”

She shook her head smilingly. “No, but I think he will to-morrow.”

St. Clare was sitting on his veranda awaiting Gaston’s return.

“What luck, old boy?” he eagerly asked.

“Couldn’t say a word. I ’ll do it to-morrow or die.”

“Shake hands partner. I’ve been there.”

“Bob, it’s a serious thing to run up against a little answer ‘yes’ or
‘no,’ that means life or death.”

“Feel like you’d rather live on hope a while, and let things drift,
don’t you?”

“Exactly, I think I can understand for the first time in my life that
awful look in a prisoner’s face on trial for his life, when he watches
the lips of the foreman of the jury to catch the first letter of the
verdict. I used to think that an interesting psychological study. By
George, I feel I am his brother now.”

The next day was perfect. The warm life-giving sun of June was tempered
by breezes that swept fresh and invigorating over the earth that had
been drenched with showers in the night. The woods were ringing with the
chorus of feathered throats chanting the old oratorio of life and love.
Again Gaston and Sallie were jogging along the shady river road they had
travelled on the first day she had taken him driving.

“Do you remember this road?” she asked.

“I ’ll never forget it. Along this road we hurried in the twilight
to face your angry mother, and just one kiss smoothed her brow into a
welcoming smile for me.”

“Well, I’m going to risk greater trouble to-day, and take you a mile or
two further up the river to the old mill site at the rapids. It’s the
most beautiful and romantic spot in the country. The river spreads out
a quarter of a mile in width, and goes plunging and dashing down the
rapids through thousands of projecting rocks, a mass of white foam
as far as you can see. It’s full of tiny green islands with feras and
rhododendron and wild grape vines, and their perfume sweetens the air
for miles along the water. These little islands, some ten feet square,
some an acre, are full of mocking-birds nesting there, though since the
mills were burned during the war nobody has lived near. The songs of
these birds seem tuned to the music of the river.”

“It must be a glimpse of fairy-land!” he exclaimed.

“I know you will be thrilled with its romantic beauty. It’s five miles
from a house in any direction.”

Gaston was silent. He made a resolution in his soul that he would never
leave that spot until he knew his fate. His heart began to thump now
like a sledge-hammer. He looked down furtively at her and tried to
imagine how she would look and what she would say when he should startle
her first with some word of tender endearment or the sound of her name
he had said over and over a thousand times in his heart, and aloud when
alone, but never dared to use without its prefix.

She saw his abstraction and divined intuitively the current of emotions
with which he was struggling, but pretended not to notice it. He tied
the horse at the old mill, and they walked slowly down the bank of the
river.

“That is my island,” she cried pointing out into the river. “That third
one in the group running out from the point. We can step from one rock
to another to it.”

It was indeed an entrancing spot. The island seemed all alone in the
middle of the river when one was on it. It was not more than fifty feet
wide and a hundred feet long, its length lying with the swift current.
At the lower end of it a fine ash tree spread its dense shade, hanging
far over the still waters that stood in smooth eddy at its roots. On the
upper side of this tree lay a big boulder resting against its trunk and
embedded in a mass of clean white sand the water had filtered and washed
and thrown there on some spring flood.

She climbed on this rock, sat down, and leaned her bare head against its
trunk.

“This is my throne,” she laughingly cried.

[Illustration: 0300]

He leaned against the rock and looked up at her with eyes through
which the yearning, the hunger, the joy, and the fear of all life were
quivering. What a picture she made under the dark cool shadows! Her
dress was again of spotless white that seemed now to have been woven out
of the foam of the river. Her throat was bare, her cheeks flushed, and
her wavy hair the wind had blown loose into a hundred stray ringlets
about her face and neck. Her lips were trembling with a smile at his
speechless admiration.

“You seem to have been struck dumb,” she said. “Isn’t this glorious?”

“Beyond words, Miss Sallie. I didn’t know there was such a spot on the
earth.”

“This is my favourite perch. Art and wealth could never make anything
like this! I could come here and sit and dream all day alone if Mama
would let me.”

He tried to begin the story of his love, but every time his tongue
refused to move. He was trembling with nervous hesitation and began to
dig a hole in the sand with his heel.

“What is the matter with you to-day? I never saw you so serious and
moody.”

Just then a female mocking-bird in her modest dove-coloured dress lit on
a swaying limb whose tips touched the still water of the eddy at their
feet, and her proud mate with head erect, far up on the topmost twig
of the ash struck softly the first note of his immortal love poem, the
dropping song.

“Listen, he’s going to sing his dropping song!” he cried in a whisper.

And they listened. He sang his first stanza in a low dreamy voice, and
then as the sweetness of his love and the glory of his triumph grew on
his bird soul, he lifted his clear notes higher and higher until the
woods on the banks of the river rang with its melody.

His mate turned her eyes upward and quietly twittered a sweet little
answer.

His response rang like a silver trumpet far up in the sky! He sprang ten
feet into the air and slowly dropped singing, singing his long trilling
notes of melting sweetness. He stopped on the topmost twig, sat a
moment, never ceasing his matchless song, and then began to fall
downward from limb to limb toward his mate, pouring out his soul in mad
abandonment of joy, but growing softer, sweeter, more tender as he
drew nearer. They could see her tremble now with pride and love at his
approach, as she glanced timidly upward, and answered him with maiden
modesty. At last when he reached her side, his song was so low and sweet
and dream-like it could scarcely be heard. He touched the tip of
her beak with a bird kiss, they chirped, and flew away to the woods
together.

Gaston determined to speak or die. His eyes were wet with unshed tears,
and he was trembling from head to foot. He had meant to pour out his
love for her like that bird in words of passionate beauty, but all he
could do was to say with stammering voice low and tense with emotion,
“Miss Sallie, I love you!”

He had meant to say “Sallie,” but at the last gasp of breath, as he
spoke, his courage had failed. He did not look up at first. And when she
was silent, he timidly looked up, fearing to hear the answer or read
it in her face. She smiled at him and broke into a low peal of
joyous laughter! And there was a note of joy in her laughter that was
contagious.

“Please don’t laugh at me,” he stammered, smiling himself.

She buried her face in her hands and laughed again. She looked at him
with her great blue eyes wide open, dancing with fun, and wet with
tears.

“Do you know, it’s the funniest thing in the world, you are the sixth
man who has made love to me on this rock within a year!” and again she
laughed in his face.

“Look here, Miss Sallie, this is cruel!”

“Dear old rock. It’s enchanted. It never fails!” and she laughed softly
again, and patted the rock with her hand.

“Surely you have tortured me long enough. Have some pity.”

“It is a pitiable sight to see a big eloquent man stammer and do silly
things isn’t it?”

“Please give me your answer,” he cried still trembling.

“Oh! it’s not so serious as all that!” she said with dancing eyes.

“I’m in the dust at your feet.”

“You mean in the sand. Did you know that you dug a hole in that sand
deep enough to bury me in? I thought once you were meditating murder by
the expression on your face.”

“Please give me one earnest look from your eyes,” he pleaded.

“You’re a terrible disappointment,” she answered leaning back and
putting her hands behind her head thoughtfully.

His heart stood still at this unexpected speech.

“How?” he slowly asked, looking down at the sand again.

“Because,” she said in her old tantalising tone, “I expected so much of
you.”

“Then you don’t class me with the other poor devils at least?” he asked
hopefully.

“No, no, they were handsome boys and made me beautiful speeches. But you
are distinguished. You are a man that everybody would look at twice in
a crowd. You are a famous young orator who can hold thousands breathless
with eloquence. I thought you would make me the most beautiful speech.
But you acted like a school boy, stammered, looked foolish, and pawed a
hole in the ground!” Again she laughed.

“I confess, Miss Sallie, I was never so overwhelmed with terror and
nervousness by an audience before.”

“And just one girl to hear!”

“Yes, but she counts more with me than all the other millions, and
one kind look from her eyes I would hold dearer at this moment than a
conquered world’s applause.”

“That’s fine! That’s something like it. Say more!” she cried.

His face clouded and he looked earnestly at her.

“Come, come, Miss Sallie, this is too cruel. I have torn my heart’s
deepest secrets open to you, and tremblingly laid my life at your feet,
and you are laughing at me. I have paid you the highest homage one human
soul can offer another. Surely I deserve better than this?”

“There, you do. Forgive me. I have seen so much shallow love making,
I am never quite sure a boy’s in dead earnest.” She spoke now with
seriousness.

“You cannot doubt my earnestness. I have spoken to you this morning the
first words of love that ever passed my lips. One chamber of my soul has
always been sacred. It was the throne room of Love, reserved for the One
Woman waiting for me somewhere whom I should find. I would not allow an
angel to enter it, and I hid it from the face of God. I have opened it
this morning. It is yours.”

She softly slipped her hand in his, and tremblingly said, while a tear
stole down her cheek, “I do love you!”

He bent over her hand and kissed it, and kissed it, while his frame
shook with uncontrollable emotion. Then looking up through his dimmed
eyes, he said, “My darling, that was the sweetest music, that sentence,
that I shall ever hear in this world or in all the worlds beyond it in
eternity!”

“When did you first begin to love me?” she asked.

“I don’t know. But I loved you the first moment you looked into my face
while I was speaking that day. And I recognised you instantly as the
Dream of my Soul. I have loved you for ever, ages before we were born in
this world, somewhere, our souls met and knew and loved. And I’ve been
looking for you ever since. When I saw you there in the crowd that day
looking up at me with those beautiful blue eyes, I felt like shouting
‘I have found her! I have found her!’ and rushing to your side lest I
should not see you again.”

“It is strange--this feeling that we have known each other forever. The
moment you touched my hand that first day, a sense of perfect content
and joy in living came over me. I couldn’t remember the time when I
hadn’t known you. You seemed so much a part of my inmost thoughts and
every day life. I laughed this morning from sheer madness of joy when
you told me your love. I knew you were going to tell me to-day. You
tried yesterday, but I held you back. I wanted you to tell me here at
this beautiful spot, that the music of this water might always sing its
chorus with the memory of your words.”

“Let me kiss your lips once!” he pleaded.

“No, you shall hold my hand and kiss that. Your touch thrills every
nerve of my being like wine. It is enough. I promised Mama I would
never allow a man to kiss me without asking her. And we are like loving
comrades. I couldn’t violate a promise to her. I will, when she says
so.”

“Then I ’ll ask her. I know she’s on my side.”

“Yes, I believe she loves you because I do.”

“What did you whisper to her that night, when we came late, and you said
she would be angry?”

“Told her I loved you.”

“If I could only have caught that whisper then! You don’t know how it
delights me to think your mother likes me. I couldn’t help loving her.
It seems to me a divine seal on our lives.”

“Yes, and what specially delights me is, you have completely captured
Papa, and he’s so hard to please.”

“You don’t say so!”

“Yes, he’s been preaching you at me ever since you came the first
time. I pretended to be indifferent to draw him out. He would say, ‘Now
Sallie, there’s a man for you,--no pretty dude, but a man, with a kingly
eye and a big brain. That’s the kind of a man who does things in the
world and makes history for smaller men to read.’ And then I’d say just
to aggravate him, ‘But Papa he’s as poor as Job’s turkey!’”

“Then you ought to have heard him, ‘Well, what of it! You can begin in
a cabin like your mother and I did. He’s got a better start than I had,
for he has a better training.’”

“I am certainly glad to hear that!” Gaston cried with elation.

“You may be. For Papa is a man of such intense likes and dislikes. The
first thing that made my heart flutter with fear was that he might not
like you. He loves me intensely. And I love him devotedly. I could not
marry without his consent. You are so entirely different from any other
beau I ever had, I couldn’t imagine what Papa would think of you. You
wear such a serious face, never go into society, care nothing for fine
clothes, and are so careless that you even hung your feet out of the
buggy that first day I took you to drive. I was glad to have you in the
woods and not in town. The boys would have guyed me to death. In fact
you are the contradiction of the average man I have known, and of all
the men I thought as a girl I’d marry some day. I am so glad Papa likes
you.”

That evening when they reached the house, she hurried through the hall
to her mother who was standing on the back porch. There was the sudden
swish of a dress, a kiss, another! and another! And then the low murmur
of a mother’s voice like the crooning over a baby.




CHAPTER XII--THE MUSIC OF THE MILLS

WHEN Gaston reached his home that night St. Clare had gone to bed. It
was one o’clock. He could not sleep yet, so he sat in the window and
tried to realise his great happiness, as he looked out on the green lawn
with its white gravelled walk glistening in the full moon.

“The world is beautiful, life is sweet, and God is good!” he cried in an
ecstasy of joy.

He sat there in the moonlight for an hour dreaming of his love and the
great strenuous life of achievement he would live with her to inspire
him. It seemed too good to be true. And yet it was the largest living
fact. Like throbbing music the words were ringing in his heart keeping
time with the rhythm of its beat, “I do love you!” And then he did
something he had not done for years.--not since his boyhood,--he knelt
in the silence of the moonlit room and prayed. Love the great Revealer
had led him into the presence of God. The impulse was spontaneous and
resistless. “Lord, I have seen Thy face, heard Thy voice, and felt the
touch of Thy hand to-day! I bless and praise Thee! Forgive my doubts and
fears and sins, cleanse and make me worthy of her whom Thou has sent as
Thy messenger!” So he poured out his soul.

Next morning he grasped St. Clare’s hand as he entered the room. “Bob,
I’m the happiest man in the world!”

“Congratulations! You look it.”

“She loves me! I’d like to climb up on the top of this house and shout
it until all earth and heaven could hear and be glad with me!”

“Well, don’t do it, my boy. See her father first!”

“She says he likes me.”

“Then you’re elected.”

“I’m going to tackle him before I go home.”

“Don’t rush him. There’s a superstition prevalent here that the old
gentleman has no idea of ever letting his daughter leave that home, and
that he will never give his consent, when driven to the wall, unless his
son-inlaw that is to be, will agree to settle down there and take his
place in those big mills. He has two great loves, his daughter and his
mills, and he don’t mean to let either one of them go if he can help
it.”

“Do you believe it’s true?”

“Yes, I do. How do you like the idea?”

“It’s not my style. I’ve a pretty clear idea of what I’m going to do in
this world.”

“Well, you’d better begin to haul in your silk sails, and study cotton
goods, is my advice.”

“I ’ll manage him.”

“I don’t know about it, but if you’ve got her, you’re the first man
that ever got far enough to measure himself with the General. I wish you
luck.”

“You the same, old chum. May you conquer Boston and all the Pilgrim
Fathers!”

“Thanks. The vision of one of them disturbs my dreams. One will be
enough.”

Then followed six golden days on the banks of the Catawba. Every day he
insisted with boyish enthusiasm on returning to that rock and seating
her on her throne. He called her his queen, and worshipped at her feet.

He had the friendliest little chat with her mother, and told her how
he loved her daughter and hoped for her approval. She answered with
frankness that she was glad, and would love him as her own son, but that
she disapproved of kissing and extravagant love-making until they were
ready to be married, and their engagement duly announced.

So he could only hold Sallie’s hand and kiss the tips of her fingers and
the little dimples where they joined the hand, and sometimes he would
hold it against his own cheek while she smiled at him.

But when they rode homeward one evening he dared to put his arm behind
her, high on the phaeton’s leather cushion, as they were going down a
hill, and then lowered it a little as they started up the grade. She
leaned back and found it there. At first she nestled against it very
timidly and then trustingly. She looked into his face and both smiled.

“Isn’t that nice, Sallie?”

“Yes, it is,--I don’t think Mama would mind that, do you?”

“Of course not.”

“Well, I never promised not to lean back in a phaeton, did I?”

“Certainly not, and it’s all right.”

Toward the end of the week the General began to show him a grave
friendly interest. He invited Gaston to go over the mills with him. The
mills were located back of the wooded cliffs a quarter of a mile up the
river. There were now four magnificent brick buildings stretching out
over the river bottoms at right angles to its current. And there was a
big dye house, a ginning house and a cotton-seed oil mill. The General
stood on the hill top and proudly pointed it out to him.

“Isn’t that a grand sight, young man! We employ 2,000 hands down there,
and consume hundreds of bales of cotton a day. We began here after the
war without a cent, except our faith, and this magnificent water power.
Now look!”

“You have certainly done a great work,” said Gaston, “I had no idea you
had so many industries in the enclosure.”

“Yes, I sit down here on the hill some nights in the moonlight and look
into this valley, and the hum of that machinery is like ravishing music.
The machinery seems to me to be a living thing, with millions of fingers
of steel and a great throbbing soul. I dream of the day when those swift
fingers will weave their fabrics of gold and clothe the whole South in
splendour!--the South I love, and for which I fought, and have yearned
over through all these years. Ah! young man, I wish you boys of
brain and genius would quit throwing yourselves away in law and dirty
politics, and devote your powers to the South’s development!”

“Yes, but General, the people of the South had to go into politics
instead of business on account of the enfranchisement of the Negro. It
was a matter of life and death.”

“I didn’t do it.”

“No, sir, but others did for you.”

“How?” he asked incredulously, with just a touch of wounded pride.

“Well how many negroes do you employ in these mills?”

“None. We don’t allow a negro to come inside the enclosure.”

“Precisely so. You have prospered because you have got rid of the
Negro.”

“I’ve simply let the Negro alone. Let others do the same.”

“But everybody can’t do it. There are now nine millions of them. You’ve
simply shifted the burden on others’ shoulders. You haven’t solved the
problem.”

“If we had less politics and more business, we would be better off.”

“But the trouble is, General, we can’t have more business until politics
have settled some things.”

“Bah! You’re throwing yourself away in politics, young man! There’s
nothing in it but dirt and disappointment.”

“To me, sir, politics is a religion.”

“Religion! Politics! I didn’t know you could ever mix ’em. I thought
they were about as far apart as heaven is from hell!” exclaimed the
General.

“They ought not to be sir, whatever the terrible facts, I believe
that the Government is the organised virtue of the community, and that
politics is religion in action. It may be a poor sort of religion, but
it is the best we are capable of as members of society.”

“Well, that’s a new idea.”

“It’s coming to be more and more recognised by thoughtful men, General.
I believe that the State is now the only organ through which the whole
people can search for righteousness, and that the progress of the world
depends more than ever on its integrity and purity.”

“Well, you’ve cut out a big job for yourself, if that’s your ideal. My
idea of politics is a pig pen. The way to clean it is to kill the pigs.”

Gaston laughed and shook his head.

When they returned from the mills, Mrs. Worth drew the General into her
room.

“Did he ask you for Sallie?”

“No, the young galoot never mentioned her name. I thought he would. But
I must have scared him.”

“You didn’t quarrel over anything?”

“No! But I found out he had a mind of his own.”

“So have you, sir.”




CHAPTER XIII--THE FIRST KISS

WHY didn’t you ask him yesterday?” cried Sallie, as she entered the
parlour the next morning.

“Darling, I was scared out of my wits. We got crossways on some
questions we were discussing, and he snorted at me once, and every time
I tried to screw up my courage to speak, a lump got in my throat and
I gave it up. I thought I’d wait a day or two until he should be in a
better humour.”

“He’s gone away to-day,” she said with disappointment.

“I’m glad of it, I ’ll write him a letter.”

“If you had asked him yesterday it would have been all right. He told me
so when he left this morning, with a very tender tremor in his voice.”

“But it will be all right, sweetheart, when I write.”

“I wanted my ring,” she whispered.

“You shall have it,” he said, as he seized her hand and led her to a
seat.

“Have you got it with you?” she asked with excitement. “Let me see it
quick.”

He drew the little box from his pocket, withdrew the ring, concealing it
in his hand, slipped it on her finger and kissed it. She threw her hand
up into the light to see it.

“Oh! it is glorious! It’s the big green diamond Hiddenite I saw at the
Exposition! It is the most beautiful stone I ever saw, and the only one
of its kind in size and colour in the world. Professor Hidden told me
so. I tried to get Papa to buy it for me. But he laughed at me, and said
it was childish extravagance. Charlie dear, how could you get it?”

“That’s a little secret. But there are to be no secrets between us
any more. I had a little hoard saved from my mother’s estate for the
greatest need of my life. I confess my extravagance.”

“You are a matchless lover. I’m the proudest and happiest girl that
breathes.”

“Nothing is too good for you, I wish I could make a greater sacrifice.”

“Wait, till I show it to Mama,” and she flew to her mother’s room. She
returned immediately, looking at the ring and kissing it.

“Couldn’t show it to her, she had company,” she said. “Allan is talking
to her.”

“Let’s get out of the house, dear. I hate that man like a rattlesnake.”

“Don’t be silly, I never cared a snap for him.”

“I know you didn’t, but there is a poison about him that taints the air
for me. Get your horse and let’s go to our place at the old mill.”

They soon reached the spot, and with a laugh she sprang upon the rock
and took her seat against the tree.

“Now, dear, humour this whim of mine. I’ve grown superstitious since
you’ve made me happy. I have a presentiment of evil because that man was
in the house. I am going to take the ring off and put it on your hand
again out here where only the eyes of our birds will see, and the river
we love will hear.”

“That will be nicer. I somehow feel that my life is built on this dear
old rock,” she answered soberly.

He took the ring off her finger, dipped it in the white foam of the
river, kissed it, and placed it on her hand.

“Now the spell is broken, isn’t it?” she cried, holding it out in the
sunlight a moment to catch the flash of its green diamond depth.

“I’ve another token for you. This, you will not even show to your mother
or father.” She bent low over a tiny package he unfolded.

“This is the first medal I won at college,” he continued--“the first
victory of my life. It was the force that determined my character.
It gave me an inflexible will. I worked at a tremendous disadvantage.
Others were two years ahead of me in study for the contest. I locked
myself up in my room day and night for ten months, and took just enough
food and sleep for strength to work. I worked seventeen hours a day,
except Sundays, for ten months without an hour of play. I won it
brilliantly. Every line cut on its gold surface stands for a thousand
aches of my body. Every little pearl set in it, grew in a pain of that
struggle which set its seal on my inmost life. I came out of those ten
months a man. I have never known the whims of a boy since.”

“And you engraved something on the back to me!”

“Yes, can’t you read it?”

“My eyes are dim,” she whispered.

“It is this--_In the hand of manhood’s tenderest love I bring to thee
my boyhood’s brightest dream_. I was a man when I woke, but I have never
lived till you taught me. Keep this as a pledge of eternal love. It’s
the only little trinket I ever possessed. The world will see our ring.
Don’t let them see this. It is the seal of your sovereignty of my soul
in life, in death, and beyond. Will you make me this eternal pledge?”

“Unto the uttermost!” she murmured.

“Unto the uttermost!” he solemnly echoed.

“And now, what can I say or do for you when you show me in this spirit
of prodigal sacrifice how dear I am in your eyes?”

“Those words from your lips are enough,” he declared.

“I ’ll give you more. I’m going to give you just a little bit of
myself. I haven’t asked Mama, but we are engaged now--come closer.”

She placed her beautiful arms around his neck and pressed her lips upon
his in the first rapturous kiss of love.

“No,--no more. It is enough,” she protested.




CHAPTER XIV--A MYSTERIOUS LETTER

HE was at home now, waiting impatiently for the General’s answer to
his letter. Two weeks had passed and he had not received it. But she had
explained in her letters that her father had returned the day he left,
had a talk with McLeod, and left on important business. They were
expecting his return at any moment.

It was a new revelation of life he found in their first love letters. He
never knew that he could write before. He sat for hours at his desk in
his law office and poured out to her his dreams, hopes and ambitions.
All the poetry of youth, and the passion and beauty of life, he put into
those letters.

He wrote to her every day and she answered every other day. She wrote in
half tearful apology that her mother disapproved of a daily letter, and
she added wistfully, “I should like to write to you twice a day. Take
the will for the deed, and as you love me, be sure to continue yours
daily.”

And on the days the letter came, with eager trembling hands he seized
it, without waiting for the rest of his mail or his papers. With set
face, and quick nervous step, he would mount the stairs to his office,
lock his door and sit down to devour it. He would hold it in his hands
sometimes for ten minutes just to laugh and muse over it and try to
guess what new trick of phrase she had used to express her love. He
was surprised at her brilliance and wit. He had not held her so deep a
thinker on the serious things of life as these letters had showed, nor
had he noticed how keen her sense of humour. He was so busy looking at
her beautiful face, and drinking the love-light from her eyes, he had
overlooked these things when with her. Now they flashed on him as a new
treasure, that would enrich his life.

At the end of two weeks when the General had not answered his letter he
began to grow nervous. A vague feeling of fear grew on him. Something
had happened to darken his future. He felt it by a subtle telepathy of
sympathetic thought. He was gloomy and depressed all day after he had
received and feasted on the wittiest letter she had ever written. What
could it mean he asked himself a thousand times--some shadow had fallen
across their lives. He knew it as clearly as if the revelation of its
misery were already unfolded.

He went to the post-office on the next day he was to receive a letter,
crushed with a sense of foreboding. He waited until the mail was
all distributed and the general delivery window flung open before he
approached his box. He was afraid to look at her letter. He slowly
opened the box.

There was nothing in it!

“Sam, you’re not holding out my letter to tease me, old boy?” he asked
pathetically.

Sam was about to joke him about the uncertainties of love, when his eye
rested on his drawn face.

“Lord no, Charlie,” he protested, “you know I wouldn’t treat you like
that.”

“Then look again, you may have dropped it.”

Sam turned and looked carefully over the floor, over and under his desks
and tables and returned.

“No, but it may have been thrown into the wrong bag by that fool mail
clerk on the train. You may get it to-morrow.”

He turned away and walked to his office, forgetting his key in the open
box. The vague sense of calamity that weighed on his heart for the past
two days, now became a reality.

He sat in his office all the afternoon in a dull stupor of suspense. He
tried to read her last letter over. But the pages would get blurred and
fade out of sight, and he would wake to find he had been staring at one
sentence for an hour.

He knew his foster mother would be all sympathy and tenderness if he
told her, but somehow he hadn’t the heart. She had led him to his
love. He had been so boyishly and frankly happy boasting to her of his
success, he sickened at the thought of telling her. He went out for
a walk in the woods, and lay down alone beside a brook like a wounded
animal.

The next day he watched his box again with the hope that Sam’s guess
might be right, and the missing letter would come. But, instead of the
big square-cut envelope he had waited for, he received a bulky letter
in an old-fashioned masculine handwriting with the post mark of
Independence, and a mill mark in the upper left hand corner.

He did not have to look twice at that letter. It was the sealed verdict
of his jury. He locked his office door. It was long and rambling, full
of a kindly sympathy expressed in a restrained manner. He could not
believe at first that so outspoken a man as the General could have
written it. The substance of its meaning, however, was plain enough. He
meant to say that as he was not in a position to make a suitable home at
present for a wife, and as he disapproved of long engagements, it seemed
better that no engagement should be entered into or announced.

He stared at this letter for an hour, trying to grasp the mystery that
lay back of its halting, half-contradictory sentences. He did not know
till long afterwards that the General had written it with two blue eyes
tearfully watching him, and waiting to read it; that now and then there
was the sound of a great sob, and two arms were around his neck, and a
still white face lying on his shoulder, and that tears had washed all
the harshness and emphasis out of what he had meant to write, and all
but blotted out any meaning to what he did write.

But withal it was clear enough in its import. It meant that the General
had haltingly but authoritatively denied his suit. He instantly made
up his mind to ask an interview at his home, and know plainly all his
reasons for this change of attitude. He wrote his letter and posted it
immediately by return mail. He knew that the request would precipitate a
crisis, and he trembled at the outcome. Either her father would hesitate
and receive him, or end it with a crash of his imperious will.




CHAPTER XV--A BLOW IN THE DARK


THE noon mail brought Gaston no answer. At night he felt sure it would
come.

When the wagon dashed up to the post-office that night it was fifteen
minutes late. He was walking up and down the street on the opposite
pavement along the square, keeping under the shadows of the trees.
He turned, quickly crossed the street, and stood inside the office,
listening with a feeling of strange abstraction to the tramp of the
postmaster’s feet back and forth as he distributed the mail. He never
knew before what a tragedy might be concealed in the thrust of a bit of
folded paper into a tiny glass-eyed box. As he waited, fearing to face
his fate, he remembered the pathetic figure of a grey-haired old man who
stood there one day hanging on that desk softly talking to himself.
He was a stranger at the Springs, and they were alone in the office
together. Now and then he brushed a tear from his eyes, glanced timidly
at the window of the general delivery, starting at every quick movement
inside as though afraid the window had opened. Gaston had gone up close
to the old man, drawn by the look of anguish in his dignified face.
The stranger intuitively recognised the sympathy of the movement, and
explained tremblingly: “My son, I am waiting for a message of life or
death”--he faltered, seized his hand, adding, “and I’m afraid to see
it!”

Just then the window opened and he clutched his arm and gasped, with
dilated staring eyes, “There, there it’s come! You go for me, my son,
and ask while I pray!--I’m afraid.” How well Gaston remembered now with
what trembling eagerness the old man had broken the seal, and then stood
with head bowed low, crying, “I thank and bless thee, oh, Mother of
Jesus, for this hour!” And looking up into his face with tear-streaming
eyes he cried in a rich low voice like tender music, “How beautiful are
the feet of them that bring glad tidings!”

He could feel now the warm pressure of his hand as he walked out of the
office with him.

How vividly the whole scene came rushing over him! He thought he
sympathised with his old friend that night, but now he entered into the
fellowship of his sorrow. Now he knew.

At last he drew himself up, walked to his box and opened it. His heart
leaped. A big square-cut envelope lay in it, addressed to him in her own
beautiful hand. He snatched it out and hurried to his office. The moment
he touched it, his heart sank. It was light and thin. Evidently there
was but a single sheet of paper within.

He tore it open and stared at it with parted lips and half-seeing eyes.
The first word struck his soul with a deadly chill. This was what he
read:

_“My Dear Mr. Gaston:_

_“I write in obedience to the wishes of my parents to say our engagement
must end and our correspondence cease. I can not explain to you the
reasons for this. I have acquiesced in their judgment, that it is best._

_“I return your letters by to-morrow’s mail, and Mama requests that you
return mine to her at Oakwood immediately._

_“I leave to-night on the Limited for Atlanta where I join a friend.
We go to Savannah, and thence by steamer to Boston where I shall visit
Helen for a month._

_“Sincerely,_

_“Sallie Worth.”_

For a long time he looked at the letter in a stupor of amazement. That
her father could coerce her hand into writing such a brutal commonplace
note was a revelation of his power he had never dreamed. And then his
anger began to rise. His fighting blood from soldier ancestors made his
nerves tingle at this challenge.

He took up the letter and read it again curiously studying each word. He
opened the folded sheet hoping to find some detached message. There was
nothing inside. But he noticed on the other side of the sheet a lot of
indentures as though made by the end of a needle. He turned it back
and studied these dots under different letters in the words made by the
needle points. He spelled,--

“_My Darling--Unto the Uttermost!_”

And then he covered the note with kisses, sprang to his feet and looked
at his watch.

It was now ten-thirty. The Limited left Independence at eleven o’clock
and made no stops for the first hundred miles toward Atlanta. But just
to the south where the railroad skirted the foot of King’s Mountain,
there was a water tank on the mountain side where he knew the train
stopped for water about midnight.

With a fast horse he could make the eighteen miles and board the Limited
at this water station. The only danger was if the sky should cloud over
and the starlight be lost it would be difficult to keep in the narrow
road that wound over the semi-mountainous hills, densely wooded, that
must be crossed to make it.

“I ’ll try it!” he exclaimed. “Yes, I will do it!” he added setting
his teeth. “I ’ll make that train.”

He got the best horse he could find in the livery stable, saw that his
saddle girths were strong, sprang on and galloped toward the south.
It was a quarter to eleven when he started, and it seemed a doubtful
undertaking. The Limited would make the run from Independence, fifty-two
miles, in an hour at the most. If she were on time it would be a close
shave for him to make the eighteen miles.

The sky clouded slightly before he reached the mountain. In spite of his
vigilance he lost his way and had gone a quarter of a mile before a rift
in the cloud showed him the north star suddenly, and he found he had
taken the wrong road at the crossing and was going straight back home.

Wheeling his horse, he put spurs to him, and dashed at full speed back
through the dense woods.

Just as he got within a mile of the tank he heard the train blow for the
bridge-crossing at the river near by.

“Now, my boy,” he cried to his horse, patting him. “Now your level
best!”

The horse responded with a spurt of desperate speed. He had a way of
handling a horse that the animal responded to with almost human sympathy
and intelligence. He seemed to breathe his own will into the horse’s
spirit. He flew over the ground, and reached the train just as the
fireman cut off the water and the engineer tapped his bell to start.

He flung his horse’s rein over a hitching post that stood near the
silent little station-house, rushed to the track, and sprang on the day
coach as it passed.

He had intended to ride fifty miles on this train, see his sweetheart
face to face--learn the truth from her own lips--and then return on the
up-train. He hoped to ride back to Hambright before day and keep the
fact of his trip a secret.

Now a new difficulty arose--a very simple one--that he had not thought
of for a moment. She was in a Pullman sleeper of course, and asleep.

There were three sleepers, one for Atlanta, one for New Orleans, and
one for Memphis. He hoped she was in the Atlanta sleeper as that was her
destination, though if that were crowded in its lower berths she might
be in either of the others. But how under heaven could he locate her?
The porter probably would not know her.

He was puzzled. The conductor approached and he paid his fare to the
next stop, fifty miles.

“I’ve an important message for a passenger in one of these sleepers,
Captain,” he exclaimed. “I have ridden across the mountains to catch the
train here.”

“All right, sir,” said the genial conductor. “Go right in and deliver
it. You look like you had a tussle to get here.”

“It was a close shave,” Gaston replied.

He stepped into the Atlanta sleeper and encountered the dusky potentate
who presided over its aisles.

The porter looked up from the shoes he was shining at Gaston’s
dishevelled hair and gave him no welcome.

Gaston dropped a half dollar into his hand and the porter dropped the
shoes and grinned a royal welcome. “Any ting I kin do fer ye boss?”

“Got any ladies on your car?”

“Yassir, three un ’em.”

“Young, or old?”

“One young un, en two ole uns.”

“Did the young lady get on at Independence?”

“Yassir.”

“Going to Atlanta?”

“Yassir.”

“Is she very beautiful?”

“Boss, she’s de purtiess young lady I eber laid my eyes’ on--but look
lak she been cryin’.”

“Then I want you to wake her. I must see her.”

“Lordy boss, I cain do dat. Hit ergin de rules.”

“But, I’m bound to see her. I’ve ridden eighteen miles across the
mountains and scratched my face all to pieces rushing through those
woods. I’ve a message of the utmost importance for her.”

“Cain do hit boss, hits ergin de rules. But you can go wake her yoself,
ef you’se er mind ter. I cain keep you fum it. She’s dar in number
seben.”

Gaston hesitated. “No, you must wake her,” he insisted, dropping another
half dollar in the porter’s hand.

The porter got up with a grin. He felt he must rise to a great occasion.

“Well, I des fumble roun’ de berth en mebbe she wake herse’f, en den I
tell her.”

Just then the electric bell overhead rang and the index pointed to 7.
“Dar now, dat’s her callin’ me, sho!”

He approached the berth. “What kin I do fur ye M’am?” he whispered.

“Porter, who is that you are talking to? It sounds like some one I
know.”

“Yassum, hit’s young gent name er Gaston, jump on bode at the water
station--say he got ‘portant message fur you.”

“Tell him I will see him in a moment.”

The porter returned with the message.

“You des wait in dar, in number one--hits not made up--twell she come,”
 he added.

There was the soft rustle of a dressing gown--he sprang to his feet,
clasped her hand passionately, kissed it, and silently she took her
seat by his side. He still held her hand, and she pressed his gently
in response. He saw that she was crying, and his heart was too full for
words for a moment.

He looked long and wistfully in her face. In her dishevelled hair by the
dim light of the car he thought her more beautiful than ever. At last
she brushed the tears from her eyes and turned her face full on his with
a sad smile.

“My own dear love!” she sobbed, “I prayed that I might see you somehow
before I left. I was wide awake when I first heard the distant murmur of
your voice. Oh! I am so glad you came!” and she pressed his hand.

“I got your letter at ten-thirty”--

“Oh! that awful letter! How I cried over it. Papa made me write it, and
read and mailed it himself. But you saw my message between the lines?”

“Yes, and then I covered it with kisses. But what is the cause of this
sudden change of the General toward me? What have I done?”

“Please don’t ask me. I can’t tell you,” she sobbed lowering her face a
moment to his hand and kissing it. “Don’t ask me.”

“But, my dear, I must know. There can be no secrets between us.”

“My lips will never tell you. There have been a thousand slanders
breathed against you. I met them with fury and scorn, and no one
has dared repeat them in my hearing. I would not pollute my lips by
repeating one of them.”

“But who is their author?”

“I can not tell you. I promised Mama I wouldn’t. She loves you, and she
is on our side, but said it was best. Papa has made up his mind to break
our engagement forever. And I defied him. We had a scene. I didn’t know
I had the strength of will that came to me. I said some terrible
things to him, and he said some very cruel things to me. Poor Mama was
prostrated. Her heart is weak, and I only yielded at last as far as
I have because of her tears and suffering. I could not endure her
pleadings. So I promised to do as he wished for the present, leave for
Boston, and cease to write to you.”

“My love, I must know my enemy to meet him and face the issues he
raises. I can not be strangled in the dark like this.”

“You will find it out soon enough, I can not tell you,” she repeated. “I
only ask you to trust me, in this the darkest hour that has ever come to
my life. You will trust me, will you not, dear?” she pleaded.

“I have trusted you with my immortal soul. You know this.”

“Yes, yes, dear, I do. Then you can love and trust me without a letter
or a word between us until Mama is better and I can get her consent to
write to you? Oh, I never knew how tenderly and desperately I love you
until this shadow came over our lives! No power shall ever separate us
when the final test comes, unless you shall grow weary.”

“Do not say that,” he interrupted. “I love you with a love that has
brought me out of the shadows and shown me the face of God. Death shall
not bring weariness. But I dread with a sickening fear the efforts they
will make to plunge you into the whirl of frivolous society. I shall be
a lonely beggar a thousand miles away with not one friendly face near
you to plead my cause.”

“Hush!” she broke in upon him. “You are for me the one living presence.
You are always near--oh so near, closer than breathing!”

The roar of the train became sonorous with the vibration of a great
bridge. He started and looked at his watch.

“We are more than half way to the stop where I must leave you and
return.”

“How long have you been here?”

“Over a half hour. It does not seem two minutes. Only a few minutes more
face to face, and all life crowding for utterance! How can I choose what
to say, when my tongue only desires to say _I love you!_ Bend near and
whisper to me again your love vow,” he cried in trembling accents.

Close to his ear she placed her lips, holding fast his hand whispering
again and again, “My own dear love--unto the uttermost. In life, in
death, forever!”

He bent again and pressed his lips on her hand and she felt the hot
tears.

“And now, love, comes the hardest thing of all,” she sobbed, “I must
return to you my ring.”

“For God’s sake keep it!” he pleaded.

“No, I promised Mama for peace sake I would return it. She is very weak.
I could not dare to hurt her now with a broken promise. She may not live
long. I could never forgive myself. Keep it for me, dear, until I can
wear it.”

She placed it in his hand and it burnt like a red hot coal. He placed
it in an inside pocket next to his heart. It felt like a huge millstone
crushing him. A lump rose in his throat and choked him until he gasped
for breath.

She looked at him pathetically and saw his anguish.

“Come, my love,” she pleaded reproachfully, “you must not make it harder
for me. You are a man. You are stronger than I am. Love is more my whole
life than it can be yours. For this cruel thing I have said and done,
you may press on my lips another kiss. If I am disobedient to my
mother’s wishes God will forgive me.”

The train blew the long deep call for its hundred mile stop and they
both rose, he took her hands in his.

“You have promised not to write to me, dear, but I have made no promise.
I will write to you as often as I can send you a cheerful message,” he
said.

“It is so sweet of you!”

“You have the little love-token still?” he asked.

“Yes, in my bosom. I feel it warm and throbbing with your love, and it
shall not be taken from me in the grave!”

“That thought will cheer the darkest hours that can come and now, till
we meet again, we must say goodbye,” he said huskily.

She could make no response. He placed his arms around her, pressed her
close to his heart for a moment,--one long wistful kiss, and he was
gone.

He rode slowly back to Hambright. The eastern horizon was fringed with
the light of dawn when he reached the town. The more he had thought of
his position and the way the General had treated him in attempting to
settle his fate by a fiat of his own will without a hearing, the more it
roused his wrath, and nerved him for the struggle. They were to measure
wills in a contest’ that on his part had life for its stake.

“I ’ll give the old warrior the fight of his career!” he muttered as
he snapped his square jaw together with the grip of a vise. “My brains,
and every power with which nature has endowed me against his will and
his money. And for the dastard who has slandered me there will be a
reckoning.”

He was fighting in the dark but deep down in him he had a soldier’s
love for a fight. His soul rose to meet the challenge of this hidden foe
armed in the steel of a proud heritage of courage. He went to bed and
slept soundly for six hours.




CHAPTER XVI--THE MYSTERY OF PAIN

GASTON awoke next morning at half past ten o’clock with a dull
headache, and a sense of hopeless depression. His anger had cooled
and left him the pitiful consciousness of his loss. He slowly and
mechanically dressed.

When he buttoned his coat he felt something hard press against his
heart. It was the ring. He sat down on his bed and drew it from his
pocket. To his surprise he found coiled inside it and tied by a tiny
ribbon a ringlet of her hair. She had taken off the ring in her mother’s
presence and promised her to register and mail it in Atlanta. She had
bound this little piece of herself with it. He kissed it tenderly.

“My God, it is hard!” he groaned. And all the unshed tears that his
eager interest in her presence and his kindling anger the night before
had kept back now blinded him.

He did not notice his door softly open, nor know his mother was near
until she placed her hand gently on his shoulder. He looked up at her
face full of tender sympathy, and poured out to her his trouble in a
torrent of hot rebellious words.

“What have I done to be treated like a dog in this way?” he ended with a
voice trembling with protest.

“Perhaps you have offended the General in some way?”

“Impossible. I’ve been the soul of deference to him.”

“He’s a very proud man when his vanity is touched, are you sure of it?”

“As sure as that I live. No, some scoundrel has interfered between us
and in some unaccountable way covered me with infamy in the General’s
eyes.”

“But who could have done it?”

“I used my utmost power of persuasion to get it from her. But she would
not tell me. I have been stabbed in the dark.”

“Whom do you suspect? She has a dozen suitors.”

“There’s only one man among them who is capable of it, Allan McLeod.”

“Nonsense, child. He is not one of her suitors,” she protested warmly.

“Then why does he hang around the house with such dogged persistence?”

“He has always had the run of the house. His father committed him to the
General when he died on the battle field.”

Her face clouded, and then a great pity for his sorrow filled her heart.
She stooped and kissed him.

“Come, Charlie, you must cheer up. If she loves you, it’s everything.
You will win her.”

“But what rankles in my soul is that I have been treated like a dog. If
he objected to my poverty that was as evident the first day he welcomed
me to his house as the day he dictated to her his brutal message,
refusing me a word. He welcomed me to his house, and gave Miss Sallie
his approval of our love while I was there. There could be no mistake,
for she told me so.”

“I can’t understand it,” she interrupted.

“Now he suddenly shows me the door and refuses to allow me to even ask
an explanation. If he thinks he can settle my life for me in that simple
manner, I’ll show him that I ’ll at least help in the settlement.”

“Good. I like to see your eyes flash that fire. Don’t forget your
resolution. Your enemies are your best friends.” She said this with a
ring of her old aristocratic pride. “Come,” she continued, “I’ve a nice
warm breakfast saved for you. You don’t know how much good you have done
me in my lonely life.”

“Dear Mother!” he whispered pressing her hand. After breakfast he went
to his office and read over slowly the letters he had received from
Sallie, kissed them one by one, tied them up and sent them to her
mother. He took the ring out of his pocket and locked it in one of his
drawers.

“I can’t work to-day. It’s no use trying!” he muttered looking out of
his window. He locked his office and started down town with no purpose
except in the walk to try to fight his pain. Instinctively he found his
way to Tom Camp’s cottage.

“Tom, old boy, I’m in deep water. You’ve been there. I just want to feel
your hand.”

Tom was clearing up his kitchen with one hand and holding the other
tight over the wound near his spinal column. He had suffered untold
agonies through the night past and was suffering yet, but he never
mentioned it.

“You’ve just got your blues again!” Tom laughed.

“No, a devil has stabbed me in the back in the dark.” And he told Tom of
his love and his inexplicable trouble.

“So, so!” Tom mused with dancing eyes, “The General’s gal Miss Sallie!
My! my! but ain’t she a beauty! Next to my own little gal there she’s
the purtiest thing in No’th Caliny. And you’re her sweetheart, and she
told you she loved you?”

“Yes.”

“Then what ails you? Man, to hear that from such lips as she’s got’s
music enough for a year. You want the whole regimental band to be
playin’ all the time. If she loves you, that’s enough now to give you
nerve to fight all earth and hell combined.” Tom urged this with an
enthusiasm that admitted no reply.

Flora had climbed in his lap, and was going through his pockets to find
some candy.

“You didn’t bring me a bit this time!” she cried reproachfully.

“Honey, I forgot it,” he apologised.

“I don’t believe you love me any more, Charlie,” she declared placing
her hands on his cheeks and looking steadily into his eyes. “Am I your
sweetheart yet?” she asked.

“Of course, dearie, and about the only one I can depend on!”

“La, Charlie, your eyes are red!” she cried in surprise. “Do you cry?”

“Sometimes, when my heart gets too full.”

“Then, I ’ll kiss the red away!” she said as she softly kissed his
eyes.

“That’s good, Flora. It will make them better.’

“Now, Pappy,” she said triumphantly, “you say I’m getting too big to
cry, and I ain’t but eleven years old, and Charlie’s big as you and he
cries.”

Tom took her in his arms and smoothed his hand over her fair hair with
a tenderness that had in its trembling touch all the mystery of both
mother and father love in which his brooding soul had wrapped her.

Gaston returned home with lighter step. He met, as he crossed the
square, the Preacher who was waiting for him.

“Come here and sit down a minute. I’ve heard of your trouble. You have
my sympathy. But you ’ll come out all right. The oak that’s bent
by the storm makes a fibre fit for a ship’s rib. You can’t make steel
without white heat. God’s just trying your temper, boy, to see if
there’s anything in you. When he has tried you in the fire, and the pure
gold shines, he will call you to higher things.”

Gaston nodded his assent to this saying, “And yet, Doctor, none of us
like the touch of fire or the smell of the smoke of our clothes.”

“You are right. But it’s good for the soul. You are learning now that we
must face things that we don’t like in this world. I am older than you.
I will tell you something that you can’t really know until you have
lived through this. Love seems to you at this time the only thing in the
world. But it is not. My deepest sympathy is with Sallie. She’s already
pure gold. To such a woman love is the centre of gravity of all life.
This is not true of a strong normal man. The centre of gravity of a
strong man’s life as a whole is not in love and the emotions, but
in justice and intellect and their expression in the wider social
relations.”

“And that means that I must brace up for this political fight?”

“Exactly so. And it’s the best thing you can do for your love. Become a
power and you can coerce even a man of the General’s character.”

“You are right, Doctor. I had my mind about fixed on that course.”

“You will find the County Committee in session in the Clerk’s office
there now. They want to see you. I tell you to fight this coalition of
McLeod and the farmers every inch up to the last hour it is formed, and
if McLeod wins them, and the alliance is made, then fight to break it
every day and every hour and every minute till the votes are counted
out.”

Gaston went at once into the consultation with the Democratic county
committee.




CHAPTER XVII--IS GOD OMNIPOTENT?


AS Gaston left the Preacher, the Rev. Ephraim Fox approached. He was
the pastor of the Negro Baptist church, and had succeeded old Uncle Josh
at his death ten years before.

He bowed deferentially, and, hat in hand, stood close to the seat on
which Durham was still resting.

“How dis you doan come down ter our chu’ch en preach fur us no mo Brer’
Durham? We been er havin’ powerful times down dar lately, en de folks
wants you ter come en preach some mo.”

“I can’t do it, Eph.”

“What de matter, Preacher? We ain’t hu’t yo feelin’s.”

“No, not in a personal way, but you’ve got beyond me.”

“How’s dat?” asked Ephraim rolling his eyes.

“Well, as long as I preach to your folks about heaven and the glory
beyond this world, they shout and sweat and sing. And when I jump on
the old sinners in the Bible, they are in glee. They like to see the
fur fly. But the minute I pounce on them about stealing, and lying, and
drinking, and lust,--they don’t want to furnish any of the fur.”

“De Lawd, Preacher, hit’s des de same wid de white folks!” urged Ephraim
with a wink.

“That’s so. But the difference is your people talk back at me after the
meeting.”

“How’s dat?” Ephraim repeated.

“Why when I preach righteousness and judgment on the thief and accuse
them of stealing, I lose my wood, and my corn, and my chickens.”

Ephraim was silent a moment and then he smiled as he said, “Preacher,
dey ain’t er nigger in dis town doan lub you.”

“Yes, I know it. That’s why they steal from me so much.”

“Go long wid yo fun!” roared Ephraim. “You know you ain’t gone back on
us des cause some nigger tuck er stick er wood--deys sumfin’ else--you
cain fool me.”

“Well, you are right, that isn’t the main reason. There are others. You
turned a man out of your church for voting the Democratic ticket.”

“Yes, but Preacher,” interrupted Eph impatiently, “dat wuz er low-down
mean nigger. He didn’t hab no salvation nohow!”

“Then you keep a deacon in your church who served two terms in the
penitentiary.”

“But dat’s de bes’ deacon I got,” pleaded Eph sadly.

“Turn him out I tell you!”

“But dey all does little tings.”

“Turn ’em all out!”

“Den we ain’t got no chu’ch, en de shepherd ain’t got no flock ter tend,
er ter shear. You des splain how de Lawd tempers de win’ ter de shorn
lam’. Den ef I doan shear ’em, de win’ mought blow too hard on ’em.
En ef I doan keep ’em in de pen, how kin I shear ’em? I axes you
dat?”

The Preacher smiled and continued, “Then I’ve heard some ugly things
about you, Eph,” suddenly darting a piercing look straight into his
face.

“Who, me?”

“Yes, you. And I can’t afford to go into the pulpit with you any more.
In the old slavery days you were taught the religion of Christ. It
didn’t mean crime, and lust, and lying, and drinking, whatever it meant.
Your religion has come to be a stench. You are getting lower and lower.
You will be governed by no one. I can’t use force. I leave you alone.
You have gone beyond me.”

“But de Lawd lub a sinner, en his mercy enduref for-eber!” solemnly
grumbled Ephraim.

“In the old days,” persisted the Preacher, “I used to preach to your
people. I saw before me many men of character, carpenters, bricklayers,
wheelwrights, farmers, faithful home servants that loved their masters
and were faithful unto death. Now I see a cheap lot of thieves and
jailbirds and trifling women seated in high places. You have shown no
power to stand alone on the solid basis of character.”

“Why Brer’ Durham,” urged Eph in an injured voice, “I baptised inter de
kingdom over a hundred precious souls las’ year!”

“Yes, but what they needed was not a baptism of water. You negroes
need a racial baptism into truth, integrity, virtue, self-restraint,
industry, courage, patience, and purity of manhood and womanhood. I used
to be hopeful about you, but I’d just as well be frank with you,
I’ve given you up. I’ve said the grace of God was sufficient for all
problems. I don’t know now. I’m getting older and it grows darker to me.
I have come to believe there are some things God Almighty can not do.
Can God make a stone so big He can’t lift it? In either event, He is not
omnipotent. It looks like He did just that thing when He made the Negro.
Leave me out of your calculation, Ephraim.”

“Mus’ gib de nigger time, Preacher!” Eph muttered as he walked slowly
away.

When Gaston emerged from the court house, the Preacher joined him and
they walked home to the hotel together.

“What did the two farmers on your committee think of the chances of
preventing the Alliance from joining the negroes?”

“Not much of them. They say we can’t do anything with them when the test
comes, unless we will endorse their scheme of issuing money on corn and
pumpkins and potatoes stored in a government barn. If it comes to that,
I will not prostitute my intellect by advocating any such measure on the
floor of our convention. We stand for one thing at least, the supremacy
of Anglo-Saxon civilisation. I had rather be beaten by the negroes and
their allies this time on such an issue.”

“But, my boy, if McLeod and his negroes get control of this state for
four years, they can so corrupt its laws and its electorate, they may
hold it a quarter of a century. We must fight to the last ditch.”

“I draw the line at pumpkin leaves for money,” insisted Gaston.

It was but ten days to the meeting of the Democratic state convention,
and they were coming together divided in opinion, and at sea as to their
policy, with a united militant Farmers’ Alliance demanding the uprooting
of the foundations of the economic world, and a hundred thousand negro
voters grinning at this opportunity to strike their white foes, while
McLeod stood in the background smiling over the certainty of his
triumph.




CHAPTER XVIII--THE WAYS OF BOSTON

WHEN Helen Lowell reached Boston from her visit with Sallie Worth,
she found her father in the midst of his political campaign. The Hon.
Everett Lowell was the representative of Congress from the Boston
Highlands district. His home was an old fashioned white Colonial house
built during the American Revolution.

He was not a man of great wealth, but well-to-do, a successful
politician, enthusiastic student, a graduate of Harvard, and he had
always made a specialty of championing the cause of the “freedmen.” He
was a chronic proposer of a military force bill for the South.

His family was one of the proudest in America. He had a family tree
five hundred years old--an unbroken line of unconquerable men who held
liberty dearer than life. He believed in the heritage of good honest
blood as he believed in blooded horses. His home was furnished in
perfect taste, with beautiful old rosewood and mahogany stuff that had
both character and history. On the walls hung the stately portraits of
his ancestors representative of three hundred years of American life. He
never confused his political theories about the abstract rights of
the African with his personal choice of associates or his pride in his
Anglo-Saxon blood. With him politics was one thing, society another.

His pet hobby, which combined in one his philanthropic ideals and his
practical politics, was of late a patronage he had extended to young
George Harris, the bright mulatto son of Eliza and George Harris whose
dramatic slave history had made their son famous at Harvard.

This young negro was a speaker of fair ability and was accompanying
Lowell on his campaign tours of the district, making speeches for his
patron, who had obtained for him a clerk’s position in the United States
Custom House. Harris was quite a drawing card at these meetings. He had
a natural aptitude for politics; modest, affable, handsome, and almost
white, he was a fine argument in himself to support Lowell’s political
theories, who used him for all he was worth as he had at the previous
election.

Harris had become a familiar figure at Lowell’s home in the spacious
library, where he had the free use of the books, and frequently he
dined with the family, when there at dinner time hard at work on some
political speech or some study for a piece of music.

Lowell had met his daughter at the depot behind his pair of Kentucky
thoroughbreds. This daughter, his only child, was his pride and joy. She
was a blonde beauty, and her resemblance to her father was remarkable.
He was a widower, and this lovely girl, at once the incarnation of his
lost love and so fair a reflection of his being, had ruled him with
absolute sway during the past few years.

He was laughing like a boy at her coming.

“Oh! my beauty, the sight of your face gives me new life!” he cried
smiling with love and admiration.

“You mustn’t try to spoil me!” she laughed.

“Did you really have a good time in Dixie?” he whispered.

“Oh! Papa, such a time!” she exclaimed shutting her eyes as though she
were trying to live it over again.

“Really?”

“Beaux, morning, noon and night,--dancing, moonlight rides, boats
gliding along the beautiful river and mocking birds singing softly their
love-song under the window all night!”

“Well you did have romance,” he declared.

“Yes,” she went on “and such people, such hospitality--oh! I feel as
though I never had lived before.”

“My dear, you mustn’t desert us all like that,” he protested.

“I can’t help it, I’m a rebel now.”

“Then keep still till the campaign’s over!” he warned in mock fear.

“And the boys down there,” she continued, “they are such boys! Time
doesn’t seem to be an object with them at all. Evidently they have never
heard of our uplifting Yankee motto ‘_Time is money._’ And such knightly
deference! such charming old fashioned chivalrous ways!”

“But, dear, isn’t that a little out of date?”

“How staid and proper and busy Boston seems! I know I am going to be
depressed by it.”

“I know what’s the matter with you!” he whistled.

“What?” she slyly asked.

“One of those boys.”

“I confess. Papa, he’s as handsome as a prince.”

“What does he look like?”

“He is tall, dark, with black hair, black eyes, slender, graceful, all
fire and energy.”

“What’s his name?”

“St. Clare--Robert St. Clare. His father was away from home. He’s a
politician, I think.”

“You don’t say! St. Clare. Well of all the jokes! His father is my
Democratic chum in the House--an old fire-eating Bourbon, but a capital
fellow.”

“Did you ever see _him?_”

“No, but I’ve had good times with his father. He used to own a hundred
slaves. He’s a royal fellow, and pretty well fixed in life for a
Southern politician. I don’t think though I ever saw his boy. Anything
really serious?”

“He hasn’t said a word--but he’s coming to see me next week.”

“Well things are moving, I must say!”

“Yes, I pretended I must consult you, before telling him he could come.
I didn’t want to seem too anxious. I’m half afraid to let him wander
about Boston much, there are too many girls here.”

Her father laughed proudly and looked at her. “I hope you will find him
all your heart most desires, and my congratulations on your first love!”

“It will be my last, too,” she answered seriously.

“Ah! you’re too young and pretty to say that!”

“I mean it,” she said earnestly with a smile trembling on her lips.

Her father was silent and pressed her hand for an answer. As they
entered the gate of the home, they met young Harris coming out with some
books under his arm. He bowed gracefully to them and passed on.

“Oh! Papa, I had forgotten all about your fad for that young negro!”

“Well, what of it, dear?”

“You love me very much, don’t you?” she asked tenderly. “I’m going to
ask you to be inconsistent, for my sake.”

“That’s easy. I’m often that for nobody’s sake. Consistency is only the
terror of weak minds.”

“I’m going to ask you to keep that young negro out of the house when my
Southern friends are here. After my sweetheart comes I expect Sallie
and her mother. I wouldn’t have either of them to meet him here in our
library and especially in our dining-room for anything on earth!”

“Well, you have joined the rebels, haven’t you?”

“You know I never did like negroes any way,” she continued. “They always
gave me the horrors. Young Harris is a scholarly gentleman, I know. He
is good-looking, talented, and I’ve played his music for him sometimes
to please you, but I can’t get over that little kink in his hair, his
big nostrils and full lips, and when he looks at me, it makes my flesh
creep.”

“Certainly, my darling, you don’t need to coax me. The Lowells, I
suspect, know by this time what is due to a guest. When your guests
come, our home and our time are theirs. If eating meat offends, we
will live on herbs. I ’ll send Harris down to the other side of the
district and keep him at work there until the end of the campaign. My
slightest wish is law for him.”

“You see, Papa,” she went on, “they never could understand that negro’s
easy ways around our house, and I know if he were to sit down at our
table with them they would walk out of the dining-room with an excuse of
illness and go home on the first train.”

“And yet,” returned her father lifting her from the carriage, “their
homes were full of negroes were they not?”

“Yes, but they know their place. I’ve seen those beautiful Southern
children kiss their old black ‘Mammy.’ It made me shudder, until I
discovered they did it just as I kiss Fido.”

“And this a daughter of Boston, the home of Garrison and Sumner!” he
exclaimed.

“I’ve heard that Boston mobbed Garrison once,” she observed.

“Yes, and I doubt if we have canonised Sumner yet. All right. If you say
so, I ’ll order a steam calliope stationed at the gate and hire a man
to play Dixie for you!”

She laughed, and ran up the steps.

* * * * *

Sallie determined to keep the secret of her sorrow in her own heart. On
the ocean voyage she had cried the whole first day, and then kissed her
lover’s picture, put it down in the bottom of her trunk, brushed the
tears away and determined the world should not look on her suffering.

She had written Helen of her lover’s declaration, and of her happiness.
She would find a good excuse for her sorrowful face in their separation.
She knew he would write to her, for he had said so, and she had slipped
the address into his hand as he left the car that night.

At first she was puzzled to think what she could do about answering
these letters so Helen would not suspect her trouble. Then she hit on
the plan of writing to him every day, posting the letters herself and
placing them in her own trunk instead of the post-box.

“He will read them some day. They will relieve my heart,” she sadly told
herself.

Helen met her on the pier with a cry of girlish joy, and the first word
she uttered was, “Oh! Sallie, Bob loves me! He’s been here two weeks,
and he’s just gone home. I have been in heaven. We are engaged!”

“Then I ’ll kiss you again, Helen.”--She gave her another kiss.

“And I’ve a big letter at home for you already! It’s post-marked
‘Hambright.’ It came this morning. I know you will feast on it. If
Bob don’t write me faithfully I ’ll make him come here and live in
Boston.”

When Sallie got this letter, she sat down in her room, and read and
re-read its passionate words. There was a tone of bitterness and wounded
pride in it. She struggled bravely to keep the tears back. Then the tone
of the letter changed to tenderness and faith and infinite love that
struggled in vain for utterance.

She kissed the name and sighed. “Now I must go down and chat and smile
with Helen. She’s so silly about her own love, if I talk about Bob she
will forget I live.”




CHAPTER XIX--THE SHADOW OF A DOUBT

MRS. WORTH had arrived in Boston a few days after Sallie, coming direct
by rail. She was still very weak from her recent attack, and it cut her
to the heart to watch Sallie write those letters faithfully, and never
mail them out of deference to her wishes.

One night she drew her daughter down and kissed her.

“Sallie, dear, you don’t know how it hurts me to see you suffer this
way, and write, and write these letters your lover never sees. You may
send him one letter a week, I don’t care what the General says.”

There was a sob and another kiss and, Sallie was crying on her breast.

In answer to her first letter, Gaston was thrilled with a new
inspiration. He sat down that night and answered it in verse. All the
deep longings of his soul, his hopes and fears, his pain and dreams he
set in rhythmic music. Her mother read all his letters after Sallie. And
she cried with sorrow and pride over this poem.

“Sallie, I don’t blame you for being proud of such a lover. Your life
is rich hallowed by the love of such a man. Your father is wrong in his
position. If I were a girl and held the love of such a man, I’d cherish
it as I would my soul’s salvation. Be patient and faithful.”

“Sweet mother heart!” she whispered as she smoothed the grey hair
tenderly.

Allan McLeod had arrived in Boston the day before and the morning’s
papers were full of an interview with him on his brilliant achievement
in breaking the ranks of the Bourbon Democracy in North Carolina, and
the certainty of the success of his ticket at the approaching election.

McLeod sent the paper to Mrs. Worth by a special messenger, lest she
might not see it, and that evening called. He asked Sallie to accompany
him to the theatre, and when she refused spent the evening.

When her mother had retired McLeod drew his seat near her and again told
her in burning words his love.

“Miss ‘Sallie, I have won the battle of life at its very threshold. I
shall be a United States Senator in a few months. I want to lead you, my
bride, into the gallery of the Senate before I walk down its aisles
to take the oath. I have loved you faithfully for years. I have your
father’s consent to my suit. I asked him before leaving on this trip.
Surely you will not say no?”

“Allan McLeod, I do not love you. I do love another. I hate the sight of
you and the sound of your voice.”

“If you do not marry Gaston, will you give me a chance?”

“If I do not marry the man of my choice, I will never marry. Now go.”

McLeod returned to the hotel with the fury of the devil seething in
his soul. He determined to return to Ham-bright, and if possible entrap
Gaston in dissipation and destroy his faith in Sallie’s loyalty.

He wrote to the General that he had been rejected by his daughter who
still corresponded with Gaston. When General Worth received this letter
he wrote in wrath to his wife, peremptorily forbidding Sallie to write
another line to Gaston and closed saying, “I had trusted this matter to
you, my dear, now I take it out of your hands. I forbid another line or
word to this man.”

Gaston watched and waited in vain for the letter he was to receive next
week. Again his soul sank with doubt and fear. What fiend was striking
him with an unseen hand? He felt he should choke with rage as he thought
of the infamy of such a warfare.

His mother said to him shortly after McLeod’s arrival, “Charlie, I have
some bad news for you.”

“It can’t be any worse than I have, the misery of an unexplained silence
of two weeks.”

“I feel that I ought to tell you. It is the explanation of that silence,
I fear.”

“What is it, Mother?” he asked soberly.

“I hear that Sallie has plunged into frivolous society, is dancing every
night at the hotel at Narragansett Pier where they are stopping now, and
flirting with a halfdozen young men.”

“I don’t believe it,” growled Gaston.

“I’m afraid it’s true, Charlie, and I’m furious with her for treating
you like this. I thought she had more character.”

“I ’ll love and trust her to the end!” he declared as he went moodily
to his office. But the poison of suspicion rankled in his thoughts. Why
had she ceased to write? Was not this mask of society a habit with those
who had learned to wear it? Was not habit, after all, life? Could one
ever escape it? It seemed to him more than probable that the old habits
should re-assert themselves in such a crisis, a thousand miles removed
from him or his personal influence. He held a very exaggerated idea of
the corruption of modern society. And his heart grew heavier from day to
day with the feeling that she was slipping away from him.




CHAPTER XX--A NEW LESSON IN LOVE

McLEOD returned home to find his plans of political success in perfect
order. The programme went through without a hitch. In spite of the most
desperate efforts of the Democrats, he carried the state by a large
majority and made, for the Republican party and its strange allies, the
first breach in the solid phalanx of Democratic supremacy since Le-gree
left his legacy of corruption and terror.

The Legislature elected two Senators. To the amazement of the world, the
day before the caucus of the Republicans met, McLeod withdrew. He had no
opposition so far as anybody knew, but a curious thing had happened. The
Rev. John Durham discovered the fact that McLeod kept a still and had
established his mother as an illicit distiller years before. One of his
deputies who had become an inebriate, confessed this to the doctor who
had informed the Preacher.

The Preacher put this important piece of information into the hands of a
daring young Republican who had always been one from principle. He
went to Raleigh and interviewed McLeod. At first McLeod denied, and
blustered, and swore. When he produced the proofs, he gave up, and asked
sullenly, “What do you want?”

“Get out of the race.”

“All right. Is that all? You’re on top.”

“No, give me the nomination.”

“Never!” he yelled with an oath.

“Then I ’ll expose you in to-morrow morning’s paper, and that’s the
end of you.”

McLeod hesitated a moment, and then said, “I ’ll agree. You’ve got me.
But I ’ll make one little condition. You must give me the name of your
informant.”

“The Rev. John Durham.”

“I thought as much.”

To the amazement of everyone McLeod waived the crown aside and placed
it on the head of one of his lieutenants. He returned to Hambright from
this dramatic event with an unruffled front. To his cronies he said,
“Bah! I was joking. Never had any idea of taking the office for myself.
I’m playing for larger stakes. I make these puppets, and pull the
strings.”

He devoted himself assiduously in the leisure which followed to Mrs.
Durham. He never intimated to Durham that he knew anything about the
part he had taken in his withdrawal from the Senatorship. Nor had the
Preacher told his wife of his discovery. They had quarrelled several
times about McLeod. His wife seemed determined to remain loyal to the
boy she had taught.

McLeod in his talk with her intimated that he had withdrawn from a
desire vaguely forming in his mind to get out of the filth of politics
altogether, sooner or later, influenced by her voice alone.

With subtle skill he played upon her vanity and jealousy, and at last
felt that he had entangled her so far he could dare a declaration of his
feelings. There was one element only in her mental make-up he feared.
She held tenaciously the old-fashioned romantic ideals of love. To
her it seemed a divine mystery linking the souls that felt it to the
infinite. If he could only destroy this divine mystery idea, he felt
sure that her sense of isolation, and her proud rebellion against
the disappointments of life would make her an easy prey to his
blandishments.

He searched his library over for a book that could scientifically
demonstrate the purely physical basis of love. He knew that somewhere in
his studies at a medical college in New York he had read it.

At last he discovered it among a lot of old magazines. It was a brief
study by a great physician of Paris, entitled “The Natural History of
Love.” He gave it to her, and asked her to read it and give him her
candid opinion of its philosophy.

He waited a week and on a Saturday when the Preacher was absent at
one of his county mission stations he called at the hotel for a long
afternoon’s talk. He determined to press his suit.

“Do you know, Mrs. Durham, what gives a preacher his boasted power of
the spirit over his audiences?” he inquired with a curious laugh in the
midst of which he changed his tone of voice.

“No, you are an expert on the diseases of preachers, what is it?”

“Very simple. Religion is founded on love, there never was a magnetic
preacher who was not a resistless magnet for scores of magnetic women.
If you don’t believe it, watch how resistless is the impulse of all
these good-looking women to shake hands with their preacher, and how
fondly they look at him across the pews if the crowd is too dense to
reach his hand.”

A frown passed over her face, and she winced at the thrust, yet her
answer was a surprising question to him.

“Do you really believe in anything, Allan?”

“You ask that?” he said leaning closer. “You whose great dark eyes look
through a man’s very soul?”

“I begin to think I have never seen yours. I doubt if you have a soul.”

“Well, what’s the use of a soul? I can’t satisfy the wants of my body.”

“Answer my question. Do you believe in anything?”

“Yes,” he replied, his voice sinking to a tense whisper, “I believe in
Woman,--in love.”

“In Woman?”

“Yes, Woman.”

“You mean women,” she sneered.

He started at her answer, looked intently at her, and said deliberately,
“I mean you, the One Woman, the only woman in the world to me.”

“I do not believe one word you have uttered, yet, I confess with shame,
you have always fascinated me.”

“Why with shame? You have but one life to live. The years pass. Even
beauty so rare as yours fades at last. The end is the grave and worms.
Why dash from your beautiful lips the cup of life when it is full to the
brim?”

“How skillfully you echo the dark thoughts that flit on devil wings
through the soul, when we feel the bitterness of life’s failure, its
contradictions and mysteries!” she exclaimed, closing her eyes for a
moment and leaning back in her chair.

“You’ve often talked to me about the necessity of some sort of slavery
for the Negro if he remain in America. I begin to believe that slavery
is a necessity for all women.”

“I fail to see it, sir.”

“All women are born slaves and choose to remain so through life. It
is curious to see you, a proud imperious woman, born of a race of
unconquerable men, staggering to-day under the chains of four thousand
years of conventional laws made by the brute strength of men. And
you, if you struggle at all, beat your wings against the bars that the
slaveholding male brute has built about your soul, fall back at last
and give up to the will of your master. This too, when you hold in your
simple will the key that would unlock your prison door and make you
free. It’s a pitiful sight.”

“How shrewd a tempter!”

“There you are again. He who dares to tell you that you are of yourself
a living human being, divinely free, is a tempter from the devil. You
are thinking about eternity. Well, now is eternity. Live, stand erect,
take a deep breath, and dare to be yourself and do what you please. That
is what I do. The future is a myth.”

“Yes, I know the freedom of which you boast,” she quietly observed, “it
is the freedom of lust. The return to nature you dream of is simply
the fall downward into the dirt out of which a rational and spiritual
manhood has grown. I feel and know this in spite of your handsome face
and the fine ring of your voice.”

“Dirt. Dirt!” he mused. “Yes, I was in the dirt once, was born in
it, the dirt of poverty and superstition and fears of laws here and
hereafter. But I awoke at last, and shook it off, washed myself in
knowledge and stood erect. I am a man now, with the eye of a king,
conscious of my power. I look a lying hypocritical world in the face. I
have made up my mind to live my own life in spite of fools, and in spite
of the laws and conventions of fools.”

“And yet I believe you carry a horse-chestnut in your pocket, and will
not undertake an important work on Friday?” she returned.

“But I never strangle a normal impulse of my nature that I can satisfy.
I am not that big a fool, at least.”

She was silent, and then said, “I can never thank you enough for the
book you sent me.”

McLeod sighed in relief at her change of tone. After all she was just
tantalising him!

“Then you liked it?” he cried with glittering eyes.

“I devoured every word of it with a greed you can not understand. A
great man wrote it.”

“Then we can understand each other better from today,” he interrupted
smilingly.

“Yes, far better. You gave me this book hoping that it might influence
my character by destroying my ideal of love, didn’t you, now frankly?”

“Honestly, I did hope it would emancipate you from superstitions.”

“It has,” she declared, but with a curious curve of her lip that chilled
him.

“What are you driving at?” he asked suspiciously.

“This book has given me the key that unlocked for me, for the first
time, the riddle of my physical being. It has shown me the physical
basis of love, just as I knew before there was a physical basis of the
soul.”

“What did you understand the book to teach?” he asked.

“Simply that love is based in its material life, on the lobe of the
brain which develops at the base of a child’s head near the age of
thirteen. That this lobe of the brain is the sex centre, and love is
impossible until it develops. That this centre of new powers at the base
of the skull is a physical magnet. That when a man and woman approach
each other, who are by nature mates, these magnetic centres are
disturbed by action and reaction, and that this disturbance develops
the second elemental passion called love. The first elemental passion,
hunger, has for its end the preservation of the individual; while love
finds its fulfillment in the preservation of the species. Love finds its
satisfaction in the child, its ardour cools, and it dies, unless kept
alive by the social conventions of the family, which are not based
merely on this violent emotion, but also on unity of tastes, which
produce the sense of comradeship. For these reasons it is possible to
fall violently in love more than once, and there are dozens of people
who possess this magnetic power over us and would respond to it
violently if we only came in social contact with them. That the romantic
bombast about the possibility of but one love in life, and that of
supernatural origin, is twaddle, and leads to false ideals. Have I given
the argument?”

“Exactly. But what do you deduce from it?”

“Freedom!”

“Good!” he cried, licking his lips.

“Freedom from superstitions about love,” she answered, “and positive
knowledge of its elemental beauty which Nature reveals. In short, I no
longer wonder and brood over your charm for me. I know exactly what it
means, and how it might occur again and again with another and another.
I have simply throttled it in a moment by an act of my will, based on
this knowledge.”

“You amaze me.”

“No doubt. One’s character centres in the soul, or the appetites. Mine
is in the soul, yours in the appetites. I see you to-day as you really
are, and I loathe you with an unspeakable loathing. You have opened
my eyes with this beautiful little book of Nature. I thank you. Your
scientist has convinced me that there are possibly a hundred men in the
world who would affect me as you do, were we to meet. And when I looked
back into the sweet face of my dead boy, I learned another truth, that
in the union of my first great love I was bound in marriage, not simply
by a social convention, or a state contract, but for life by Nature’s
eternal law. The period of infancy of one child extends over twenty-one
years, covering the whole maternal life of the woman who marries at the
proper age of twenty-four. This union of one man and one woman never
seemed so sacred to me as now. It is Nature’s law, it is God’s law.”

McLeod’s anger was fast rising.

“Don’t fool yourself,” he sneered, “You may overwork your maternal
intuitions. You remember the kiss you gave me when a boy just fifteen?
Well, you fooled yourself then about its maternal quality. The magnet
of my red head drew your coal black one down to it with irresistible
power.”

“Perhaps so, Allan. Your work is done. There is the door. I say a last
good-bye, with pity for your shallow nature, and the bitter revelation
you have given me of your worthlessness.”

Without another word he left, but with a dark resolution of slander with
which he would tarnish her name, and wring the Preacher’s heart with
anguish.




CHAPTER XXI--WHY THE PREACHER THREW HIS LIFE AWAY

WHILE Mrs. Worth and Sallie were still in the North, the Rev. John
Durham received a unanimous call to the pastorate of one of the most
powerful Baptist churches in Boston, with a salary of five thousand
dollars a year. He was receiving a salary of nine hundred dollars at
Hambright, which could boast at most a population of two thousand. He
declined the call by return mail.

The committee were thunderstruck at this quick adverse decision, refused
to consider it final, and wrote him a long urgent letter of protest
against such ill-considered treatment. They urged that he must come to
Boston, and preach one Sunday, at least, in answer to their generous
offer, before rendering a final decision. He consented to do so, and
went to Boston. He sought Sallie the day after his arrival.

“Ah, my beautiful daughter of the South, it’s good to see you shining
here in the midst of the splendours of the Hub, the fairest of them
all!” he said shaking her hand feelingly.

“You mean pining, not shining,” she protested.

“That’s better still. I knew your heart was in the right place!”

“How is he, Doctor?” she asked.

“He’s trying to pull himself together with his work, and succeeding.
The shock of a great sorrow has steadied his nerves, broadened his
sympathies, and it will make him a man.”

A look of longing came over her face. “I don’t want him to be too strong
without me,” she faltered.

“Never fear. He’s so despondent at times I have to try to laugh him out
of countenance.”

She smiled and pressed his hand for answer as he rose to go.

“How do you like these Yankees, Miss Sallie?”

“I’ve been surprised and charmed beyond measure with everything I’ve
seen!”

“You don’t say so! How?”

“Well, I thought they were cold-blooded and inhospitable. I never made
a more foolish mistake. I have never been more at home, or been treated
more graciously in the South. To tell you the truth, they seem like
our most cultured people at home, warm-hearted, cordial, sensible and
neighbourly. Mama is so pleased she’s trying to claim kin with the
Puritans, through her Scotch Covenanter ancestry.”

“After all, I believe you are right. I never preached in my life to
so sensitive an audience. There’s an atmosphere of solid comfort, good
sense, and intelligence that holds me in a spell here. This is the place
in which I’ve dreamed I’d like to live and work.”

“Then you will accept, Doctor?”

“Now listen to you, child! Don’t you think I’ve a heart too? My brain
and body longs for such a home, but my heart’s down South with mine own
people who love and need me.”

The committee did their best to bring the Preacher to a favourable
decision at once, but he smiled a firm refusal. They refused to
report it to the church, and sent Deacon Crane, now a venerable man
of seventy-six, the warmest admirer of the Preacher among them all to
Hambright. They authorised him to make an amazing offer of salary, if
that would be any inducement, and they felt sure it would.

When the Deacon reached Hambright and saw its poverty and general air of
unimportance he felt encouraged.

“A man of such power stay a lifetime in this little hole! Impossible!”
 he exclaimed under his breath, when he looked out of the bus along the
wide deserted looking streets with a straggling cottage here and there
on either side.

He stopped at the same hotel with the Preacher and became his shadow for
a week. He was seated with him under the oak in the square, threshing
over his argument for the hundredth time, in the most good-natured, but
everlastingly persistent way.

“Doctor, it’s perfect nonsense for a man of your magnificent talents, of
your culture and power over an audience, to think of living always in a
little village like this!”

“No, deacon, my work is here for the South.”

“But, my dear man, in Boston, it would be for the whole nation, North
and South. I ’ll tell you what we will do. Say you will come, and we
will make your salary eight thousand a year. That’s the largest salary
ever offered a Baptist preacher in America. You will pack our church
with people, give us new life, and we can afford it. You will be a power
in Boston, and a power in the world.”

The Preacher smiled and was silent. At length he said, “I appreciate
your offer, deacon. You pay me the highest compliment you know how to
express. But you prosperous Yankees can’t get into your heads the idea
that there are many things which money can’t measure.”

“But we know a good thing when we see it, and we go for it!” interrupted
the deacon.

“Believe me,” continued the Preacher, “I appreciate the sacrifice, the
generosity, and breadth of sympathy this offer shows in your hearts. But
it is not for me. My work is here. I don’t mind confessing to you that
you have vastly pleased me with that offer. I ’ll brag about it to
myself the rest of my life.”

“But Doctor, think how much greater power a generous salary will give
you in furnishing your equipment for work, and in ministering to any
cause you may have at heart,” pleaded the deacon.

“I don’t know. I have a salary of nine hundred dollars. With five
hundred I buy books,--food, clothes, shelter, the companionship for the
soul. The balance suffices for the body. I haven’t time to bother with
money. The man who receives a big salary must live up to its social
obligations, and he must pay for it with his life.”

“Doctor, there must be some tremendous force that holds you to such a
decision in a village. It seems to me you are throwing your life away.”

“There is a tremendous force, deacon. It is the overwhelming sense of
obligation I feel to my own people who have suffered so much, and are
still in the grip of poverty, and threatened with greater trials.
I can’t leave my own people while they are struggling yet with this
unsolved Negro problem. Two great questions shadow the future of
the American people, the conflict between Labor and Capital, and the
conflict between the African and the Anglo-Saxon race. The greatest,
most dangerous, and most hopeless of these, is the latter. My place is
here.”

The deacon laughed. “You’re a crank on that subject. Come to Boston and
you will see with a better perspective that the question is settling
itself. In fact the war absolutely settled it.”

“Deacon,” said the Preacher with a quizzical expression about his eyes,
“Do you believe in the doctrine of Election?”

“Yes, I do.”

“I thought so. You know, I never saw a man who believed in the doctrine
of Election who didn’t believe he was elected. I never saw a man in
my life, except a lying politician, who declared the Negro problem was
settled, unless he had removed his family to a place of fancied safety
where he would never come in contact with it. And they all believe that
the Negro’s place is in the South.”

The deacon laughed good-naturedly.

“Come with us, and we will show you greater problems. For one, the life
and death struggle of Christianity itself with modern materialism. I
tell you the Negro problem was settled when slavery was destroyed.”

“You never made a sadder mistake. The South did not fight to hold
slaves. Our Confederate government at Richmond offered to guarantee
to Europe, the freedom of every slave for the recognition of our
independence. Slavery was bound of its own weight to fall. Virginia came
within one vote in her assembly of freeing her slaves years before the
war. But for the frenzy of your Abolition fanatics who first sought to
destroy the Union by Secession, and then forced Secession on the South,
we would have freed the slaves before this without a war, from the very
necessities of the progress of the material world, to say nothing of
its moral progress. We fought for the rights we held under the old
constitution, made by a slave-holding aristocracy. But we collided with
the resistless movement of humanity from the idea of local sovereignty
toward nationalism, centralisation, solidarity.”

“That’s why I say,” interrupted the deacon, “your Negro question has
already been settled. The nation has become a reality not a name.”

“And that is why I know, deacon,” insisted the Preacher, “that we have
not only not settled this question,--we haven’t even faced the issues.
Nationality demands solidarity. And you can never get solidarity in a
nation of equal rights out of two hostile races that do not intermarry.
_In a Democracy you can not build a nation inside of a nation of two
antagonistic races, and therefore the future American must be either an
Anglo Saxon or a Mulatto_. And if a Mulatto, will the future be worth
discussing?”

“I never thought of it in just that way,” answered the deacon.

“It is my work to maintain the racial absolutism of the Anglo-Saxon in
the South, politically, socially, economically.”

“But can it be done? I see many evidences of a mixture of blood
already,” said the deacon seriously.

“Yes, we are doing it. This mixture you observe has no social
significance, for a simple reason. It is all the result of the surviving
polygamous and lawless instincts of the white male. Unless by the
gradual encroachments of time, culture, wealth and political exigencies,
the time comes that a negro shall be allowed freely to choose a white
woman for his wife, the racial integrity remains intact. The right to
choose one’s mate is the foundation of racial life and of civilisation.
The South must guard with flaming sword every avenue of approach to
this holy of holies. And there are many subtle forces at work to obscure
these possible approaches.”

“Well, no matter,” broke in the deacon, “come with us, and you will have
more power to touch with your ideas the wealth and virtue of the whole
nation.”

The Preacher was silent a moment and seemed to be musing in a sort
of half dream. The deacon looked at him with a growing sense of the
hopelessness of his task, but of surprise at this revelation of the
secrets of his inner life.

“The South has been voiceless in these later years,” he went on, “her
voice has been drowned in a din of cat-calls from an army of cheap
scribblers and demagogues. But when these children we are rearing down
here grow, rocked in their cradles of poverty, nurtured in the fierce
struggle to save the life of a mighty race, they will find speech, and
their songs will fill the world with pathos and power.

“I’ve studied your great cities. Believe me the South is worth saving.
Against the possible day when a flood of foreign anarchy threatens the
foundations of the Republic and men shall laugh at the faiths of your
fathers, and undigested wealth beyond the dreams of avarice rots your
society, until it mocks at honour, love and God--against that day we
will preserve the South!”

The Preacher’s voice was now vibrating with deep feeling, and the deacon
listened with breathless interest.

“Believe me, deacon, the ark of the covenant of American ideals rests
to-day on the Appalachian Mountain range of the South. When your
metropolitan mobs shall knock at the doors of your life and demand the
reason of your existence, from these poverty-stricken homes, with their
old-fashioned, perhaps mediaeval ideas, will come forth the fierce
athletic sons and sweet-voiced daughters in whom the nation will find
a new birth!” The Preacher’s eyes had filled with tears and his voice
dropped into a low dream-like prophecy.

“You can not understand,” he resumed, in a clear voice, “why I feel so
profoundly depressed just now because the Republican party, which, with
you stands for the virtue, wealth and intelligence of the community,
is now in charge of this state. I will tell you why. A Republican
administration in North Carolina simply means a Negro oligarchy. The
state is now being debauched and degraded by this fact in the innermost
depths of its character and life. My place is here in this fight.”

“But, Doctor, will not your industrial training of the Negro gradually
minimise any danger to your society?”

“No, it will gradually increase it. Industrial training gives power. If
the Negro ever becomes a serious competitor of the white labourer in
the industries of the South, the white man will kill him, just as your
labour Unions do in the North now where the conditions of life are hard,
and men fight with tooth and nail for bread. If you train the negroes to
be scientific farmers they will become a race of aristocrats, and when
five generations removed from the memory of slavery, a war of races will
be inevitable, unless the Anglo-Saxon grant this trained and wealthy
African equal social rights. The Anglo-Saxon can not do this without
suicide. One drop of Negro blood makes a negro.”

“I can’t tell you how sorry I am, Doctor, that I can’t persuade you to
become our pastor. But I can understand since this talk something of the
larger views of your duty.”

The deacon sought Mrs. Durham that evening and laid siege to her
resolutely.

“Ah! deacon, you’re shrewd--you are going to flatter me, but I can’t let
you. I’m an old fogy and out of date. I’m not orthodox on the Negro from
Boston’s point of view.”

“Nonsense!” growled the deacon. “We don’t care what you or the Doctor
either thinks about the Negro, or the Jap, or the Chinaman. We want a
preacher imbued with the power of the Holy Ghost to preach the Gospel of
Christ.”

“Well, you have quite captured me since you have been here. You are a
revelation to me of what a deacon might be to a pastor and his wife. To
be frank with you, I am on your side. I am tired of the Negro. I don’t
want to solve him. He is an impossible job from my point of view. I
should be delighted to go to Boston now and begin life over again. But
I do not figure in the decision. Dr. Durham settles such questions for
himself. And I respect him more for it.”

Encouraged by this decision of his wife the deacon renewed his efforts
to change the Preacher’s mind next day in vain. He stayed over Sunday,
heard him preach two sermons, and sorrowfully bade him good-bye on
Monday. He carried back to Boston his final word declining this call.

As the deacon stepped on the train, he warmly pressed his hand and said,
“God bless you, Doctor. If you ever need a friend, you know my name and
address.”




CHAPTER XXII--THE FLESH AND THE SPIRIT

GASTON tried to wait in patience another week for a word from the woman
he loved, and when the last mail came and brought no letter for him, he
found himself face to face with the deepest soul crisis of his life.

After all, thoughts are things. The report of her social frivolities at
first made little impression on him. But the thought had fallen in his
heart, and it was growing a poisoned weed.

It is possible to kill the human body with an idea. The fairest day the
spring ever sent can be blackened and turned from sunshine into storm by
the flitting of a little cloud of thought no bigger than a man’s hand.

So Gaston found this report of dancing and flirting in a gay society by
the woman whom he had enthroned in the holy of holies of his soul to be
destroying his strength of character, and like a deadly cancer eating
his heart out.

He sat down by his window that night, unable to work, and tried to
reconcile such a life with his ideal.

“Why should I be so provincial!” he mused. “The thing only shocks me
because I am unused to it. She has grown up in this atmosphere. To her
it is a harmless pastime.”

Then he took out of his desk her picture, lit his lamp and looked long
and tenderly at it, until his soul was drunk again with the memory of
her beauty, the warm touch of her hand, and the thrill of her full soft
lips in the only two kisses he had ever received from the heart of a
woman.

Then, the vision of a ball-room came to torture him. He could see her
dressed in that delicate creation of French genius he had seen her wear
the memorable night at the Springs. The French know so deeply the subtle
art of draping a woman’s body to tempt the souls of men. How he cursed
them to-night! He could see her bare arms, white gleaming shoulders,
neck, and back, and round full bosom softly rising and falling with her
breathing, as she swept through a brilliant ball-room to the strains of
entrancing music.

He knew the dance was a social convention, of course. But its deep
Nature significance he knew also. He knew that it was as old as human
society, and full of a thousand subtle suggestions,--that it was the
actual touch of the human body, with rhythmic movement, set to the
passionate music of love. This music spoke in quivering melody what
the lips did not dare to say. This he knew was the deep secret of the
fascination of the dance for the boy and the girl, the man and the
woman. How he cursed it to-night!

His imagination leaped the centuries that separate us from the great
races of the past who scorned humbug and hypocrisy, and held their
dances in the deep shadows of great forests, without the draperies of
tailors. These men and women looked Nature in the face and were not
afraid, and did not try to apologise or lie about it. He felt humiliated
and betrayed.

He thought too of her wealth with a feeling of resentment and isolation.
Taken with this social nightmare it seemed to raise an impossible
barrier between them. He knew that in the terrible quarrel she had with
her father on their first clash, he had sworn if she disobeyed him to
disinherit her. She had answered him in bitter defiance. And yet time
often changes these noble visions of poverty and strenuous faith in high
ideals. Wealth and all its good things becomes with us at last habit.
And habit is life.

Could it be possible she had weakened in resolution of loyalty when
brought face to face with the actual breaking of the habits of a
lifetime? Might not the three forces combined, the habit of social
conventions, the habit of luxury, and the habit of obedience to a
masterful and lovable father, be sufficient to crush her love at
last? It seemed to him to-night, not only a possibility, but almost an
accomplished fact.

At one o’clock he went to bed and tried to sleep. He tossed for an hour.
His brain was on fire, and his imagination lit with its glare. He could
sweep the world with his vision in the silence and the darkness. Yes,
the world that is, and that which was, and is to come!

He arose and dressed. It was half-past two o’clock. He knew that this
was to be the first night in all his life when he could not sleep. He
was shocked and sobered by the tremendous import of such an event in
the development of his character. He had never been swept off his feet
before. He knew now that before the sun rose he would fight with the
powers and princes of the air for the mastery of life.

He left his room and walked out on the road to the Springs over which he
had gone so many times in childhood. The moon was obscured by fleeting
clouds, and the air had the sharp touch of autumn in its breath. He
walked slowly past the darkened silent houses and felt his brain begin
to cool in the sweet air.

The last note he had received from her weeks ago was the brief one
announcing the new break in the poor little correspondence she had
promised him. The last paragraph of that note now took on a sinister
meaning. He recalled it word by word:

“I feel like I can not trifle with you in this way again. It is
humiliating to me and to you. I can see no light in our future. I
release you from any tie I may have imposed on your life. I feel I
have fallen short of what you deserve, but I am so situated between my
mother’s failing health and my father’s will, and my love for them both,
I can not help it. I will love you always, but you are free.”

Was not this a kindly and final breaking of their pledge to one another?
Yet she had not returned the little medal he had given her with that
exchange of eternal love and faith. Could she keep this and really mean
to break with him finally? He could not believe it.

His whole life had been dominated by this dream of an ideal love. For it
he had denied himself the indulgences that his college mates and young
associates had taken as a matter of course. He had never touched wine.
He had never smoked. He had never learned the difference between a queen
and jack in cards. He had kept away from women. He had given his body
and soul to the service of his Ideal, and bent every energy to the
development of his mind that he might grasp with more power its
sweetness and beauty when realised.

Did it pay? The Flesh was shrieking this question now into the face of
the Spirit?

He had met the One Woman his soul had desired above all others. There
could be no mistake about that. And now she was failing him when he had
laid at her feet his life. It made him sick to recall how utter had been
his surrender.

Why should he longer deny the flesh, when the soul’s dream failed the
test of pain and struggle?

Was it possible that he had been a fool and was missing the full
expression of life, which is both flesh and spirit?

The world was full of sweet odours. He had delicate and powerful
nostrils. Why not enjoy them? The world was full of beauty ravishing
to the eye. He had keen eyes trained to see. Why should he not open his
eyes and gaze on it all? The world was full of entrancing music. He had
ears trained to hear. Why should he stuff them with dreams of a doubtful
future, and not hear it all? The world was full of things soft and good
to the touch. Why should he not grasp them? His hands were cunning, and
every finger tingled with sensitive nerve tips. The world was full
of good things sweet to the taste, why should he not eat and drink as
others, as old and wise perhaps?

Was a man full-grown until he had seen, felt, smelled, tasted, and
heard all life? Was there anything after all, in good or bad? Were these
things not names? If not, how could we know unless we tried them? What
was the good of good things?

“Am I not a narrow-minded fool, instead of a wise man, to throttle my
impulses and deny the flesh for an imaginary gain?” he asked himself
aloud.

She had written he was free.

“Well, by the eternal, I will be free!” he exclaimed, “I will sweep the
whole gamut of human passion and human emotion. I will drink life to the
deepest dregs of its red wine. I will taste, feel, see, touch, hear all!
I will not be cheated. I will know for myself what it is to live.”

When he woke to the consciousness of time and place, he found he was
seated at the Sulphur Spring where it gushed from the foot of the hill,
and that the eastern horizon was grey with the dawn.

A sense of new-found power welled up in him. He had regained control of
himself.

“Good! I will no longer be a moping love-sick fool. I am a man. To will
is to live, to cease to will is to die. I have regained my will,--I
live!”

He walked rapidly back to town with vigourous step. His mind was clear.

“I will never write her another line until she writes to me. I will not
be a dog and whine at any rich man’s door or any woman’s feet. The world
is large, and I am large. I will be sought as well as seek. Besides, my
country needs me. If I am to give myself it will be for larger ends than
for the smiles of one woman!”

And then for two weeks he entered deliberately on a series of
dissipations. He left Hambright and sought convivial friends on the sea
coast. He amazed them by asking to be taught cards.

He swept the gamut of all the senses without reserve, day after day, and
night after night.

At the end of two weeks he found himself haunting the post-office
oftener, with a vague sense of impending calamity.

“The thing’s all over I tell you!” he said to himself again and again.
And then he would hurry to the next mail as eagerly as ever. As the
excitement began to tire him, the sense of longing for her face, and
voice, and the touch of her hand became intolerable.

“My God, I’d give all the world holds of sin to see her and hear one
word from her lips!” he exclaimed as he locked himself in his room one
night.

“Why didn’t she answer my last letter?” he continued. “Ah, that was
the best letter I ever wrote her. I put my soul in every word. I didn’t
believe the woman lived who could read such confessions and such worship
without reply; Surely she has a heart!”

When he went to the post-office next day he got a letter forwarded from
Hambright by the Preacher. It was postmarked Narragansett Pier, and
addressed in a bold masculine hand he had never seen before.

He tore it open, and inside found his last letter to Sallie Worth,
returned with the seal unbroken. He sprang to his feet with flashing
eyes, trembling from head to foot.

“Ah! they did not dare to let her receive another of my letters! So a
clerk returns it unopened,” he cried.

And a great lump rose in his throat as he thought of the scenes of the
past two weeks. The old fever and the old longing came rushing over
his prostrate soul now in resistless torrents: “How dare a strange hand
touch a message to her! I could strangle him. We will see now who wins
the fight.” He set his lips with determination, packed his valise, and
took the train for home without a word of farewell to the companions of
his revels.

When he reached Hambright he felt sure of a letter from her. A strange
joy filled his heart.

“I have either got a letter or she’s writing one to me this minute!” he
exclaimed.

He went to the post-office in a state of exhilaration. The letter was
not there. But it did not depress him.

“It is on the way,” he quickly said.

For two days, he remained in that condition of tense nervous excitement
and expectation, and on the following day he opened his box and found
his letter.

“I knew it!” he said with a thrill of joy that was half awe at the
remarkable confirmation he had received of their sympathy.

He hurried to his office and read the big precious message.

How its words burned into his soul! Every line seemed alive with her
spirit. How beautiful the sight of her handwriting! He kissed it again
and again. He read with bated breath. The address was double expressive,
because it contained the first words of abandoned tenderness with which
she had ever written to him, except in the concealed message dotted in
the note that broke their earlier correspondence.

“My Precious Darling:--I have gone through deep waters within the last
three weeks. I became so depressed and hungry to see you, I felt some
awful calamity was hanging over you and over me, and that it was my
fault. I could scarcely eat or sleep.

“I felt I should go mad if I did not speak and so I told Mama. She
sympathised tenderly with me but insisted I should not write. She is so
feeble I could not cross her. But Oh! the agony of it! Sometimes I saw
you drowning and stretching out your hands to me for help.

“Sometimes in my dreams I saw you fighting against overwhelming odds with
strong brutal men, whose faces were full of hate, and I could not reach
you.

“I was nervous and unstrung, but you can never know how real the horror
of it all was upon me.

“I made up my mind one night to telegraph you. I heard some one talking
inside Mama’s room. I gently opened the door between our rooms, and she
was praying aloud for me. I stood spellbound. I never knew how she loved
me before. When at last she prayed that in the end I might have the
desire of my heart, and my life be crowned with the joy of a noble man’s
love, and that it might be yours, and that she should be permitted to
see and rejoice with me, I could endure it no longer.

“Choking with sobs I ran to her kneeling figure, threw my arms around her
neck and covered her dear face with kisses.

“I could not send the message I had written after that scene.

“The next day Papa came, and she told him in my presence, ‘Now, General I
have carried out your wishes with Sallie against my judgment. The strain
has been more than you can understand. I give up the task. You can
manage her now to suit yourself.’

“There was a firmness in her voice I had never heard before. He noted
it, and was startled into silence by it. He had a long talk with me and
repeated his orders with increasing emphasis.

“The next day I was unusually depressed. I did not get out of bed all
day. At night I went down to supper. The clerk at the desk of the hotel
called me and said, ‘Miss Worth, I have a terrible sin to confess to
you. I’m a lover myself, and I’ve done you a wrong. I returned to a
young man yesterday a letter to you by request of the General. Forgive
me for it, and don’t tell him I told you.’

“That night Papa and I had a fearful scene. I will not attempt to
describe it. But the end was, I said to him with all the courage of
despair: I am twenty-one years old. I am a free woman. I will write to
whom I please and when I please and I will not ask you again. It is your
right to turn me out of your house, but you shall not murder my soul!

“Then for the first time in his life Papa broke down and sobbed like a
child. We kissed and made up, and I am to write to you when I like.

“Forgive my long silence. Write and tell me you love me. My heart is sick
with the thought that I have been cowardly and failed you. Write me a
long letter, and you can not say things extravagant enough for my hungry
heart.

“I feel utterly helpless when I think how completely you have come to
rule my life. I wish you to rule it. It is all yours”----

And then she said many little foolish things that only the eyes of the
one lover should ever see, for only to him could they have meaning.

When he finished reading this letter, and had devoured with eagerness
these foolish extravagances with which she closed it, he buried his face
in his arms across his desk.

A big strong boastful man whose will had defied the world! Now he was
crying like a whipped child.




BOOK THREE--THE THE TRIAL BY FIRE




CHAPTER I--A GROWL BENEATH THE EARTH

APPARENTLY McLeod’s triumph was complete and permanent. The farmers
were disappointed in their wild hopes of a sub-treasury, and other
socialistic schemes, but the passions of the campaign had been violent,
and the offices they had won with their Negro ally had been soothing to
their sense of pride.

A Republican farmer was Governor for a term of four years, they had
elected two Senators, and three Supreme Court judges, and they had
completely smashed the power of the Democratic party in the county
governments. Everywhere they were triumphant in the local elections,
filling almost every county office with heavy-handed sons of toil from
the country districts, and making the town fops who had been drawing
these fat salaries get out and work for a living.

Even McLeod was amazed at the thoroughness with which they cleaned the
state of every vestige of the invincible Democracy that had ruled with a
rod of iron since Legree’s flight.

Gaston could see but one weak spot in the alliance. The negroes had
demanded their share of the spoils, and were gradually forcing their
reluctant allies to grant them. He watched the progress of this movement
with thrilling interest. The negroes had demanded the repeal of the
county government plan of the Democracy, under which the credit of the
forty black counties had been rescued from bankruptcy at the expense of
local selfgovernment.

When the lawmakers who succeeded Legree had put this scheme of
centralised power in force, these forty counties were immediately lifted
from ruin to prosperity. But no negro ever held another office in them.

Now the negroes demanded the return to the principles of pure Democracy
and the right to elect all town, township, and county officers direct.
They got their demands. They took charge in short order of the great
rich counties in the Black Belt, and white men ceased to hold the
offices.

A negro college-graduate from Miss Walker’s classical institution had
started a newspaper at Independence noted for its open demands for the
recognition of the economic, social and political equality of the races.
Young negro men and women walking the streets now refused to give half
the sidewalk to a white man or woman when they met, and there were an
increasing number of fights from such causes.

Gaston noted these signs with a growing sense of their import, and began
his work for the second great campaign. The election for a legislature
alone, he knew was lost already. His party had simply abandoned the
fight. The Allied Party had passed new election laws, and under the
tutelage of the doubtful methods of the past they had taken every
partisan advantage possible within the limits of the Constitution. They
could not be overthrown short of a political earthquake, and he knew it.
But he thought he heard in the depths of the earth the low rumble of its
coming, and he began to prepare for it.




CHAPTER II--FACE TO FACE WITH FATE

THREE weeks before Christmas Gaston began to dream of the visit he was
to make to Independence to see Sallie Worth. How long it seemed since
she had kissed him in the twilight of that Pullman car and the Limited
had rolled away bearing her further and further from his life! He would
sit now for an hour reading her last letter, looking at her picture on
his desk, and dreaming of what she would say when he sat by her side
again in her own home.

And then like a thunderbolt out of a clear sky came a tearful letter
announcing another storm at home. Her father had again forbidden her
to write. She said, at the last, that Gaston’s visit must be postponed
indefinitely for the present. He gazed at the letter with a hardened
look.

“I _will_ go. I ’ll face General Worth in his own home, and demand his
reasons for such treatment. I am a man I am entitled to the respect of
a man.” He made this declaration with a quiet force that left no doubt
about his doing it.

He wrote Sallie that he could not and would not endure such a fight in
the dark with the General, and that he was going to Independence on the
day before Christmas as she had planned at first, to have it out with
him face to face.

She wrote in reply and begged him under no circumstances to come until
conditions were more favourable. He got this letter the day before he
was to start.

“I ’ll go and I ’ll see him if I have to fight my way into his
house, that’s all there is to it!” he exclaimed.

When he reached Independence, St. Clare met him at the depot, and gave
him an eager welcome.

“I’ve been expecting you, you hard-headed fool!” he said impulsively.

“Well, your words are not equal to your handshake. What’s the matter?”
 asked Gaston.

“You know what’s the matter. Miss Sallie has been to see me this
afternoon, and begged me to chain you at my house if you came to town
to-day.”

“Well, you ’ll need handcuffs, and help to get them on,” replied
Gaston with quiet decision.

“Look here, old boy, you’re not going down to that house to-night with
the old man threatening to kill you on sight, and your girl bordering on
collapse!”

“I am. I’ve been bordering on collapse for some time myself. I’m getting
used to it.”

“You’re a fool.”

“Granted, but I ’ll risk it.”

“But, man, I tell you Miss Sallie will be furious with you if you go
after all the messages she has sent you.”

“I ’ll risk her fury too.”

“Gaston, let me beg you not to do it.”

“I’m going, Bob. It isn’t any use for you to waste your breath.”

“You know where my heart is, old chum,” said Bob, yielding reluctantly.
“I couldn’t go down to that house to-night under the conditions you are
going for the world.”

“Why not? It’s the manly thing to do.”

“It’s a dangerous thing to do. Fathers have killed men under such
conditions.”

“Well, I ’ll risk it. I’m going as soon as I can brush up a little.”

Bob walked with him to the outskirts of the city, begging in vain that
he should turn back, but he never slacked his pace.

When he turned to go home, Bob pressed his hand and said “Good luck. And
may your shadow never grow less.”

Gaston walked rapidly on toward Oakwood. As he passed through the
shadows of the forest near the gate, a flood of tender memories rushed
over him. He was back again by her side on that morning he met her, with
the first flush of love thrilling his life. He could see her looking
earnestly at him as though trying to solve a riddle. He could hear her
laughter full of joy and happiness. As he turned into the gateway the
house flashed on him its gleaming windows from the hill top. He felt
his heart sink with bitterness as he realised the contrast of his last
entrance into that house, its welcomed guest, and his present unbidden
intrusion. Once those lights had gleamed only a message of peace and
love. Now they seemed signals of war some enemy had set on the hill to
warn of his approach.

He paused a moment and wiped the perspiration from his brow. It was
Christmas eve, but the air was balmy and spring-like and his rapid walk
had tired him. He had eaten nothing all day, had slept only a few hours
the night before, and the nerve strain had been more than he knew.

He looked up at the great white pillars softly shining in the starlight,
and a sickening fear of a possible tragedy behind those doors crept over
him.

“My God!” he exclaimed, “I had rather charge a breastworks in the face
of flashing guns than to go into that house to-night and meet one man!”

He recognised the breach of the finer amenities of life involved in
forcing his way into a home under such conditions, and it humiliated him
for a moment.

“We will not stickle for forms now,” he said to himself firmly. “This
is war. I am to uncover the batteries of my enemy. I have hesitated long
enough. I will not fight in the dark another day.”

As he stepped briskly up to the door, he started at a sudden thought.
What if the General had ordered the servants to slam the door in his
face! The possibility of such an unforeseen insult made the cold sweat
break out over his face as he rang the bell. No matter, he was in for it
now, he would face hell if need be!

He waited but an instant, and heard the heavy tread of a man approach
the door. Instinctively he knew that the General himself was on guard,
and would open the door. Evidently he had expected him.

The door opened about two feet and the General glared at him livid with
rage. He held one hand on the door and the other on its facing, and his
towering figure filled the space.

“Good evening, General!” said Gaston with embarrassment.

“What do you want, sir?” he growled.

“I wish to see you for a few minutes.”

“Well, I don’t want to see you.”

“Whether you wish to or not, you must do it sooner of later,” answered
Gaston with dignity.

“Indeed! Your insolence is sublime, I must say!”

“The sooner you and I have a plain talk the better for both of us. It
can’t be put off any longer,” Gaston continued with self control. He
was looking the General straight in the eyes now, with head and broad
shoulders erect and his square-cut jaws were snapping his words with a
clean emphasis that was not lost on the older master of men before him.

“Call at my office in the morning at ten o’clock.” he said, at length.

“I will not do it. I am going home on the nine o’clock train. To-morrow
is Christmas day. The issue between us is of life import to me, and it
may be of equal importance to you. I will not put it off another hour!”

The General glared at him. His hands began to tremble, and raising his
voice, he thundered, “I am not accustomed to take orders from young
upstarts. How dare you attempt to force yourself into my house when you
were told again and again not to attempt it, sir?”

“Your former welcome to me on three occasions when the object of my
visits was as well known to you as to me, gives me, at least, the vested
rights of a final interview. I demand it,” retorted Gaston curtly.

“And I refuse it!” Still there was a note of indecision in his voice
which Gaston was quick to catch.

“General,” he protested, “you are a soldier and a gentleman. You never
fought an enemy with uncivilised warfare. Yet you have allowed some one
under your protection to stab me in the dark for the past year. I am
entitled to know why I fight and against whom. I ask your sense of
fairness as a soldier if I am not right?”

The General hesitated, and finally said, as he opened the door, “Walk
into the parlour.”

When they were seated, Gaston plunged immediately into the question he
had at heart.

“Now, General, I wish to ask you plainly why you have treated me as you
have since I asked you for your daughter’s hand?”

“The less said about it, the better. I have good and sufficient reasons,
and that settles it.”

“But I have the right to know them.”

“What right?”

“The right of every man to face his accuser when on trial for his life.”

“Bah! men don’t die nowadays for love, or women either,” the General
growled.

“Besides,” continued Gaston, “you are under the deepest obligations to
tell me fairly your reasons.”

“Obligations?”

“The obligations of the commonest justice between man and man. You
invited me to your home. I was your welcome guest. You encouraged my
suit for your daughter’s hand.”

“How dare you say such a thing, sir!”

“Because she told me you did. I was led to believe that you not only
looked with favour on my suit, but that you were pleased with it.
I asked for your daughter. You insulted my manhood by refusing me
permission even to seek an interview, and know the reasons for your
change of views. Since then you have treated me with plain brutality.
Now something caused this change.”

“Certainly something caused it, something of tremendous importance,”
 said the General.

“I am entitled to know what it is.”

“Simply this. I received information concerning you, your habits, your
associates, your character, and your family, that caused me to change my
mind.”

“Did you inquire as to their truth?”

“It was unnecessary. I love my daughter beyond all other treasures I
possess. With her future I will take no risks.”

“I have the right to know the charges, General,” insisted Gaston. “I
demand it.”

“Well, sir, if you demand it, you will get it. I learned that you are
a man of the most dissolute habits and character, that you are a hard
drinker, a gambler, a rake and a spendthrift, and that your family’s
history is a deplorable one.”

“My family history a deplorable one!” cried Gaston, springing to his
feet, with trembling clinched fists and scarlet face on which the blue
veins suddenly stood out.

“I begged you to spare me and yourself the pain of this,” replied the
General in a softer voice.

“No, I do not ask to be spared. Give me the particulars. What is the
stain on my family name?”

“Not a moral one, but in some respects more hopeless, a physical one. I
have positive information that your people on one side are what is known
in the South as poor white trash--”

Gaston smiled. “I thank you, General, for your frankness. The only wrong
of which I complain, is your withholding the name of the liar.”

“There is no use of a fight over such things. I do not wish my
daughter’s name to be smirched with it.”

“Her name is as dear to me as it can possibly be to you. Never fear. You
are her father, I honour you as such. I thank you for the information. I
scorn to stoop to answer. The humour of it forbids an answer if I could
stoop to make one. Now, General, I make you this proposition. I am not
in a hurry. I will patiently wait any time you see fit to set for any
developments in my life and character about which you have doubts. All
I ask is the privilege of writing to the woman I love. Is not this
reasonable?”

“No, sir,” declared the General, “I will not have it. You are not in
a position to make me a proposition of any sort. I have settled this
affair. It is not open for discussion.”

“You mean to say that I have no standing whatever in the case?” asked
Gaston with a smile, rubbing his hand over his smooth shaved lips and
chin.

“Exactly. I’ve settled it. There’s nothing more to be said.”

“I ’ll never give her up. She is the one woman God made for me, and
you will have to put me under the ground before you have settled my end
of it,” said Gaston still smiling.

The old man’s face clouded for a moment, he wrinkled his brow, drew his
bushy eyebrows closer and then turned toward Gaston in a persuasive way.

“Look here, Gaston, don’t be a fool. It’s amusing to me to hear a
youngster talk such drivel. Love is not a fatal disease for a man, or a
woman. You will find that out later if you don’t know it now. I loved
a half dozen girls, and when I got ready to marry, I asked the one
handiest, and that seemed most suited to my temper. We married and have
lived as happily as the romancers. The world is full of pretty girls. Go
on about your business, and quit bothering me and mine.”

“There’s only one girl for me, General!”

“That’s proof positive to my mind that you are a little cracked!” he
answered with a smile.

Gaston laughed and shook his head. “I ’ll never give her up in this
world, or the next,” he doggedly added.

Again the General frowned. “Look here, young man, did it ever occur to
you that your pursuit might be held the work of a low adventurer? My
daughter is an heiress. You haven’t’ a dollar. Don’t you know that I
will disinherit her if she marries without my consent?”

“You can’t frighten me on that tack,” answered Gaston firmly. “No dollar
mark has yet been placed on the doors of Southern society. Manhood,
character and achievement are the keys that unlock it. You know that,
and I now it. I was poorer and more obscure the day you first invited me
here than to-day. And yet you gave me as hearty a welcome as her richest
suitor. All I ask is time to prove to you in my life my manhood and
worth,--one year, two years, five years, ten years, any time you see fit
to name.”

“No, sir,” firmly snapped the General, “not a day. I don’t like long
engagements. Yours is ended, once and for all time. I have settled
that.”

“Can even a father decide the destiny of two immortal souls off hand
like that?”

“Now, you are assuming too much. I am not speaking for myself alone. I
have laid all the facts carefully before Sallie, and she has agreed to
the wisdom of my decision, and asked me to represent her in what I say
this evening.”

Gaston turned pale, his lips quivered, and turning to the General
suddenly, he said, “That is the only important fact you have laid before
me. Just let her come here, stand by your side and say that with her own
lips, and I will never cross your path in life again.”

The General hung his head and stammered, “No, it is not necessary. It
will embarrass and humiliate her. I will not permit it.”

“Then I deny your credentials!” exclaimed Gaston.

The General seemed embarrassed by the failure of this fatherly
subterfuge, and Gaston could not help smiling at the revelation of his
weakness. He decided to press his advantage and try to see her if only
for a moment.

“General,” protested Gaston persuasively, “I appeal to your sense of
courtesy, even to an enemy. After all that has passed between us in this
house, is it fair or courteous to show me that door without one word of
farewell to the woman to whom I have given my life? Or is it wise from
your point of view?”

Again the General hesitated. He was a big-hearted man of generous
impulses, and he felt worsted in this interview somehow, but it was hard
to deny such a request. He fumbled at his watch chain, arose, and said,
“I will see if she desires it.”

Gaston’s heart bounded with joy! If she desired it! He could feel her
soul enveloping him with its love as he sat there conscious that she was
somewhere in that house praying for him!

He fairly choked with the pain and the joy of the certainty that in a
moment he would be near her, touch her hand, see her glorious beauty and
his ears drink the music of her voice.

“Just step this way,” said the General, re-appearing at the door.

Gaston walked into the hall and met Sallie as she emerged from the
library door opposite. He tried to say something, but his throat was dry
and his tongue paralysed with the wonder of her presence! Besides, the
General stood grimly by like a guard over a life prisoner.

He looked searchingly into her eyes as he held her hand for a moment
and felt its warm impulsive pressure. Oh! the eyes of the woman we love!
What are words to their language of melting tenderness, of faith and
longing. Gaston felt like shouting in the General’s face his triumph.
She tried to speak, but only pressed his hand again. It was enough.

He bowed to the General, and left without a word.




CHAPTER III--A WHITE LIE

THAT night as he walked back through the streets he was thrilled with
a sense of strength and of triumph. He knew his ground now. There was to
be war between him and the General to the bitter end. He had never asked
her once to oppose her father’s or mother’s command. Now he would see
who was master in a test of strength. And he was eager for the struggle.
His mind was alert, and every nerve and muscle tense with energy.

“Heavens, how hungry I am!” he exclaimed when he reached the brilliantly
lighted business portion of the city.

He went into a restaurant, ordered a steak, and enjoyed a good meal. He
recalled then that he had not eaten for twenty-four hours. The steak was
good, and the faces of the people seemed to him lit with gladness. He
was singing a battle song in his soul, and the eyes of the woman he
loved looked at him with yearning tenderness.

“Now, Bob, I count on you,” he cried to his friend next morning. “I am
going to have a merry Christmas and you are to aid in the skirmishing.”

“I’m with you to the finish!” Bob responded with enthusiasm.

“We must make a feint this morning to deceive the enemy while I turn his
flank. I go home on the nine o’clock train. You understand?”

“Yes, over the left. It’s dead easy too. There’s to be a big Christmas
party to-night at the Alexanders’. She’s invited. I ’ll see that she
goes to it if I have to drag her.”

“Good. Don’t tell her I’m in town. I want to surprise her.”

The General had a man at the morning train who reported Gaston’s
departure. He was surprised at Sallie’s good spirits but attributed it
to the magnificent present he had given her that morning of a diamond
ring and an exquisite pearl necklace.

He bustled her off to the party that night and congratulated himself on
the certainty of his triumph over an aspiring youngster who dared to set
his will against his own.

When the festivities had begun, and the children were busy with their
fireworks, Sallie strolled along the winding walks of the big lawn. She
was chatting with Bob St. Clare about a young man they both knew, and
when they reached the corner furthest from the house, under the shadows
of a great magnolia with low overhanging boughs she saw the figure of a
man.

She smiled into Bob’s face, pressed his hand and said, “Now, Bob you’ve
done all a good friend could do. Go back. I don’t need you.”

And Bob answered with a smile and left her. In a moment Gaston was by
her side with both her hands in his kissing them tenderly.

“Didn’t I surprise you, dear?” he softly asked.

“No. Bob denied you were here, but I knew it was a story. I was sure you
would never leave without seeing me. You couldn’t, could you?”

“Not after what I saw in your eyes last night!” He whispered.

“It seems a century since I’ve heard your voice,” she said wistfully.
“God alone knows what I have suffered, and I am growing weary of it.”

“Do you think I have been treated fairly?” he asked.

“No, I do not”

“Then you will write to me?”

“Yes. I will not starve my heart any longer.” And she pressed his hand.

“You have made the world glorious again! When will you marry me,
Sallie?” he bent his face close to her, and for an answer she tenderly
kissed him.

They stood in silence a moment with clasped hands, and then she said
slowly, “You didn’t want your freedom did you, dear? That’s the third
kiss, isn’t it? I wonder if kissing will be always as sweet! But you
asked me when we can marry? I can’t tell now. I can do nothing to shock
Mama. She seems to draw closer and closer to me every day. And now that
I have determined no power shall separate us, it seems more and more
necessary that I shall win Papa’s consent. He loves me dearly. I feel
that I must have his blessing on our lives. Give me time. I hope to win
him.”

“And you will never let another week pass without writing to me?”

“Never. Send my letters to Bob. He loves you better than he ever thought
he loved me. He will give them to me on Sundays at church, and when he
calls.”

For two hours the kindly mantle of the magnolia sheltered them while
they told the old sweet story over and over again. And somehow that
night it seemed to them sweeter each time it was told.




CHAPTER IV--THE UNSPOKEN TERROR

WHEN Gaston reached Hambright the following day, and whispered to his
mother the good news, he hastened to tell his friend Tom Camp. The young
man’s heart warmed toward the white-haired old soldier in this hour of
his victory. With sparkling eyes, he told Tom of his stormy scene with
the General, of its curious ending, and the hours he spent in heaven
beneath the limbs of an old magnolia.

[Illustration: 0396]

Tom listened with rapture. “Ah, didn’t I tell you, if you hung on you’d
get her by-and-by? So you bearded the General in his den did you? I
’ll bet his eyes blazed when he seed you! He’s got an awful temper
when you rile him. You ought to a seed him one day when our brigade was
ordered into a charge where three concealed batteries was cross firin’
and men was failin’ like wheat under the knife. Geeminy but didn’t he
cuss! He wouldn’t take the order fust from the orderly, and sent to know
if the Major-General meant it. I tell you us fellers that was layin’
there in the grass listenin’ to them bullets singin’ thought he was the
finest cusser that ever ripped an oath.

“He reared and he charged, and he cussed, and He damned that man for
tryin’ to butcher his men, and he never moved till the third order came.
That was the night ten thousand wounded men lay on the field, and me in
the middle of ’em with a Minie ball in my shoulder. The Yankees and
our men was all mixed up together, and just after dark the full moon
came up through the trees and you could see as plain as day. I begun to
sing the old hymn, ‘There is a land of pure delight,’ and you ought to
have heard them ten thousand wounded men sing!

“While we was singing the General came through lookin’ up his men. He
seed me and said, ‘Is that you, Tom Camp?’

“I looked up at him, and he was crying like a child, and he went on from
man to man cryin’ and cussin the fool that sent us into that hell-hole.
The General’s a rough man, if you rub his fur the wrong way, but his
heart’s all right. He’s all gold I tell you!”

“Well, I’m in for a tussle with him, Tom.”

“Shucks, man, you can beat him with one hand tied behind you if you’ve
got his gal’s heart. She’s got his fire, and a gal as purty as she is
can just about do what she pleases in this world.”

“I hope she can bring him around. I like the General. I’d much rather
not fight him.”

“Where’s Flora?” cried Tom looking around in alarm.

“I saw her going toward the spring in the edge of the woods there a
minute ago,” replied Gaston.

Tom sprang up and began to hop and jump down the path toward the spring
with incredible rapidity.

Flora was playing in the branch below the spring and Tom saw the form of
a negro man passing over the opposite hill going along the spring path
that led in that direction.

“Was you talkin’ with that nigger, Flora?” asked Tom holding his hand on
his side and trying to recover his breath.

“Yes, I said howdy, when he stopped to get a drink of water, and he give
me a whistle,” she replied with a pout of her pretty lips and a frown.

Tom seized her by the arm and shook her. “Didn’t I tell you to run every
time you seed a nigger unless I was with you!”

“Yes, but he wasn’t hurtin’ me and you are!” she cried bursting into
tears.

“I’ve a notion to whip you good for this!” Tom stormed.

“Don’t Tom, she won’t do it any more, will you Flora?” pleaded Gaston
taking her in his arms and starting to the house with her. When they
reached the house, Tom was still pale and trembling with excitement.

“Lord, there’s so many triflin’ niggers loafin’ round the county now
stealing and doin’ all sorts of devilment, I’m scared to death about
that child. She don’t seem any more afraid of ’em than she is of a
cat.”

“I don’t believe anybody would hurt Flora, Tom,--she’s such a little
angel,” said Gaston kissing the tears from the child’s face.

“She is cute--ain’t she?” said Tom with pride. “I’ve wished many a
time lately I’d gone out West with them Yankee fellers that took such a
likin’ to me in the war. They told me that a poor white man had a chance
out there, and that there wern’t a nigger in twenty miles of their home.
But then I lost my leg, how could I go?”

He sat dreaming with open eyes for a moment and continued, looking
tenderly at Flora, “But, baby, don’t you dare go nigh er nigger, or let
one get nigh you no more’n you would a rattlesnake!”

“I won’t Pappy!” she cried with an incredulous smile at his warning of
danger that made Tom’s heart sick. She was all joy and laughter, full of
health and bubbling life. She believed with a child’s simple faith that
all nature was as innocent as her own heart.

Tom smoothed her curls and kissed her at last, and she slipped her arm
around his neck and squeezed it tight.

“Ain’t she purty and sweet now?” he exclaimed.

“Tom, you ’ll spoil her yet,” warned Gaston as he smiled and took his
leave, throwing a kiss to Flora as he passed through the little yard
gate. Tom had built a fence close around his house when Flora was a baby
to shut her in while he was at work.

Two days later about five o’clock in the afternoon as Gaston sat in his
office writing a letter, to his sweetheart, his face aglow with love and
the certainty that she was his, as he read and re-read her last glowing
words he was startled by the sudden clang of the court house bell.
At first he did not move, only looking up from his paper. Sometimes
mischievous boys rang the bell and ran down the steps before any one
could catch them. But the bell continued its swift stroke seeming
to grow louder and wilder every moment. He saw a man rush across the
square, and then the bell of the Methodist, and then of the Baptist
churches joined their clamour to the alarm.

He snapped the lid of his desk, snatched his hat and ran down the steps.

As he reached the street, he heard the long piercing cry of a woman’s
voice, high, strenuous, quivering!

“A lost child! A lost child!”

What a cry! He was never so thrilled and awed by a human voice. In it
was trembling all the anguish of every mother’s broken heart transmitted
through the centuries!

At the court house door an excited group had gathered. A man was
standing on the steps gesticulating wildly and telling the crowd all he
knew about it. Over the din he caught the name, “Tom Camp’s Flora!”

He breathed hard, bit his lips, and prayed instinctively.

“Lord have mercy on the poor old man! It will kill him!” A great fear
brooded over the hearts of the crowd, and soon the tumult was hushed
into an awed silence.

In Gaston’s heart that fear became a horrible certainty from the first.
Within a half hour a thousand white people were in the crowd. Gaston
stood among them, cool and masterful, organising them in searching
parties, and giving to each group the signals to be used.

In a moment the white race had fused into a homogeneous mass of love,
sympathy, hate, and revenge. The rich and the poor, the learned and the
ignorant, the banker and the blacksmith, the great and the small, they
were all one now. The sorrow of that old one-legged soldier was the
sorrow of all, every heart beat with his, and his life was their life,
and his child their child.

But at the end of an hour there was not a negro among them! By some
subtle instinct they had recognised the secret feelings and fears of the
crowd and had disappeared. Had they been beasts of the field the gulf
between them would not have been deeper.

When Gaston reached Tom’s house the crowd was divided into the groups
agreed upon and a signal gun given to each. If the child was not dead
when found two should be fired--if dead, but one.

He sought Tom to be sure there was no mistake and that the child had not
fallen asleep about the house. He found the old man shut up in his room
kneeling in the middle of the floor praying.

When Gaston laid his hand gently on his shoulder his lips ceased to
move, and he looked at him in a dazed sort of way at first without
speaking.

“Oh!--it’s you, Charlie!” he sighed.

“Yes, Tom, tell me quick. Are you sure she is nowhere in the house?”

“Sure!--Sure?” he cried in a helpless stare. “Yes, yes, I found her
bonnet at the spring. I looked everywhere for an hour before I called
the neighbours!”

“Then I’m off with the searchers. The signal is two guns if they find
her alive. One gun if she is dead. You will understand.”

“Yes, Charlie,” answered the old soldier in a faraway tone of voice,
“and don’t forget to help me pray while you look for her.”

“I’ve tried already, Tom,” he answered as he pressed his hand and left
the house. All night long the search continued, and no signal gun was
heard. Torches and lanterns gleamed from every field and wood, byway and
hedge for miles in every direction.

Through every hour of this awful night Tom Camp was in his room
praying--his face now streaming with tears, now dry and white with the
unspoken terror that could stop the beat of his heart. His white hair
and snow-white beard were dishevelled, as he unconsciously tore them
with his trembling hands. Now he was crying in an agony of intensity,
“As thy servant of old wrestled with the angel of the Lord through the
night, so, oh God, will I lie at Thy feet and wrestle and pray! I will
not let Thee go until Thou bless me! Though I perish, let her live!
I have lost all and praised Thee still. Lord, Thou canst not leave me
desolate!”

From the pain of his wound and the exhaustion of soul and body he
fainted once with his lips still moving in prayer. For more than an hour
he lay as one dead. When he revived, he looked at his clock and it was
but an hour till dawn.

Again he fell on his knees, and again the broken accents of his husky
voice could be heard wrestling with God. Now he would beg and plead
like a child, and then he would rise in the unconscious dignity of an
immortal soul in combat with the powers of the infinite and his language
was in the sublime speech of the old Hebrew seers!

Just before the sun rose the signal gun pealed its message of life, ONE!
TWO! in rapid succession.

Tom sprang to his feet with blazing eyes. _One! Two!_ echoed the guns
from another hill, and fainter grew its repeated call from group to
group of the searchers.

“There! Glory to God!” He screamed at the top of his voice, the last
note of his triumphant shout breaking into sobs. “God be praised! I knew
they would find her--she’s not dead, she’s alive! _alive!_ oh! my soul,
lift up thy head!”

The tramp of swift feet was heard at the door and Gaston told him with
husky stammering voice, “She’s alive Tom, but unconscious. I ’ll have
her brought to the house. She was found just where your spring branch
runs into the Flat Rock, not five hundred yards from here in those
woods. Stay where you are. We will bring her in a minute.”

Gaston bounded back to the scene.

Tom paid no attention to his orders to stay at home, but sprang after
him jumping and falling and scrambling up again as he followed. Before
they knew it he was upon the excited tearful group that stood in a
circle around the child’s body.

Gaston, who was standing on the opposite side from Tom’s approach, saw
him and shouted, “My God, men, stop him! Don’t let him see her yet!” But
Tom was too quick for them. He brushed aside, the boy who caught at him,
as though a feather, crying, “Stand back!”

The circle of men fell away from the body and in a moment Tom stood over
it transfixed with horror.

Flora lay on the ground with her clothes torn to shreds and stained with
blood. Her beautiful yellow curls were matted across her forehead in a
dark red lump beside a wound where her skull had been crushed. The stone
lay at her side, the crimson mark of her life showing on its jagged
edges.

With that stone the brute had tried to strike the death blow. She was
lying on the edge of the hill with her head up the incline. It was too
plain, the terrible crime that had been committed.

The poor father sank beside her body with an inarticulate groan as
though some one had crushed his head with an axe. He seemed dazed for
a moment, and looking around he shouted hoarsely, “The doctor boys! The
doctor quick! For God’s sake, quick! She’s not dead yet--we may save
her--help--help!” he sank again to the ground limp and faint from pain
and was soon insensible.

Gaston gathered the child tenderly in his arms and carried her to the
house. The men hastily made a stretcher and carried Tom behind him.




CHAPTER V--A THOUSAND-LEGGED BEAST

WHILE Gaston and the men were carrying Flora and Tom to the house,
another searching party was formed. There were no women and children
among them, only grim-visaged silent men, and a pair of little mild-eyed
sharp-nosed blood-hounds. All the morning men were coming in from the
country and joining this silent army of searchers.

Doctor Graham came, looked long and gravely at Flora and turned a sad
face toward Tom.

The ole soldier grasped his arm before he spoke. “‘Now, doctor
wait--don’t say a word yet. I don’t want to know the truth, if it’s the
worst. Don’t kill me in a minute. Let me live as long as there’s breath
in her body--after that! well, that’s the end--there’s nothin’ after
that!”

The doctor started to speak.

“Wait,” pleaded Tom, “let me tell you something. I’ve been praying all
night. I’ve seen God face to face. She can’t die. He told me so--”

He paused and his grip on the doctor’s arm relaxed as though he were
about to faint, but he rallied.

The kindly old doctor said gently, “Sit down Tom.”

He tried to lead Tom away from the bed, but he held on like a bull dog.

The child breathed heavily and moaned.

Tom’s face brightened. “She’s comin’ to, doctor,--thank God!”

The doctor paid no more attention to him and went on with his work as
best he could.

Tom laid his tear-stained face close to hers, and murmured soothingly
to her as he used to when she was a wee baby in his arms, “There, there,
honey, it will be all right now! The doctor’s here, and he ’ll do all
he can! And what he can’t do, God will. The doctor ’ll save you. God
will save you! He loves you. He loves me. I prayed all night. He heard
me. I saw the shinin’ glory of His face! He’s only tryin’ His poor old
servant.”

The broken artery was found and tied and the bleeding stopped. When the
wound in her head was dressed the doctor turned to Tom, “That wound is
bad, but not necessarily fatal.”

“Praise God!”

“Keep the house quiet and don’t let her see a strange face when she
regains consciousness,” was his parting injunction.

The next morning her breathing was regular, and pulse stronger, but
feverish; and about seven o’clock she came out of her comatose state and
regained consciousness. She spoke but once, and apparently at the sound
of her own voice immediately went into a convulsion, clinching her
little fists, screaming and calling to her father for help!

When Tom first heard that awful cry and saw her terrified eyes and drawn
face, he tried to cover his own eyes and stop his ears. Then he gathered
the little convulsed body into his arms and crooned into her ears,
“There, Pappy’s baby, don’t cry! Pappy’s got you now. Nothin’ can hurt
you. There, there, nothin’ shall come nigh you!”

He covered her face with tears and kisses while he whispered and soothed
her to sleep. When the noon train came up from Independence, General
Worth arrived. Tom had asked Gaston to telegraph for him in his name.

Tom eagerly grasped his hand. “General I knowed you’d come--you’re a man
to tie to. I never knowed you to fail me in your life. You’re one of the
smartest men in the world too. You never got us boys in a hole so deep
you didn’t pull us out”--

“What can I do for you?” interrupted the General.

“Ah, now’s the worst of all, General. I’m in water too deep for me. My
baby, the last one left on earth, the apple of my eye, all that holds my
old achin’ body to this world--she’s--about--to--die! I can’t let her.
General, you must save her for me. I want more doctors. They say there’s
a great doctor at Independence. I want ’em all. Tell ’em it’s a poor
old one-legged soldier who’s shot all to pieces and lost his wife and
all his children--all but this one baby. And I can’t lose her! They
’ll come if you ask ’em--” His voice broke.

“I ’ll do it, Tom. I ’ll have them here on a special in three hours
or maybe sooner,” returned the General pressing his hand and hurrying to
the telegraph office.

The doctors arrived at three o’clock and held a consultation with Doctor
Graham. They decided that the loss of blood had been so great that the
only chance to save her was in the transfusion of blood.

“I ’ll give her the blood, Tom,” said Gaston quietly removing his coat
and baring his arm.

The old soldier looked up through grateful tears.

“Next to the General, you’re the best friend God ever give me, boy!”

The General turned his face away and looked out of the window. The
doctors immediately performed the operation, transfusing blood from
Gaston into the child.

The results did not seem to promise what they had hoped. Her fever rose
steadily. She became conscious again and immediately went into the most
fearful convulsions, breaking the torn artery a second time.

Just as the sun sank behind the blue mountains peaks in the west, her
heart fluttered and she was dead.

Tom sat by the bed for two hours, looking, looking, looking with wide
staring eyes at her white dead face. There was not the trace of a tear.
His mouth was set in a hard cold way and he never moved or spoke.

The Preacher tried to comfort Tom, who stared at him as though he did
not recognise him at first, and then slowly began, “Go away, Preacher,
I don’t want to see or talk to you now. It’s all a swindle and a lie.
There is no God!”

“Tom, Tom!” groaned the Preacher.

“I tell you I mean it,” he continued. “I don’t want any more of God or
His heaven. I don’t want to see God. For if I should see Him, I’d shake
my fist in His face and ask him where His almighty power was when my
poor little baby was screamin’ for help while that damned black beast
was tearin’ her to pieces! Many and many a time I’ve praised God when I
read the Bible there where it said, not a sparrow falleth to the ground
without His knowledge, and the very hairs of our head are numbered.
Well, where was He when my little bird was flutterin’ her broken
bleedin’ wings in the claws of that stinkin’ baboon,--damn him to
everlastin’ hell!--It’s all a swindle I tell you!”

The Preacher was watching him now with silent pity and tenderness.

“What a lie it all is!” Tom repeated. “Scratch my name off the church
roll. I ain’t got many more days here, but I won’t lie. I’m not a
hypocrite. I’m going to meet God cursin’ Him to His face!”

The Preacher slipped his arm around the old soldier’s neck, and smoothed
the tangled hair back from his forehead as he said brokenly, “Tom, I
love you! My whole soul is melted in sympathy and pity for you!”

The stricken man looked up into the face of his friend, saw his tears
and felt the warmth of his love flood his heart, and at last he burst
into tears.

“Oh! Preacher, Preacher! you’re a good friend I know, but I’m done,
I can’t live any more! Every minute, day and night, I ’ll hear them
awful screams--her a callin’ me for help! I can see her lyin’ out there
in the woods all night alone moanin’ and bleedin’!”

His breast heaved and he paused as if in reverie. And then he sprang up,
his face livid and convulsed with volcanic passions, that half strangled
him while he shrieked, “Oh! if I only had him here before me now, and
God Almighty would give me strength with these hands to tear his breast
open and rip his heart out!--I--could--eat--it--like--a--wolf!”

* * * * *

When they reached the cemetery the next day and the body was about to
be lowered into the grave, Tom suddenly spied old Uncle Reuben Worth
leaning on his spade by the edge of the crowd. Uncle Reuben was the
grave digger of the town and the only negro present.

“Wait!” said Tom raising his hand. “Don’t put her in that grave! A
nigger dug it. I can’t stand it.” He turned to a group of old soldier
comrades standing by and said, “Boys, humour an old broken man once
more. You ’ll dig another grave for me, won’t you? It won’t take long.
The folks can go home that don’t want to stay. I ain’t got no home to go
to now but this graveyard.”

His comrades filled up the grave that Uncle Reuben had dug, and opened
a new one on the other side of the graves where slept his other loved
ones.

Gaston took Tom to his home and stayed with him several hours trying
to help him. He seemed to have settled into a stupor from which nothing
could rouse him. When at length the old man fell asleep, Gaston softly
closed the door and returned to his office with a heavy heart.

As he neared the centre of the town, he heard a murmur like the distant
moaning of the wind in the hush that comes before a storm. It grew
louder and louder and became articulate with occasional words that
seemed far away and unreal. What could it be? He had never heard such
a sound before. Now it became clearer and the murmur was the tread of a
thousand feet and the clatter of horses’ hoofs. Not a cry, or a shout,
or a word. Silence and hurrying feet!

Ah! he knew now. It was the searchers returning, a grim swaying
voiceless mob with one black figure amid them. They were swarming into
the court house square under the big oak where an informal trial was to
be held.

He rushed forward to protest against a lynching. He could just catch a
glimpse of the negro’s head swaying back and forth, protesting innocence
in a singing monotone as though he were already half dead.

He pushed his way roughly through the excited crowd, to the centre where
Hose Norman, the leader, stood with one end of a rope in his hand and
the other around the negro’s neck.

The negro turned his head quickly toward the movement made by the crowd
as Gaston pressed forward.

It was Dick!

Dick recognised him at the same moment, leaped toward him and fell at
his feet crying and pleading as he held his feet and legs.

“Save me, Charlie! I nebber done it! I nebber done it! For God’s sake
help me! Keep ’em off! Dey gwine burn me erlive!”

Gaston turned to the crowd. “Men, there’s not one among you that loved
that old soldier and his girl as I did. But you must not do this crime.
If this negro is guilty, we can prove it in that court house there, and
he will pay the penalty with his life. Give him a fair trial”--

“That’s a lawyer talkin’ now!” said a man in the crowd. “We know that
tune. The lawyers has things their own way in a court house.” A murmur
of assent mingled with oaths ran through the crowd.

“Fair trial!” sneered Hose Norman snatching Dick from the ground by the
rope. “Look at the black devil’s clothes splotched all over with her
blood. We found him under a shelvin’ rock where he’d got by wadin’ up
the branch a quarter of a mile to fool the dogs. We found his track in
the sand some places where he missed the water and tracked him clear
from where we found Flora to the cave he was lying in. Fair trial--hell!
We’re just waitin’ for er can o’ oil. You go back and read your law
books--we ’ll tend ter this devil.”

The messenger came with the oil and the crowd moved forward. Hose
shouted, “Down by Tom Camp’s by his spring, down the spring branch to
the Flat Rock where he killed her!”

On the crowd moved, swaying back and forth with Gaston in their midst by
Dick’s side begging for a fair trial for him. A crowd that hurries and
does not shout is a fearful thing. There is something inhuman in its
uncanny silence.

Gaston’s voice sounded strained and discordant. They paid no more
attention to his protest than to the chirp of a cricket.

They reached the spot where the child’s body had been found. They tied
the screaming, praying negro to a live pine and piled around his body a
great heap of dead wood and saturated it with oil. And then they poured
oil on his clothes.

Gaston looked around him begging first one man then another to help him
fight the crowd and rescue him. Not a hand was lifted, or a voice raised
in protest. There was not a negro among them. Not only was no negro in
that crowd, but there was not a cabin in all that county that would
not have given shelter to the brute, though they knew him guilty of the
crime charged against him. This was the one terrible fact that paralysed
Gaston’s efforts.

Hose Norman stepped forward to apply a match and Gaston grasped his arm.

“For God’s sake, Hose, wait a minute!” he begged. “Don’t disgrace our
town, our county, our state, and our claims to humanity by this insane
brutality. A beast wouldn’t do this. You wouldn’t kill a mad dog or a
rattlesnake in such a way. If you will kill him, shoot him or knock him
in the head with a rock,--don’t burn him alive!”

Hose glared at him and quietly remarked, “Are you done now? If you are,
stand out of the way!”

He struck the match and Dick uttered a scream. As Hose leaned forward
with his match Gaston knocked him down, and a dozen stalwart men were
upon him in a moment.

“Knock the fool in the head!” one shouted.

“Pin his arms behind him!” said another.

Some one quickly pinioned his arms with a cord. He stood in helpless
rage and pity, and as he saw the match applied, bowed his head and burst
into tears.

He looked up at the silent crowd standing there like voiceless ghosts
with renewed wonder.

Under the glare of the light and the tears the crowd seemed to melt into
a great crawling swaying creature, half reptile half beast, half dragon
half man, with a thousand legs, and a thousand eyes, and ten thousand
gleaming teeth, and with no ear to hear and no heart to pity!

All they would grant him was the privilege of gathering Dick’s ashes and
charred bones for burial.

*****

The morning following the lynching, the Preacher hurried to Tom Camp’s
to see how he was bearing the strain.

His door was wide open, the bureau drawers pulled out, ransacked, and
some of their contents were lying on the floor.

“Poor old fellow, I’m afraid he’s gone crazy!” exclaimed the Preacher.
He hurried to the cemetery. There he found Tom at the newly made grave.
He had worked through the night and dug the grave open with his bare
hands and pulled the coffin up out of the ground. He had broken his
finger nails all off trying to open it and his fingers were bleeding. At
last he had given up the effort to open the coffin, sat down beside it,
and was arranging her toys he had made for her beside the box. He had
brought a lot of her clothes, a pair of little shoes and stockings, and
a bonnet, and he had placed these out carefully on top of the lid. He
was talking to her.

The Preacher lifted him gently and led him away, a hopeless madman.




CHAPTER VI--THE BLACK PERIL

THE longer Gaston pondered over the tragic events of that lynching the
more sinister and terrible became its meaning, and the deeper he was
plunged in melancholy.

Beyond all doubt, within his own memory, since the negroes under
Legree’s lead had drawn the colour line in politics, the races had been
drifting steadily apart. The gulf was now impassable.

Such crimes as Dick had committed, and for which he had paid such an
awful penalty, were unknown absolutely under slavery, and were unknown
for two years after the war. Their first appearance was under Legree’s
regime. Now scarcely a day passed in the South without the record of
such an atrocity, swiftly followed by a lynching, and lynching thus had
become a habit for all grave crimes.

Since McLeod’s triumph in the state such crimes had increased with
alarming rapidity. The encroachments of negroes upon public offices had
been slow but resistless. Now there were nine hundred and fifty negro
magistrates in the state elected for no reason except the colour of
their skin. Feeling themselves intrenched behind state and Federal
power, the insolence of a class of young negro men was becoming more and
more intolerable. What would happen to these fools when once they roused
that thousand-legged, thousand-eyed beast with its ten thousand teeth
and nails! He had looked into its face, and he shuddered to recall the
hour.

He knew that this power of racial fury of the Anglo-Saxon when aroused
was resistless, and that it would sweep its victims before its wrath
like chaff before a whirlwind.

And then he thought of the day fast coming when culture and wealth would
give the African the courage of conscious strength and he would answer
that soul piercing shriek of his kindred for help, and that other
thousand-legged beast, now crouching in the shadows, would meet
thousand-legged beast around that beacon fire of a Godless revenge!

More and more the impossible position of the Negro in America came home
to his mind. He was fast being overwhelmed with the conviction that
sooner or later we must squarely face the fact that two such races,
counting millions in numbers, can not live together under a Democracy.

He recalled the fact that there were more negroes in the United States
than inhabitants in Mexico, the third republic of the world.

Amalgamation simply meant Africanisation. The big nostrils, fiat nose,
massive jaw, protruding lip and kinky hair will register their animal
marks over the proudest intellect and the rarest beauty of any other
race. The rule that had no exception was that one drop of Negro blood
makes a negro.

What could be the outcome of it? What was his duty as a citizen and
a member of civilised society? Since the scenes through which he
had passed with Tom Camp and that mob the question was insistent and
personal. It clouded his soul and weighed on him like the horrors of a
nightmare.

Again and again the fateful words the Preacher had dinned into his ears
since childhood pressed upon him, “_You can not build in a Democracy a
nation inside a nation of two antagonistic races. The future American
must be an Anglo-Saxon or a Mulatto_.”

His depression and brooding over the fearful events in which he had so
recently taken part had tinged his life and all its hopes with sadness.
He had reflected this in his letters to Sallie Worth without even
mentioning the events. His heart was full of sickening foreboding. How
could one love and be happy in a world haunted by such horrors! He had
begged her to hasten her hour of final decision. He told her of his
sense of loneliness and isolation, and of his inexpressible need of her
love and presence in his daily life.

Her answer had only intensified his moody feelings. She had written
that her love grew stronger every day and his love more and more became
necessary to her life, and yet she could not cloud its future with the
anger of her father and the broken heart of her mother by an elopement.
She feared such a shock would be fatal and all her life would be
embittered by it. They must wait. She was using all her skill to win her
father, but as yet without success. But she determined to win him, and
it would be so.

All this seemed so far away and shadowy to Gaston’s eager restless soul.

The letter had closed by saying she was preparing for another trip to
Boston to visit Helen Lowell and that she should be absent at least a
month. She asked that his next letter be addressed to Boston.

Somehow Boston seemed just then out of the world on another planet,
it was so far away and its people and their life so unreal to his
imagination.

But he sighed and turned resolutely to his work of preparation for an
event in his life which he, meant to make great in the history of the
state. It was the meeting of the Democratic convention, as yet nearly
two years in the future. He held a subordinate position in his party’s
councils, but defeat and ruin had taken the conceit out of the old line
leaders and he knew that his day was drawing near.

“I ’ll take my place among the leaders and masters of men,” he told
himself with quiet determination, “I will compel the General’s respect;
and if I can not win his consent, I will take her without it.”




CHAPTER VII--EQUALITY WITH A RESERVATION

THE lynching at Hambright had stirred the whole nation into unusual
indignant interest. It happened to be the climax of a series of such
crimes committed in the South in rapid succession, and the death of this
negro was reported with more than usual vividness by a young newspaper
man of genius.

A grand mass meeting was called in Cooper Union, New York, at which were
gathered delegates from different cities and states to give emphasis and
unity to the movement and issue an appeal to the national government.

When Sallie Worth reached Boston, she found Helen Lowell at home alone.
The Hon. Everett Lowell had made one of the speeches of his career at
the mass meeting held in Faneuil Hall, and he was in New York where he
had gone to make the principal address in the Cooper Union Convention of
Negro sympathisers.

George Harris had accompanied him, supremely fascinated by the eloquent
and masterful appeal for human brotherhood he had heard him make in
Boston. There was something pathetic in the dog-like worship this young
negro gave to his brilliant patron. In his life in New England he had
been shocked more than once by the brutal prejudices of the people
against his race. His soul had been tried to the last of its powers
of endurance at times. He found to his amazement that, when put to the
test, the masses of the North had even deeper repugnance to the person
of a Negro than the Southerners who grew up with him from the cradle.
He had found himself cut off from every honourable way of earning his
bread, gentleman and scholar though he was, and had looked into the
river as he walked over the bridge to Cambridge one night with a
well-nigh resistless impulse to end it all.

But Lowell had cheered him, laughed his gloomy ideas to scorn, and more
practical still, he had secured him a clerkship in the Custom House
which settled the problem of bread. Others had failed him, but this man
of trained powers had never failed him. He had taught him to lift up his
head and look the world squarely in the face. Lowell was, to his vivid
African imagination, the ideal man made in the image of God, calm in
judgment, free from all superstitions and prejudices, a citizen of the
world of human thought, a prince of that vast ethical aristocracy of the
free thinkers of all ages who knew no racial or conventional barriers
between man and man.

Harris had published a volume of poems which he had dedicated to Lowell,
and his most inspiring verse was simply the outpouring of his soul in
worship of this ideal man.

He was his devoted worshipper for another and more powerful reason. In
his daily intercourse with him in his library during his campaigns he
had frequently met his beautiful daughter, and had fallen deeply and
madly in love with her. This secret passion he had kept hidden in his
sensitive soul. He had worshipped her from afar as though she had been a
white-robed angel. To see her and be in the same house with her was
all he asked. Now and then he had stood beside the piano and turned the
music while she played and sang one of his new pieces, and he would live
on that scene for months, eating his heart out with voiceless yearnings
he dared not express.

In his music he made his greatest success. There was a fiery sweep to
his passion, and a deep oriental rhythm in his cadence that held the
imagination of his hearers in a spell. It is needless to say it was in
this music he breathed his secret love.

At first he had not dared to hope for the day when he could declare this
secret or take his place in the list of her admirers and fight for his
chance. But of late, a great hope had filled his soul and illumined
the world. As he had listened to Lowell’s impassioned appeals for human
brotherhood, his scathing ridicule of pride and prejudice, and
the poetic beauty of the language in which he proclaimed his own
emancipation from all the laws of caste, the fiery eloquence with which
he trampled upon all the barriers man had erected against his fellow
man, his soul was thrilled into ecstasy with the conviction that this
scholar and scientific thinker, at least, was a free man. He was sure
that he had risen above the limitations of provincialisms, racial or
national prejudices.

He had begun to dream of the day he would ask this Godlike man for the
privilege of addressing his daughter.

The great meeting at Cooper Union had brought this dream to a sudden
resolution. Lowell had outdone himself that night. With merciless
invective he had denounced the inhuman barbarism of the South in these
lynchings. The sea of eager faces had answered his appeals as water the
breath of a storm. He felt its mighty reflex influence sweep back on
his soul and lift him to greater heights. He demanded equality of man on
every inch of this earth’s soil.

“I demand this perfect equality,” he cried, “absolutely without
reservation or subterfuge, both in form and essential reality. It is the
life-blood of Democracy. It is the reason of our existence. Without this
we are a living lie, a stench in the nostrils of God and humanity!”

A cheer from a thousand negro throats rent the air as he thus closed.
The crowd surged over the platform and for ten minutes it was impossible
to restore order or continue the programme. Young Harris pressed his
patron’s hand and kissed it while tears of pride and gratitude rained
down his face.

This speech made a national sensation. It was printed in full in all the
partisan papers where it was hoped capital might be made of it for the
next political campaign, and the National Campaign Committee of which
he was a member ordered a million copies of it printed for distribution
among the negroes.

When Lowell and Harris reached Boston, as they parted at the depot
Harris said, “Will you be at home to-morrow, Mr. Lowell?”

“Yes, why?”

“I would like a talk with you in the morning on a matter of grave
importance. May I call at nine o’clock?”

“Certainly. Come right into the library. You ’ll find me there,
George.”

That night as Lowell walked through his brilliantly lighted home, he
felt a sense of glowing pride and strength. With his hands behind him he
paced back and forth in his great library and out through the spacious
hall with firm tread and flushed face. He felt he could look these great
ancestors in the face to-night as they gazed down on him from their
heavy gold frames. They had called him to high ambitions and a strenuous
life when his indolence had pleaded for ease and the dilettante-ism of
a fruitless dreaming. His father had cultivated his artistic tastes,
dreamed and done nothing. But these grim-visaged, eagle-eyed ancestors
had called him to a life of realities, and he had heard their voices.

Yes, to-night his name was on a million lips. The door of the United
States Senate was opening at his touch and mightier possibilities loomed
in the future.

He felt a sense of gratitude for the heritage of that stately old home
and its inspiring memories. Its roots struck down into the soil of a
thousand years, and spread beneath the ocean to that greater old world
life. He felt his heart beat with pride that he was adding new honours
to that family history, and adding to the soul-treasures his daughter’s
children would inherit.

Seated in the library next morning Harris was nervous and embarrassed.
He made two or three attempts to begin the subject but turned aside with
some unimportant remark.

“Well, George, what is the problem that makes you so grave this
morning?” asked Lowell with kindly patronage.

Harris felt that his hour had come, and he must face it. He leaned
forward in his chair and looked steadily down at the rug, while he
clasped both his hands firmly across his lap and spoke with great
rapidity.

“Mr. Lowell, I wish to say to you that you have taught me the greatest
faith of life, faith in my fellow man without which there can be no
faith in God. What I have suffered as a man as I have come in contact
with the brutality with which my race is almost universally treated, God
only can ever know.

“The culture I have received has simply multiplied a thousandfold my
capacity to suffer. But for the inspiration of your manhood I would have
ended my life in the river. In you, I saw a great light. I saw a man
really made in the image of God with mind and soul trained, with head
erect, seeing the weak prejudices of caste, which dare to call the
image of God clean or unclean in passion or pride.

“I lifted up my head and said, one such man redeems a world from infamy.
It’s worth while to live in a world honoured by one such man, for he is
the prophecy of more to come.”

He paused a moment, fidgeted with a piece of paper he had picked up from
the table and seemed at a loss for a word.

It never dawned on Lowell what he was driving at. He supposed, as a
matter of course, he was referring to his great speeches and was going
to ask for some promotion in a governmental department at Washington.

“I’m proud to have been such an inspiration to you, George. You know how
much I think of you. What is on your mind?” he asked at length.

“I have hidden it from every human eye, sir, I am afraid to breath it
aloud alone. I have only tried to sing it in song in an impersonal way.
Your wonderful words of late have emboldened me to speak. It is this--I
am madly, desperately in love with your daughter.”

Lowell sprang to his feet as though a bolt of lightning had suddenly
shot down his backbone. He glared at the negro with wide dilated eyes
and heaving breath as though he had been transformed into a leopard or
tiger and was about to spring at his throat.

Before answering, and with a gesture commanding silence, he walked
rapidly to the library door and closed it.

“And I have come to ask you,” continued Harris ignoring his gesture, “if
I may pay my addresses to her with your consent.”

“Harris, this is crazy nonsense. Such an idea is preposterous. I am
amazed that it should ever have entered your head. Let this be the end
of it here and now, if you have any desire to retain my friendship.”

Lowell said this with a scowl, and an emphasis of indignant rising
inflection. The negro seemed stunned by this swift blow in his very
teeth, that seemed to place him outside the pale of a human being.

“Why is such a hope unreasonable, sir, to a man of your scientific
mind?”

“It is a question of taste,” snapped Lowell.

“Am I not a graduate of the same university with you? Did I not stand as
high, and age for age, am I not your equal in culture?”

“Granted. Nevertheless you are a negro, and I do not desire the infusion
of your blood in my family.”

“But I have more of white than Negro blood, sir.”

“So much the worse. It is the mark of shame.”

“But it is the one drop of Negro blood at which your taste revolts, is
it not?”

“To be frank, it is.”

“Why is it an unpardonable sin in me that my ancestors were born under
tropic skies where skin and hair were tanned and curled to suit the
sun’s fierce rays?”

“All tropic races are not negroes, and your race has characteristics
apart from accidents of climate that make it unique in the annals of
man,” rejoined Lowell.

“And yet you demand perfect equality of man with man, absolutely in form
and substance without reservation or subterfuge!”

“Yes, political equality.”

“Politics is but a secondary phenomenon of society. You said absolute
equality,” protested Harris.

“The question you broach is a question of taste, and the deeper social
instincts of racial purity and self preservation. I care not what your
culture, or your genius, or your position, I do not desire, and will not
permit, a mixture of Negro blood in my family. The idea is nauseating,
and to my daughter it would be repulsive beyond the power of words to
express it!”

“And yet,” pleaded Harris, “you invited me to your home, introduced me
to your daughter, seated me at your table, and used me in your appeal to
your constituents, and now when I dare ask the privilege of seeking her
hand in honourable marriage, you, the scholar, patriot, statesman and
philosopher of Equality and Democracy, slam the door in my face and tell
me that I am a negro! Is this fair or manly?”

“I fail to see its unfairness.”

“It is amazing. You are a master of history and sociology. You know as
clearly as I do that social intercourse is the only possible pathway to
love. And you opened it to me with your own hand. Could I control the
beat of my heart? There are some powers within us that are involuntary.
You could have prevented my meeting your daughter as an equal. But all
the will power of earth could not prevent my loving her, when once I had
seen her, and spoken to her. The sound of the human voice, the touch of
the human hand in social equality are the divine sacraments that open
the mystery of love.”

“Social rights are one thing, political rights another,” interrupted
Lowell.

“I deny it. If you are honest with yourself, you know it is not true.
Politics is but a manifestation of society. Society rests on the family.
The family is the unit of civilisation. The right to love and wed where
one loves is the badge of fellowship in the order of humanity. The man
who is denied this right in any society is not a member of it. He is
outside any manifestation of its essential life. You had as well talk
about the importance of clothes for a dead man, as political rights for
such a pariah. You have classed him with the beasts of the field. As a
human unit he does not exist for you.”

“Harris, it is utterly useless to argue a point like this,” Lowell
interrupted coldly. “This must be the end of our acquaintance. You must
not enter my house again.”

“My God, sir, you can’t kick me out of your home like this when you
brought me to it, and made it an issue of life or death!”

“I tell you again you are crazy. I have brought you here against her
wishes. She left the house with her friend this morning to avoid seeing
you. Your presence has always been repulsive to her, and with me it has
been a political study, not a social pleasure.”

“I beg for only a desperate chance to overcome this feeling. Surely a
man of your profound learning and genius can not sympathise with such
prejudices? Let me try--let her decide the issue.”

“I decline to discuss the question any further.”

“I can’t give up without a struggle!” the negro cried with desperation.

Lowell arose with a gesture of impatience.

“Now you are getting to be simply a nuisance. To be perfectly plain with
you, I haven’t the slightest desire that my family with its proud record
of a thousand years of history and achievement shall end in this stately
old house in a brood of mulatto brats!”

Harris winced and sprang to his feet, trembling with passion. “I see,”
 he sneered, “the soul of Simon Le-gree has at last become the soul of
the nation. The South expresses the same luminous truth with a little
more clumsy brutality. But their way is after all more merciful. The
human body becomes unconscious at the touch of an oil-fed flame in sixty
seconds. Your methods are more refined and more hellish in cruelty. You
have trained my ears to hear, eyes to see, hands to touch and heart to
feel, that you might torture with the denial of every cry of body and
soul and roast me in the flames of impossible desires for time and
eternity!”

“That will do now. There’s the door!” thundered Lowell with a gesture of
stern emphasis. “I happen to know the important fact that a man or woman
of negro ancestry, though a century removed, will suddenly breed back
to a pure negro child, thick lipped, kinky headed, flat nosed, black
skinned. One drop of your blood in my family could push it backward
three thousand years in history. If you were able to win her consent, a
thing unthinkable, I would do what old Virginius did in the Roman Forum,
kill her with my own hand, rather than see her sink in your arms into
the black waters of a Negroid life! Now go!”




CHAPTER VIII--THE NEW SIMON LEGREE

HARRIS immediately resigned his office in the custom house which he
owed to Lowell and began a search for employment.

“I will not be a pensioner of a government of hypocrites and liars,” he
exclaimed as he sealed his letter of resignation.

And then began his weary tramp in search of work. Day after day, week
after week, he got the same answer--an emphatic refusal. The only thing
open to a negro was a position as porter, or bootblack, or waiter in
second-rate hotels and restaurants, or in domestic service as coachman,
butler or footman. He was no more fitted for these places than he was to
live with his head under water.

“I will blow my brains out before I will prostitute my intellect, and
my consciousness of free manhood by such degrading associates and such
menial service!” he declared with sullen fury.

At last he determined to lay aside his pride and education and learn a
manual trade. Not a labour union would allow him to enter its ranks.

He managed to earn a few dollars at odd jobs and went to New York. Here
he was treated with greater brutality than in Boston. At last he got a
position in a big clothing factory. He was so bright in colour that the
manager never suspected that he was a negro, as he was accustomed to
employing swarthy Jews from Poland and Russia.

When Harris entered the factory the employees discovered within an hour
his race, laid down their work, and walked out on a strike until he was
removed.

He again tried to break into a labour union and get the protection of
its constitution and laws. He managed at last to make the acquaintance
of a labour leader who had been a Quaker preacher, and was elated to
discover that his name was Hugh Halliday, and that he was a son of one
of the Hallidays who had assisted in the rescue of his mother and father
from slavery. He told Halliday his history and begged his intercession
with the labour union.

“I ’ll try for you, Harris,” he said, “but it’s a doubtful experiment.
The men fear the Negro as a pestilence.”

“Do the best you can for me. I must have bread. I only ask a man’s
chance,” answered Harris. Halliday proposed his name and backed it up
with a strong personal endorsement, gave a brief sketch of his
culture and accomplishments and asked that he be allowed to learn the
bricklayer’s trade.

When his name came up before the Brick Layers’ Union, and it was
announced that he was a negro, it precipitated a debate of such fury
that it threatened to develop into a riot.

One of the men sprang toward the presiding officer with blazing eyes,
gesticulating wildly until recognised.

“I have this to say,” he shouted. “No negro shall ever enter the door of
this Union except over my dead body. The Negro can under live us. We
can not compete with him, and as a race we can not organise him. Let him
stay in the South. We have no room for him here, and we will kill him if
he tries to take our bread from us!”

“Have you no sympathy for his age-long sufferings in slavery?”
 interrupted Halliday.

“Slavery! of all the delusions the idea that slavery was abolished
in this country in 1865 is the silliest, Slavery was never firmly
established until the chattel form was abandoned for the wage system in
1865. Chattel slavery was too expensive. The wage system is cheaper.
Now they never have to worry about food, or clothes, or houses, or the
children, or the aged and infirm among wage slaves.

“Once the master hunted the slave,--now the slave must hunt the master,
beg for the privilege of serving him and trample others to death trying
to fasten the chains on when a brother slave drops dead in his tracks.

“No, I don’t shed any crocodile tears over the Negro slavery of the
South. It was a mild form of servitude, in which the Negro had plenty
to eat and wear, never suffered from cold, slept soundly and reared his
children in droves with never a thought for the morrow.

“Then mothers and babes were sometimes, though not often, separated by
an executor’s or sheriff’s sale. Now, we know better than to allow babes
to be born. Then, a babe was a valuable asset and received the utmost
care. Now, we have baby farms which we fertilise with their bones. I
know of one old hag in this city who has killed over two thousand babes.

“What chance has your girl or mine to marry and build a home? Not one in
a hundred will ever feel the breath of a babe at her breast.

“No!” he closed in thunder tones. “I ’ll fight the encroachment of the
Negro on our life with every power of body and soul!”

A hundred men leaped to their feet at once, shouting and gesticulating.
The chairman recognised a tall dark man with a Russian face, but who
spoke perfect English.

“I, gentlemen, am an anarchist in principle, and differ slightly in
the process by which I come to the same conclusion as my friend who
has taken his seat. I grieve at the necessity before the workingmen
of returning to slavery. All we can hope now for a century or two
centuries, is socialism. Socialism is simply a system of slavery--that
is, enforced labour in which a Bureaucracy is master. We must enter
again a condition of involuntary servitude for the guarantee by the
State of food and clothes, shelter and children.

“It is no time to weep over slavery. The one thing we demand now is the
nationalisation of industries under the control of State Bureaux which
will enforce labour from every citizen according to his capacity, for
the simple guarantee of what the negro slave received, the satisfaction
of the two elemental passions, hunger and love.”

Again a clamour broke out that drowned the speaker’s voice. A Socialist
and an Anarchist clinched in a fight, and for five minutes pandemonium
reigned, but at the end of it Harris was tying on the sidewalk with a
gash in his head, and Halliday was bending over him.

When Harris had recovered from his wound, Halliday took him on a round
of visits to big mills in a populous manufacturing city across in New
Jersey.

“These mills are all owned by Simon Legree,” he informed Harris, “and
the unions have been crushed out of them by methods of which he is past
master. I don’t know, but it may be possible to get you in there.”

They tried a half dozen mills in vain, and at last they met a foreman
who knew Halliday who consented to hear his plea.

“You are fooling away your time and this man’s time, Halliday,” he told
him in a friendly way. “I’d cut my right arm off sooner than take a
negro in these mills and precipitate a strike.”

“But would a strike occur with no union organisation?”

“Yes, in a minute. You know Simon Legree who owns these mills. If a
disturbance occurred here now the old devil wouldn’t hesitate to close
every mill next day and beggar fifty thousand people.”

“Why would he do such a stupid thing?”

“Just to show the brute power of his fifty millions of dollars over the
human body. The awful power in that brute’s hands, represented in that
money, is something appalling. Before the war he cracked a blacksnake
whip over the backs of a handful of negroes. Now look at him, in his
black silk hat and faultless dress. With his millions he can commit any
and every crime from theft to murder with impunity. His power is greater
than a monarch. He controls fleets of ships, mines and mills, and has
under his employ many thousands of men. Their families and associates
make a vast population. He buys Judges, Juries, Legislatures, and
Governors and with one stroke of his pen to-day can beggar thousands of
people. He can equip an army of hirelings, make peace or war on his own
account, or force the governments to do it for him. He has neither faith
in God, nor fear of the devil. He regards all men as his enemies and all
women his game.

“They say he used to haunt the New Orleans’ slave market, when he was
young and owned his Red River farm, occasionally spending his last
dollar to buy a handsome negro girl who took his fancy.

“Look at him now with his bloated face, beastly jaw, and coarse lips. He
walks the streets with his lecherous eyes twinkling like a snake’s and
saliva trickling from the corners of his mouth practically monarch of
all he surveys. He selects his victims at his own sweet will, and with
his army of hirelings to do his bidding, backed by his millions, he
lives a charmed life in a round of daily crime.

“How many lives he has blasted among the population of the multitude
of souls dependent on him for bread, God only knows. It is said he has
murdered the souls of many innocent girls in these mills--”

“Surely that is an exaggeration,” broke in Halliday.

“On the other hand I believe the picture is far too mild. I tell you no
human mind can conceive the awful brute power over the human body his
millions hold under our present conditions of life.”

There was a tinge of deep personal bitterness in the man’s words
that held Halliday in a spell while he continued, “Under our present
conditions men and women must fight one another like beasts for food and
shelter. The wildest dreams of lust and cruelty under the old system of
Southern slavery would be laughed at by this modern master.”

He paused a moment in painful reverie.

“There lies his big yacht in the harbour now. She is just in from a
cruise in the Orient. She cost half a million dollars, and carries a
crew of fifty men. With them are beautiful girls hired at fancy wages
connected with the stewardess’ department. She ships a new crew every
trip. Not one of those young faces is ever lifted again among their
friends.”

He paused again and a tear coursed down his face.

“I confess I am bitter. I loved one of those girls once when I was
younger. She was a mere child of seventeen.” His voice broke. “Yes, she
came back shattered in health and ruined. I am supporting her now at a
quiet country place. She is dying.

“Think of the farce of it all!” he continued passionately.

“The picture of that brute with a whip in his hand beating a negro
caused the most terrible war in the history of the world. Three millions
of men flew at each other’s throats and for four years fought like
demons. A million men and six billions of dollars worth of property were
destroyed.

“He was a poor harmless fool there beating his own faithful slave to
death. Compare that Legree with the one of to-day, and you compare a
mere stupid man with a prince of hell. But does this fiend excite the
wrath of the righteous? Far from it. His very name is whispered in
admiring awe by millions. He boasts that dozens of proud mothers strip
their daughters to the limit the police law will allow at every social
function he honours with his presence, and offer to sell him their
own flesh and blood for the paltry consideration of a life interest in
one-third of his estate! And he laughs at them all. His name is magic!

“I know of one weak fool, a petty millionaire, whom Legree lured into a
speculative trap and ruined. On his knees in his Fifth Avenue palace the
whining coward kissed Legree’s feet and begged for mercy. He kicked him
and sneered at his misery. At last when he had tortured him to the verge
of madness he offered to spare him on one condition--that he should give
him his daughter as a ransom. And he did it.

“No, the brute power of such a man to-day is beyond the grasp of the
human mind. His chances for debauchery and cruelty are limitless. The
brain of his hirelings is put to the test to invent new crime against
nature to interest his appetites. The only limit to his power of evil is
the capacity of the human mind to think, and his body to act and endure.
When he is exhausted, he can command the knowledge and the skill of ages
and the masters of all Science to restore his strength, while satellites
lick his feet and sing his praises--

“Risk the whim of such a man with the lives of these poor people
dependent on me? No, I’d sooner kill that negro you have brought here
and take my chances of detection.”

Halliday gave up the task, returned to New York, and sought the aid of
the greatest labour leader in America, who had arrived in the city from
the West the day before.

“No, Halliday,” he said emphatically. “Send your negro back down South.
We don’t want any more of them, or to come in contact with them. I have
just come from the West where a desperate strike was in progress in one
of Legree’s mines. Our men were toiling in the depth of the earth in
midnight darkness, never seeing the light of day, for just enough to
keep body and soul together. They tried to wring one little concession
from their absent master, who had never condescended to honour them with
his presence. What did he do? Shut down his mines, and brought up from
the South a herd of negroes who came crowding to the mines to push our
men back into hell. We begged them to go home and let us alone. They
grinned, shuffled and looked at their white driver for the signal to
go to work. I ordered the men to shoot them down like dogs. We made the
Governor issue a proclamation driving them back South and warning their
race that if they attempted to enter the borders of the state he would
meet them with Gatling guns.

“No, send your friend South. The winters up here are too cold for him
and the summers too hot.”

In the meantime Harris walked the streets with a storm of furious
passion raging in his soul. The realisation of the shame and the horror
of his position! He was the son of Eliza Harris who had fled from the
kindliest form of slavery in Kentucky. He had a trained mind, and the
brightest gifts of musical genius. Yet he stood that day at the door
of Simon Legree and begged in vain for the privilege of serving in the
meanest capacity as his slave! What a strange circle of time, those
forty years of the past!

And then the tempter whispered the right word at the right moment, and
his fate was sealed.

“There’s but one thing left. I will do it!” he exclaimed.

He entered the employ of a gambling joint and deliberately began a
life of crime. After a month he won five hundred dollars, and went on
a strange journey, visiting the scenes in Colorado, Kansas, Indiana and
Ohio where negroes had recently been burned alive. He would find the
ash-heap, and place on it a wreath of costly flowers. He lingered
thoughtfully over the ash-piles he found in Kansas made from the flesh
of living negroes. He tried to imagine the figure of John Brown marching
by his side, but instead he felt the grip of Simon Legree’s hand on his
throat, living, militant, omnipotent. His soul had conquered the world.
Yet even Legree had never dared to burn a negro to death in the old days
of slavery.

He found one of these ash-heaps at the foot of the monument in Indiana
to the great Western colleague of Thaddeus Stevens, and with a sigh
placed his wreath on it, and passed on into Ohio.

He went to the spot where his mother had climbed up the banks of the
Ohio River into the promised land of liberty, and followed the track of
the old Underground Railroad for fugitive slaves a few miles. He came
to a village which was once a station of this system. Here strangest of
all, he found one of these ash-heaps in the public square.




CHAPTER IX--THE NEW AMERICA

ANOTHER year of struggle and suffering, hope and fear, Gaston had
passed, and still he was no nearer the dream of realised love. If
anything had changed, the General’s pride had added new force to his
determination that his daughter should not marry the man who had defied
him.

His chief reliance for Gaston’s defeat was on time, and the broadening
of Sallie’s mind by extended travel. He had sent her abroad twice, and
this year he sent her to spend another three months in Europe.

These absences seemed only to intensify her longing for her lover.
On her return the General would burst into a storm of rage at her
persistence. She had ceased to give him any bitter answers, only smiling
quietly and maintaining an ominous silence.

He had a new cause now of dislike for the man of her choice. Gaston had
become a man of acknowledged power in politics and was the leader of a
group of radical young men who demanded the complete reorganisation of
the Democratic party, the shelving of the old timers, among whom he was
numbered, and the announcement of a radical programme upon the Negro
issue.

Radicalism of any sort he had always hated. Now, as advanced by this
young upstart, it was doubly odious. The General had never given much
time to his political duties, but his name was a power, and he gave
regularly to the campaign committee the largest cash contribution they
received.

He tried in a clumsy way to put Gaston off the State Executive
Committee, but failed. He saw Gaston quietly laughing at him. Then he
opened his pocket book and worked up a machine. It was a formidable
power, and Gaston feared its influence in the coming convention.

While this fight was in progress, and Sallie was in Europe, the
destruction of the _Maine_ in Havana harbour stilled the world into
silence with the echo of its sullen roar. There was a moment’s pause,
and the nation lifted its great silk battle flags from the Capitol at
Washington, and called for volunteers to wipe the empire of Spain from
the map of the Western world.

The war lasted but a hundred days, but in those hundred days was packed
the harvest of centuries.

War is always the crisis that flashes the search light into the souls of
men and nations, revealing their unknown strength and weakness, and the
changes that have been silently wrought in the years of peace.

In these hundred days, statesmen who were giants suddenly shrivelled
into pigmies and disappeared from the nation’s life. Young men whose
names were unknown became leaders of the republic and won immortal fame.

We were afraid that our nation still lacked unity. The world said we
were a mob of money-grubbers, and had lost our grasp of principle. The
President called for 125,000 men to die for their flag, and next morning
800,000 were struggling for place in the line.

We feared that religion might threaten the future with its bitter feud
between the Roman Catholic and Protestant in a great crisis. We saw
our Catholic regiments march forth to that war with screaming fife and
throbbing drum and the flag of our country above them, going forth to
fight an army that had been blessed by the Pope of Rome. The flag had
become the common symbol of eternal justice, and the nation the organ
through which all creeds and cults sought for righteousness.

We feared the gulf between the rich and the poor had become impassable,
and we saw the millionaire’s son take his place in the ranks with
the workingman. The first soldier wearing our uniform who fell before
Santiago with a Spanish bullet in his breast, was an only son from a
palatial home in New York, and by his side lay a cowboy from the West
and a plowboy from the South. Once more we showed the world that classes
and clothes are but thin disguises that hide the eternal childhood of
the soul.

Sectionalism and disunity had been the most terrible realities in our
national history. Our fathers had a poet leader whose soul dreamed a
beautiful dream called _E Pluribus Unum._. But it had remained a dream.
New England had threatened secession years before South Carolina in
blind rage led the way. The Union was saved by a sacrifice of blood that
appalled the world. And still millions feared the South might be false
to her plighted honour at Appomattox. The ghost of Secession made and
unmade the men and measures of a generation.

Then came the trumpet call that put the South to the test of fire and
blood. The world waked next morning to find for the first time in
our history the dream of union a living fact. There was no North,
no South,--but from the James to the Rio Grande the children of the
Confederacy rushed with eager flushed faces to defend the flag their
fathers had once fought.

And God reserved in this hour for the South, land of ashes and tombs and
tears, the pain and the glory of the first offering of life on the altar
of the new nation. Our first and only officer who fell dead on the deck
of a warship, with the flag above him, was Worth Bagley, of North
Carolina, the son of a Confederate soldier. The gallant youngster who
stood on the bridge of the _Merrimac_, and between two towering
mountains of flaming cannon, in the darkness of night blew up his ship
and set a new standard of Anglo-Saxon daring, was the son of a
Confederate soldier of North Carolina.

The town of Hambright furnished a whole company of eighty-six men, a
Captain, three Lieutenants, and a Major, who saw service in the war.

When they were drawn up in the court house square under the old oak,
the Preacher stood before them and called the roll from four browned
parchments. They were Campbell county Confederate rosters. Every one
of the eighty-six men was a child of the Confederacy. And the immortal
company F, that was wiped out of existence at the battle of Gettysburg
furnished more than half these children.

“Ah, boys, blood will tell!” cried the Preacher, shaking hands with each
man as they left.

A single round from the guns, and it was over. The yellow flag of Spain,
lit with the sunset splendour of a world empire, faded from the sky of
the West.

A new naval power had arisen to disturb the dreams of statesmen. The
_Oregon_, that fierce leviathan of hammered steel, had made her mark
upon the globe. In a long black trail of smoke and ribbon of foam, she
had circled the earth without a pause for breath. The thunder of her
lips of steel over the shattered hulks of a European navy proclaimed the
advent of a giant democracy that struck terror to the hearts of titled
snobs.

He who dreamed this monster of steel, felt her heart beat, saw her rush
through foaming seas to victory, before the pick of a miner had
struck the ore for her ribs from a mountain side, was a child of the
Confederacy--that Confederacy whose desperate genius had sent then
_Alabama_ spinning round the globe in a whirlwind of fire.

America united at last and invincible, waked to the consciousness of her
resistless power.

And, most marvellous of all, this hundred days of war had re-united the
Anglo-Saxon race. This sudden union of the English speaking people in
friendly alliance disturbed the equilibrium of the world, and confirmed
the Anglo-Saxon in his title to the primacy of racial sway.




CHAPTER X--ANOTHER DECLARATION OF INDEPENDENCE

ALMOST every problem of national life had been illumined and made more
hopeful by the searchlight of war save one--the irrepressible conflict
between the African and the Anglo-Saxon in the development of our
civilisation. The glare of war only made the blackness of this question
the more apparent.

While the well-drilled negro regulars, led by white officers acquitted
themselves with honour at Santiago, the negro volunteers were the source
of riot and disorder wherever they appeared. From the first, it was seen
by thoughtful men that the Negro was an impossibility in the newborn
unity of national life. When the Anglo-Saxon race was united into one
homogeneous mass in the fire of this crisis, the Negro ceased that
moment to be a ward of the nation.

A negro regiment had been in camp at Independence during the war and
was still there awaiting orders to be mustered out. Its presence had
inflamed the passions of both races to the danger point of riot again
and again. The negro who was editing their paper at Independence had
gone to the length of the utmost license in seeking to influence race
antagonism.

When the regiment of which the Hambright company was a member was
mustered out at Independence, Gaston was invited to deliver the address
of welcome home to the soldiers, and a crowd of five thousand people
were present, one-half of whom were negroes.

While Gaston was speaking in the square, a negro trooper passing along
the street refused to give an inch of the sidewalk to a young lady and
her escort, who met him. He ran into the girl, jostling her roughly, and
the young white man knocked him down instantly and beat him to death.
The wildest passions of the negro regiment were roused. McLeod was among
them that day seeking to increase his popularity and influence in the
coming election, and he at once denounced Gaston as the cause of the
assault, and urged the leaders in secret to retaliate by putting a
bullet through his heart.

The white regiment had been mustered out, and their guns in most cases
had been retained by the men. The negro troops were to be mustered out
the next day.

Late in the afternoon Gaston had received information that a plot was on
foot to kill him that night, when a negro mob would batter down his door
on the pretense of searching for the man who had assaulted the trooper.
The Colonel of the regiment just disbanded heard it, and that night his
men bivouacked in the yard of the hotel and slept on their guns.

A little after twelve o’clock, a mob of five hundred negroes attempted
to force their way into the hotel. They met a regiment of bayonets,
broke, and fled in wild confusion.

This event was the last straw that broke the camel’s back. In the
morning paper a blazing notice in display capitals covered the first
page, calling a mass meeting of white citizens at noon in Independence
Hall.

The little city of Independence was one of the oldest in the nation.
It boasted the first declaration of independence from Great Britain
antedating a year the Philadelphia document. The people had never rested
tamely under tyranny nor accepted insult.

The McLeod Negro-Farmer Legislature had remodelled the ancient charter
of the city, and under the new instrument a combination of negroes and
criminal whites had taken possession of every office.

One half of these office holders were incompetent and insolent negroes.
The Chief of Police was an ignoramus in league with criminals, and their
Mayor, a white demagogue elected by pandering to the lowest passions of
a negro constituency.

Burglary and highway robbery were almost daily occurrences. The two
largest stores in the city and four residences had been burned within a
month. Appeal to the police became a farce, and it was necessary to
hire and arm a force of private guards to patrol the city at night.
When arrests were made, the servile authorities promptly released the
criminals. Negro insolence reached a height that made it impossible for
ladies to walk the streets without an armed escort, and white children
were waylaid and beaten on their way to the public schools.

The incendiary organ of the negroes, a newspaper that had been noted for
its virulent spirit of race hatred, had published an editorial defaming
the virtue of the white women of the community.

At eleven o’clock the quaint old hall, built in Revolutionary days
to seat five hundred people, was packed with a crowd of eight hundred
stern-visaged men standing so thick it was impossible to pass through
them and thousands were massed outside around the building.

Gaston, whose ancestors had been leaders in the great Revolution, was
called to the chair. The speech-making was brief, fiery, and to the
point.

Within one hour they unanimously adopted this resolution:

“_Resolved, that we issue a second Declaration of Independence from the
infamy of corrupt and degraded government. The day of Negro domination
over the Anglo-Saxon race shall close, now, once and forever. The
government of North Carolina was established by a race of pioneer white
freemen for white men and it shall remain in the hands of freemen._

“_We demand the overthrow of the criminal and semi-barbarian régime under
which we now live, and to this end serve notice on the present Mayor of
this city, its Chief of Police, and the six negro aldermen and their low
white associates that their resignations are expected by nine o’clock
to-morrow morning. We demand that the negro anarchist who edits a paper
in this city shall close his office, remove its fixtures and leave this
county within twenty-four hours.”_

A committee of twenty-five, with Gaston as its Chairman, was appointed
to enforce these resolutions.

By four o’clock an army of two thousand white men was organised, and
placed under the command of the Rev. Duncan McDonald, pastor of the
First Presbyterian Church of the city, who had been a brave young
officer in the Confederate army. Every minister in the county was
enrolled in this guard and carried a musket on picket duty, or in a
reserve camp that night.

At six o’clock, Gaston summoned thirty-five of the more prominent
negroes of the county including two of the professors in Miss Susan
Walker’s college, to meet the Committee of Twenty-Five and receive
its ultimatum. Stern and hard of face sat the twenty-five chosen
representatives of that world-conquering race of men at one end of the
room, while at the other end sat the thirty-five negroes anxious and
fearful, realising that their day of dominion had ended.

Gaston rose and handed them a copy of the resolutions.

“We give you till seven-thirty to-morrow morning as the leaders of your
race to carry out these demands,” he said gravely.

“But we have no authority, sir,” replied the negro preacher to whom he
handed the paper.

“Your authority is equal to ours--the authority of elemental manhood. If
you can not execute them in peace, we will do it by force.”

“We must decline such responsibility unless”--the negro started to argue
the question.

“The meeting stands adjourned!” quietly announced Gaston, taking up his
hat and leaving the room followed by his Committee.

At seven-thirty next morning no answer had been received. Gaston called
for seventy-five volunteers to execute the decrees.

Within thirty minutes, five hundred men swung into line at eight
o’clock, and marched four abreast to the office of the negro paper. It
was promptly burned to the ground, its editor paid its cash value, and
with a rope around his neck, escorted to the depot and placed on a north
bound train.

As Gaston handed him his ticket for Washington he quietly said to him,
“I have saved your life this morning. If you value it, never put your
foot on the soil of this state again.”

“Thank you, sir. I ’ll not return.”

While this guard, under strict military discipline, was executing this
decree, a mob of a thousand armed negroes concealed themselves in a
hedge-row and fired on them from ambush, killing one man and wounding
six. Gaston formed his men in line, returned the fire with deadly
effect, charged the mob, put them to flight, driving them into the woods
outside the city limits, and placed the town under informal but strict
martial law. By ten o’clock the resignation of every city and county
officer was in his hand, and the Mayor and Chief of Police were at his
feet begging for mercy.

He posted a notice over the county warning every negro and white
associate that no further insolence or criminality would be tolerated.

The county and municipal election was but three days off and there was
but one ticket on the field. When the white men elected were sworn in,
the guards went to the woods and told the terrified and half starving
negroes they could return to their homes, a competent police force was
organised, and the volunteer organisation disbanded. Negro refugees and
their associates once more filled the ear of the national government
with clamour for the return of the army to the South to uphold Negro
power, but for the first time since 1867, it fell on deaf ears. The
Anglo-Saxon race had been reunited. The Negro was no longer the ward
of the Republic. Henceforth, he must stand or fall on his own worth and
pass under the law of the survival of the fittest.

This event made a tremendous impression on the imagination of the
people. It increased the popularity and power of Gaston, its intended
victim, The General was more than ever determined to destroy Gaston’s
power in the convention which was to meet in a few weeks. He had his
candidate for Governor well groomed and he had captured the largest
number of pledged delegates. There were three other candidates, but none
of them apparently were backed by Gaston. The General was puzzled at
his methods, and failed to discover his programme, though he spent money
with liberality and exhausted every resource at his command.

A strange thing had occurred that had upset all calculations. Beginning
at Independence a race fire had broken into resistless fury and was
sweeping along the line of all the counties on the South Carolina border
and over the entire state with incredible rapidity. Everywhere, the
white men were arming themselves and parading the streets and public
roads in cavalry order dressed in scarlet shirts. This Red Shirt
movement was a spontaneous combustion of inflammable racial power that
had been accumulating for a generation.

The Democratic Executive Committee was called together in haste and made
the most frantic efforts to stop it. But there was no head to it. It had
no organisation except a local one, and it spread by a spark flying from
one county to another.

McLeod laughed at the address of the Democratic Committee and swore
Gaston was the organiser of the movement. He determined to nip it in the
bud by putting Gaston under a cloud that would destroy his influence.
He did not dare to attack him for his part in the Revolution at
Independence. He preferred to belittle that affair as a local
disturbance.

But at an election for Congressman to fill a vacancy, the Democratic
candidate had won by a narrow margin in a campaign of great bitterness
under Gaston’s leadership.

Charges of fraud were freely made on both sides. McLeod determined to
utilise these charges, and by producing perjured witnesses before a
packed court, place Gaston in jail without bail until the convention had
met.

He had every advantage in such a conspiracy. The United States judge
whom he intended to utilise was a creature of his own making, a
trickster whose confirmation had been twice defeated in the Senate by
the members of his own party on his shady record. But he had won the
place at last by hook and crook, and McLeod owned him body and soul.

Accordingly Gaston was arrested with a warrant McLeod had obtained
from his judge, arraigned before him and committed without bail. He was
charged with a felony under the election laws, taken to Asheville and
placed in jail.

The audacity of this arrest and the vehemence with which McLeod pressed
his charges created a profound sensation in the state. It was rumoured
that the graver charge of murder lay back of the charge of felony
and would be pressed in due time. A murder had been committed in the
district during the exciting campaign and no clue had ever been found to
its perpetrator. McLeod knew he had no evidence connecting Gaston with
this event, but he knew that he had henchmen who would swear to any
thing he told them and stick to it.




CHAPTER XI--THE HEART OF A WOMAN

A WEEK after Gaston’s imprisonment Sallie Worth arrived in New York
from her last trip abroad. She had cut her trip short and cabled her
father of her return.

She was in an agony of suspense and uncertainty about her lover.
Gaston’s letters had failed to reach her for a month by reason of the
war which had demoralised the mail service. Her own letters had failed
to reach Gaston for a similar reason.

The General hastened to New York to meet his wife and daughter and
persuade Sallie to remain in the North until December. He was hopeful
now that her long absence and Gaston’s absorption in politics, his
bitter opposition to him personally, and the cloud under which he rested
in prison, would be the final forces that would give him the victory in
the long conflict he had waged for the mastery of his daughter’s heart.

Before informing Sallie of the stirring events at Independence and
the part Gaston had taken in them, or allowing her to learn of his
imprisonment, the General sought to find the exact state of her mind.

“I trust, Sallie,” he began, “you are recovering from your infatuation
for this man. You know how dearly I love you. I have never taken a step
in life since I looked into your baby face that wasn’t for you and your
happiness.”

She only looked at him wistfully and her eyes seemed to be dreaming, “I
want you to have some pride. Gaston has attempted to kick me out of the
councils of the party, and become the dictator of the state. His course
is one of violence and radicalism. I regard him as a dangerous man, and
I want you to have nothing to do with him.”

She was gravely silent.

“Do you believe he has been faithfully dreaming of you in your absence?”
 asked the General.

“Yes, I do!”

“Then let me disabuse your mind. It is not the way of strong men. He
is absolutely absorbed in a desperate political struggle in which his
personal ambition’s are first. I have seen him paying the most devoted
attentions to the daughter of our rival down east, whose influence he
wants, and it is rumoured among his friends that he has proposed to
her.”

“Who told you that?” she asked impetuously.

“I had it first from Allan, but I’ve heard it since from others.”

“I do not believe a word of it,” she declared.

“That’s because you’re a woman and hold such silly ideals. I tell
you, he wants you only because he knows you are rich, and he wishes to
brow-beat me. Such a man will try to whip you before you have been
his wife five years. I know that kind of man. Why can’t you trust my
judgment?”

“I had rather trust my heart’s intuitions, Papa, I can not be deceived
in such a question.”

“Well, you are being deceived. He is anything but a languishing lover.
At present he is a political tiger at bay. Unless you hold him to you by
some pledge he has given, he will forget you, and marry another in two
years. I am a man and I know men. I thought I was desperately in love
twice before I met your mother. I got over both attacks without a
scratch, fell in love with her, married and have lived happily ever
since. You have overestimated your own importance to him and your
influence over him.”

A great fear awed her into silence. For the first time in all her
struggle with her father the sense suddenly came into her heart of her
dependence on Gaston’s love for the very desire to live, and for the
first time she realised the possibility of losing him. What if he should
press his great ambitions to successful issue while she stood irresolute
and tortured him with her indecision? If he could win the world’s
applause without her, might he not, when successful, cease to need her?
Her breast heaved with the tumult of uncertainty. What if another woman
saw and loved him, and drew near to him in his hours of soul loneliness
and struggle, and he had learned to see her face with joy! The
conviction came crushing upon her that she had not responded bravely to
this powerful man’s singular devotion into which he had poured without
reserve his deepest passion. Had he weighed her and found her wanting
in some dark hour in her absence? Her heart was in her throat at the
thought!

The General watched her keenly for several moments, and thought at last
he had broken the spell. He believed he could now tell her of the cloud
that hung over Gaston.

“I said, Sallie, that I believed Gaston a dangerous man. I did not
speak lightly. We have had terrible riots in Independence while you
were absent in which Gaston was the leader of an armed revolution which
overturned the city and county government. Two thousand men were under
arms for a week and several were killed and wounded on both sides. The
results were good as a whole, I confess. We have a decent government
and we have security of property and life, but such methods will lead to
civil war.”

Her face grew tense, and she looked at her father with breathless
interest during this recital.

“Was he in danger in those riots?” she slowly asked.

“Yes, and I expect him to be killed at an early day if he continues his
present methods. A mob of five hundred negroes attempted to kill him.
This was one of the causes that led to the Revolution.”

She was on her feet now pale and trembling with excitement.

“Where is he?” she gasped.

“Now, my dear, it’s useless to get excited. The trouble is all over
and a new Mayor and police force are in charge of the city. But he
is resting under a serious cloud at present. He is held in jail at
Asheville on a charge of felony, and a charge of murder is being
pressed.”

“In jail! in jail!” she cried incredulously while her eyes filled with
tears.

“Yes, and Allan believes these ugly charges will be proved in the United
States court, and he will be convicted.”

She did not seem to hear the last sentence.

“In jail!” she repeated, “my lover, to whom I have given my life, and
you, my father, while I was three thousand miles away stood by and did
not lift a hand to help him?”

“Has he not been my bitterest enemy, seeking to insult me!” thundered
the General.

“No, he never insulted you, or spoke one unkind word about you in his
life. Oh! this is shameful! God forgive me that I was not here!” Tears
were streaming down her face.

“You hold me responsible for the crazy young scamp’s career?” cried the
General indignantly.

“Not another word to me!” she exclaimed. “You shall not abuse him in my
presence.”

The General was afraid of her when she used the tone of voice in which
she uttered that sentence. He had heard it but once before, and that was
when she told him she was a free woman twenty-one years old, and he had
broken down. He looked at her now, fearing to speak. At length he said,
“I have engaged a suite of rooms for you here at the Waldorf-Astoria,
my dear, for the winter. I hope you will enjoy the season. Let us change
this painful subject.”

“I do not want the rooms,” she firmly replied, “I am going to Asheville
on the first train.”

The General stormed and raged for an hour, but she made no reply. Her
mother was suffering from the effects of the voyage and took no part in
this storm.

“But your mother will not be able to accompany you. Surely you will not
disgrace me by visiting that man in jail!”

“I will. And when he is released I will return. I will visit Stella
Holt. I shall have ample protection.”

The General was afraid to oppose her in this dangerous mood, and begged
her mother to try to prevent her going. Sallie sent Gaston a telegram
that she was coming.

In obedience to the General’s request her mother called her into her
room that night and they had a long talk and cry in each other’s arms.

Mrs. Worth did not try very hard to persuade her not to go. Down in her
own woman’s soul she knew what she would do under similar conditions,
and she was too honest with her child to try to deceive her. She only
made love to her mother-fashion.

“Oh! Mama,” cried Sallie, burying her face beside her mother as she lay
in bed. “I am at a great soul crisis. I don’t know what to do. I feel
lonely, helpless and heart-sick. You are a woman. Put your dear arms
about me and help me to know the truth and my duty. I want to ask you a
question.”

“What is it, darling? I ’ll answer it, if I can,” she replied stroking
her dark hair tenderly.

“Do you believe these stories about Charlie’s character?”

“Not one word of them!” she promptly answered.

An impulsive kiss and a sob!

“Dear Mother!” she said in a low tearful voice. “And now one more. Papa
has been dinning into my ears his own fickleness in love when young and
the fact that he knows in a long life that love is of little importance
in a man’s existence. He says that I can forget and love again with
equal intensity and bet’ter judgment. Can one treat thus lightly the
soul’s deepest instincts and still find life rich and worthy of effort?”
 Her voice broke and she continued slowly and tremblingly, as she held
one of her mother’s hands tightly, “Now, Mama dear, heart to heart, tell
me as you would talk in your inmost soul to God, do you believe this is
true? You have sounded life’s deep meaning Is this all you know of life?
You love me. Tell me truly?”

“No, darling, a woman can not deny this deep yearning of her soul and
live. I would tear my tongue out sooner than deceive you in such an
hour.”

“Sweet Mother!” she softly murmured again as she kissed her good night.




CHAPTER XII--THE SPLENDOUR OF SHAMELESS LOVE

WHEN Gaston received her telegram in jail he was seated by a window
looking out through the bars on Mt. Pisgah’s distant peak looming in
grandeur amid a sea of smaller blue mountain waves. He read the message
and his soul was filled with a great peace.

“At last! at last! These prison bars, they are good! I could kiss them.
I can never be grateful enough to my enemies!”

He had taken his prison as a joke from the first, sneering at the judge
who had committed him. He knew that every day he stayed in that jail he
was becoming more and more the master of the people. If McLeod had tried
he could not have played into his hands with more fatal certainty. Five
hundred citizens of Independence had wired him their congratulations and
offered him any assistance he desired, from unlimited money for defence
to a delegation to tear the jail down.

He declined any assistance. He knew the storm would break over their
heads soon enough, and they would be delighted to get rid of him. In the
meantime he gave himself up to his thoughts about the woman he loved,
and wondered what change had suddenly come over her to send him that
message. He felt sure the great crisis in their life had come. What
would it be? A sorrowful surrender on her part to her father’s iron will
and a tearful good-bye forever, or the full surrender of her woman’s
soul and body to the dominion of his love?

He was glad the hour had struck that should decide. He trembled at the
import of her answer but he was ready to receive it.

A carriage rolled into the jail enclosure and two young ladies alighted.
One of them stopped in the sitting room for visitors, and he heard the
tramp of a man’s heavy feet on the stairs and after it the tread of a
woman like a soft echo.

The key grated in the lock, the door opened. She looked into his eyes
for just an instant of searching soul revelation, saw the yearning and
the grateful tears, and with a glad cry sprang into his arms.

“You do love me!” she passionately cried.

“Love you? I drew you back across the sea with my love. I knew you would
come. I willed it with a power you couldn’t resist.”

“I never got your letters, and I was hungry to see you,” she whispered.

“And I never got yours, and drew you back by the power of a great heart
purpose.”

“Forgive me, for being away from you when you were in danger.”

“I was glad you were safe. Don’t let this jail alarm you. I ’ll be out
too soon for my good I’m afraid.”

“No other woman has come into your heart to cheer it even with her
friendship since I’ve been away, has she?”

“What a silly question. I’ve never looked at any other woman since the
day I first saw you!”

“Tell me you love me again!”

“I--love--you, unto the uttermost, in life, in death, forever!” he
whispered tenderly.

She sighed and smiled. “The sweetest music the ear of a woman ever
heard!” she half laughed, half cried.

“Now, my dear, you are a full-grown woman in the beauty of a perfect
womanhood. For five years and more, I have waited and suffered. My life
is an open book before you. When are you going to end this suspense? You
must decide now whether your father’s will shall rule your life or my
love?”

“Must I decide to-day?” she asked tremblingly.

“Yes,” he answered. “It is not fair to torture me longer.”

“Then I give up!” she tearfully exclaimed. “God forgive me if I am doing
wrong! I can not resist you longer. I do not desire to,--I _will_ not!
I am all yours, forever--soul, body, will, honour, life--all! I can not
live without you. I love you. I _love you!_--Kiss me!--again--ah, your
lips are sweeter than honey! Am I bold to say it? I do not care, I am
yours. Your arms are the bonds of my slavery and they are sweet!”

Gaston was trembling with the joy that flooded his being with these the
first words of perfect faith and submissive love that had come from her
lips. And he winced at the memory now of those hours of dissipation when
he had doubted her. He tried to confess it and receive her absolution.

“My dear, my joy is too great. It is pain, as well as joy. In the dark
days of our first year of separation I thought once you had forgotten
me. I went away into two weeks of debauchery. Your perfect love crushes
me with its beauty and purity. I must confess this wrong to you. I must
not deceive you in the smallest thing in this hour.”

She placed her hand over his lips, “I will not hear it. I ought to have
been braver and fought for my rights and yours. I will not hear one word
of humiliation from you. I love you. You are my king. I love you, good
or bad. I would love you if you were a murderer on the gallows. I
can not help it. I do not wish to help it. I will follow you to the
bottomless pit or to the throne of God and say it without fear to devil
or angel. Kiss me again!--There, do not cry--let me see your beautiful
brown eyes. I ’ll kiss the tears away. Tears are for my eyes not
yours!”

“Then you will fix the day, dear?” he softly urged.

“How soon would you like it?”

“The sooner the better.”

“Then I fix to-day,” she said impulsively.

“What, here, in this jail?”

“Yes, where you are is heaven to me. I haven’t noticed the jail,” she
said soberly.

He looked at her a moment, strained her to his heart and brushed the
tears of joy from his eyes.

“My beautiful queen! This hour is worth every pain and every throb of
anguish I have suffered. Its memory will encompass life with a great
light.”

“I ’ll go with Stella, see Dr. Durham who is here looking after your
case, have him get the license, and we will be back in half an hour!”

The Preacher greeted her with delight. “Ah! Miss Sallie, if I had known
a little thing like this would have brought you back, I would have hired
a jail for him long ago, and put him in it.”

“Doctor, I want you to get the license and marry us now, will you do
it?”

“Will I? Just watch me. I ’ll have the documents and be ready for the
ceremony in fifteen minutes!” cried the preacher as he hurried to the
office of the Register of Deeds.

Sallie ran up to Mrs. Durham’s room, told her, and asked her to be one
of the witnesses.

“Of course, I will, Sallie. You are the one girl in the world I have
always wanted Charlie to marry.”

Sallie slipped her arm around Mrs. Durham. “You don’t think I am doing
wrong to disobey my parents thus, do you?” she faltered. “I feel just
for a moment, now that I have decided, bruised and homesick,--I want my
mother. Let me feel your arms about my neck just once. You are a woman.
You love me as well as Charlie, tell me, am I doing wrong?”

Mrs. Durham kissed her. “I do love you child. It is a solemn hour for
your soul. You alone can decide such a question. Any intrusion of advice
in such a trial would be a sacrilege. Under ordinary conditions it would
be a dangerous thing for a girl thus to leave her father’s roof and take
this step that will decide forever her destiny. Marriage is something
that swallows up life, the past, the present, the future. We seem to
have never known anything else. I can only say, if I were in your place,
knowing all I would do as you are doing.”

Sallie impulsively kissed her, bit her lips to keep back a tear, and
held her hand.

“I know your father well,” she continued. “He is a man I greatly admire.
But he is unreasonable with any one who dares to cross his will. You
could never get his consent now that his pride is aroused except by
forcing it. When it is over, he will forgive you, and when he knows your
lover as I know him, he will be as proud of his son-in-law as a peacock
of his plumage.”

“Oh, it is so sweet to hear just the advice one wishes in such an hour,”
 cried Sallie. “I shall always love you for these words.”

“Yes, I congratulate you on the end of your long hesitation. I know you
will be happy. Any woman would be happy with the love of such a man, and
he was made for you.”

“Then you don’t believe with Papa,” she said with a smile, “that his
mouth is cruel, and that he will try to whip me in five years, do you?”

Mrs. Durham laughed. “Yes, he will whip you, but they will be love licks
and you will cry for more. Your lover is a rare and brilliant man. He
is strong, rugged, resistless in will, fierce in his passions from the
blood of sunny France in his veins, and masterful in life from the iron
heritage of the hardier races. You have seen these traits. Wait until
you know him as I do in his daily life, and you will find a wealth of
patience and a depth of tenderness that will startle. I envy you.”

“Thank you,” Sallie interrupted. “You don’t know how glad your words are
to my heart. I’ve not seen much of that trait yet. I’ve been half afraid
of him sometimes. Let me kiss you again.”

The keeper of the jail treated Gaston with every consideration and
arranged for the marriage to take place in the little sitting room where
he allowed him to come on parole.

The bride wore a plain travelling dress in which she had come from New
York. She had driven from the depot past Stella Holt’s home, and with
her straight to the jail.

Gaston thought her the fairest vision that ever greeted the eye of
man as he stood by her side; for he had seen that day the soul of a
radiantly beautiful woman in the splendour of shameless love. His own
soul was drunk with the joy of it all and his eyes now devoured her with
their intense light.

Standing there before the Preacher whom he loved as his father, and the
foster mother who had wrapped his little shivering body in the warmth of
a great heart that night the light of life went out in his own mother’s
room, with Stella Holt’s sympathetic face reflecting her friend’s
happiness, the marriage ceremony was performed. He took Sallie’s
trembling hand in his and promised to love, honour and cherish her
as long as life endured. And under his breath he added, “Here and
hereafter--forever.” And then she looked into his smiling face with her
blue eyes full of unspeakable love, and in a voice low and soft as the
note of a flute, gave to him her life.

And the Preacher said, “What God hath joined together, let not man put
asunder!”

She stayed there with him until the gathering twilight.

“Now, I must hurry back to my father and win him. I will not come to you
a beggar. My father shall not disinherit me. I am going to bring you my
fortune, too.”

“Oh! curse that fortune, dear! I’ve feared it was that keeping us apart
so long.”

“Don’t curse it. I like it, and I am going to win it for you. You are a
man of genius. Your success is as sure as if it were already won. I
will not come to you a helpless pauper. I have never been taught to do
anything. I should like to cook for you if I knew how, and I am going to
learn how. I am going to make you the most beautiful home that the heart
of a woman can dream I’d rob the world for treasure for it. I am going
to rob my dear old father. He has sworn to disinherit me if I marry
without his consent. He shall not do it.”

“Then, don’t be long about it. You are my treasure. I can build you a
snug little nest at Hambright.”

“I will only ask four weeks. Now do what I tell you. Sit down and write
Papa a letter telling him I am your affianced bride and ask his consent
to the celebration of our marriage within three weeks. That will produce
an earthquake, and something will surely happen within four weeks.”

He wrote the letter, and she looked over his shoulder. “You see, dear,”
 she said as she kissed him good-bye, “I love Papa so tenderly. You can’t
understand how close the tie is between us, perhaps some day in our own
home of which I’m dreaming you may understand as you can not now,” she
added softly.

“Then for your sake, dearest, I hope you can win him. But I’m afraid of
this plan of yours.”

“Leave it with me for a month, do just as I tell you, and then I ’ll
obey you all the rest of our lives,--if your orders suit me,” she
playfully added.

She returned to Stella Holt’s, and Gaston went back to his jail room and
dreamed that night he was sleeping in the Governor’s Palace.




CHAPTER XIII--A SPEECH THAT MADE HISTORY

WHEN General Worth received Gaston’s brief and startling letter,
the wires were hot between New York and Asheville for hours. His last
message was a peremptory command to his daughter to join him immediately
at Independence.

When Sallie arrived at Oakwood the General was already there, and the
storm broke in all its fury. At every bitter word she only quietly
smiled, until the General was on the verge of collapse. Day after day
he begged, pleaded, raged and finally took to hard swearing as he looked
into her calm happy face.

In the meantime McLeod and his henchman on the judge’s bench had seen
a new light. The excitement over the arrest of Gaston seemed to have
fanned the flames of the Red Shirt movement into a conflagration. He was
alarmed at its meaning. The judge heard a rumour that five thousand Red
Shirts were mobilising at the foot of the Blue Ridge near Hambright,
and that they were going to march across the mountains, into Asheville,
demolish the jail, liberate Gaston, and hang the judge who had committed
him without bail.

The rumour was a fake, but he was not taking any chances. He issued an
order releasing Gaston on his own recognisance, and left for a vacation.

Gaston returned to Hambright showered with congratulatory telegrams from
every quarter of the state.

He received a brief note from Sallie saying the war was on but had
not reached its final climax, as the General was now devoting his best
energies to the Democratic convention which was to meet in ten days,
when he expected to crush any “fool movement of young upstarts!”

Gaston knew of his organisation but he was sure the number of delegates
pledged to the General’s machine was not enough to dominate the body,
even if he could hold them in line.

When this convention met at Raleigh, no body of representative men were
ever more completely at sea as to the platform or policy upon which they
would appeal to the people for the overthrow of an enemy. The coalition
that conquered the state and held it with the grip of steel for four
years was stronger than ever and was absolutely certain of victory. The
enormous patronage of the Federal Government had been in their hands for
four years, and with the state, county and municipal officers, a host of
powerful leaders had been gathered around McLeod’s daring personality.
Apparently he was about to fasten the rule of the Negro and his allies
on the state for a generation.

When Gaston entered the convention hall he received an ovation,
heartfelt and generous, but it did not reach the point of a disturbing
element in the calculations of the three or four prominent candidates
for Governor. General Worth had drilled his cohorts so thoroughly in
opposition to him, that any sort of stampeding was out of the question.

The platform committee was composed of seven leaders, among whom was
Gaston. There was a long wrangle over the document, and at length when
they reported, a sensation was created. For the first time since their
triumph over Simon Legree the committee was divided, and, refusing to
agree, submitted majority and minority reports. The committee stood five
for the majority and two for the minority.

Gaston and a daring young politician from the heart of the Black Belt
signed the minority report. The majority report as submitted, was merely
a rehash of the old platform on which they had been defeated by
McLeod twice, with slight additional impeachment of the incapacity and
corruption of the State Administration. The delegates from the Black
Belt and the counties where the Red Shirts had been holding their
noonday parades received it with silence. General Worth’s machine
cheered it vigourously, and gave a rousing reception to their chosen
champion who made the presentation speech.

When Gaston rose to offer and defend his minority report, a sudden hush
fell on the sea of eager faces. A few men in the convention had heard
him speak. All had heard he was an orator of power, and were anxious
to see him. His leadership in the Revolution of Independence and his
subsequent arrest and imprisonment had made him a famous man.

“Mr. Chairman and Gentlemen of the Convention,” he began with a deliberate
clear voice which spoke of greater reserve power than the words he
uttered conveyed--“I move to substitute for this document of meaningless
platitudes the following resolution on which to make this campaign.”

You could have heard a pin fall, as in ringing tones like the call of
a bugle to battle he read, “Whereas, it is impossible to build a state
inside a state of two antagonistic races, And whereas, the future North
Carolinian must therefore be an Anglo-Saxon or a Mulatto, Resolved, that
the hour has now come in our history to eliminate the Negro from our
life and reëstablish for all time the government of our fathers.”

The delegates from New Hanover, Craven, and Halifax counties, the great
centres of the Black Belt, sprang on their seats with a roar of applause
that shook the building, and pandemonium broke loose. When one great
wave subsided another followed. It was ten minutes before order was
restored while Gaston stood calmly surveying the storm.

Just before him sat General Worth, pale and trembling with excitement.
The audacity of those resolutions had swept him for a moment off his
feet and back into the years of his own daring young manhood. He could
not help admiring this challenge of the modern world to stand at the bar
of elemental manhood and make good its right to existence. He was about
to summon his messengers and rally his lieutenants when Gaston began to
speak, and his first words chained his attention.

While the tumult raised by his resolutions was in progress he lifted his
eye toward the gallery and there just above him where it curved toward
the platform sat his beautiful secret bride. His heart leaped. Her face
was aflame with emotion, her eyes flashing with love and pride. She
slyly touched with her lips the tip of her finger and blew a kiss across
the intervening space. He smiled into her soul a look of gratitude, and
with every nerve strung to its highest tension resumed his place by the
speaker’s stand. When the tumult died away he began a speech that fixed
the history of a state for a thousand years.

His resolutions had wrought the crowd to the highest pitch of
excitement, and his words, clear, penetrating, and deliberate thrilled
his hearers with electrical power.

“Gentlemen,” he said, and the slightest whisper was hushed. “The history
of man is a series of great pulse beats, whose flood overwhelms his
future and fixes its life. Like the dammed torrent on a mountain side,
it breaks the conservatism that holds it stagnant for generations and
floods the world with its sweep. Theories, creeds, and institutions
hallowed by age, are cast as rubbish on the scarred hills that mark its
course. The old world is buried and a new one appears.

“The Anglo-Saxon is entering the new century with the imperial crown of
the ages on his brow and the sceptre of the infinite in his hands.

“The Old South fought against the stars in their courses--the resistless
tide of the rising consciousness of Nationality and World-Mission. The
young South greets the new era and glories in its manhood. He joins his
voice in the cheers of triumph which are ushering in this all-conquering
Saxon. Our old men dreamed of local supremacy. We dream of the conquest
of the globe. Threads of steel have knit state to state. Steam and
electricity have silently transformed the face of the earth, annihilated
time and space, and swept the ocean barriers from the path of man. The
black steam shuttles of commerce have woven continent to continent.

“We believe that God has raised up our race, as he ordained Israel of
old, in this world-crisis to establish and maintain for weaker races, as
a trust for civilisation, the principles of civil and religious Liberty
and the forms of Constitutional Government.

“In this hour of crisis, our flag has been raised over ten millions of
semi-barbaric black men in the foulest slave pen of the Orient. Shall
we repeat the farce of ‘67, reverse the order of nature, and make these
black people our rulers? If not, why should the African here, who is not
their equal, be allowed to imperil our life?”

A whirlwind of applause shook the building.

“A crisis approaches in the history of the human race. The world is
stirred by its consciousness today. The nation must gird up her loins
and show her right to live,--to master the future or be mastered in the
struggle. New questions press upon us for solution.

“Shall this grand old commonwealth lag behind and sink into the filth
and degradation of a Negroid corruption in this solemn hour of the
world?”

“No! No!” screamed a thousand voices.

“What is our condition to-day in the dawn of the twentieth century? If
we attempt to move forward we are literally chained to the body of a
festering Black Death!

“Fifty of our great counties are again under the heel of the Negro, and
the state is in his clutches. Our city governments are debauched by his
vote. His insolence threatens our womanhood, and our children are beaten
by negro toughs on the way to school while we pay his taxes. Shall we
longer tolerate negro inspectors of white schools, and negroes in charge
of white institutions? Shall we longer tolerate the arrest of white
women by negro officers and their trial before negro magistrates?

“Let the manhood of the Aryan race with its four thousand years of
authentic history answer that question!”

With blazing eyes, and voice that rang with the deep peal of defiant
power, Gaston hurled that sentence like a thunder bolt into the souls
of his two thousand hearers. The surging host sprang to their feet and
shouted back an answer that made the earth tremble!

Lifting his hand for silence he continued, “It is no longer a question
of bad government. It is a question of impossible government. We lag
behind the age dragging the decaying corpse to which we are chained.

“Who shall deliver us from the body of this death?

“Hear me, men of my race, Norman and Celt, Angle and Saxon, Dane and
Frank, Huguenot and German martyr blood!

“The hour has struck when we must rise in our might, break the chains
that bind us to this corruption, strike down the Negro as a ruling
power, and restore to our children their birthright, which we received,
a priceless legacy, from our fathers.

“I believe in God’s call to our race to do His work in history. What
other races failed to do, you wrought in this continental wilderness,
fighting pestilence, hunger, cold, wild beasts, and savage hordes, until
out of it all has grown the mightiest nation of the earth.

“Is the Negro worthy to rule over you?

“Ask history. The African has held one fourth of this globe for 3000
years. He has never taken one step in progress or rescued one jungle
from the ape and the adder, except as the slave of a superior race.

“In Hayti and San Domingo he rose in servile insurrection and butchered
fifty thousand white men, women and children a hundred years ago. He
has ruled these beautiful islands since. Did he make progress with the
example of Aryan civilisation before him? No. But yesterday we received
reports of the discovery of cannibalism in Hayti.

“He has had one hundred years of trial in the Northern states of this
Union with every facility of culture and progress, and he has not
produced one man who has added a feather’s weight to the progress of
humanity. In an hour of madness the dominion of the ten great states
of the South was given him without a struggle. A saturnalia of infamy
followed.

“Shall we return to this? You must answer. The corruption of his
presence in our body politic is beyond the power of reckoning. We drove
the Carpet-bagger from our midst, but the Scalawag, our native product,
is always with us to fatten on this corruption and breed death to
society. The Carpet-bagger was a wolf, the Scalawag is a hyena. The one
was a highwayman, the other a sneak.

“So long as the Negro is a factor in our political life, will violence
and corruption stain our history. We can not afford longer to play with
violence. We must remove the cause.

“Suffrage in America has touched the lowest tide-mud of degradation. If
our cities and our Southern civilisation are to be preserved, there must
be a return to the sanity of the founders of this Republic.

“A government of the wealth, virtue and intelligence of the community,
by the debased and the criminal, is a relapse to elemental barbarism to
which no race of freemen can submit.

“Shall the future North Carolinian be an Anglo-Saxon or a Mulatto? That
is the question before you.

“Nations are made by men, not by paper constitutions and paper ballots.
We are not free because we have a Constitution. We have a Constitution
because our pioneer fathers who cleared the wilderness and dared the
might of kings, were freemen. It was in their blood, the tutelage of
generation on generation beyond the seas, the evolution of centuries of
struggle and sacrifice.

“If you can make men out of paper, then it is possible with a scratch of
a pen in the hand of a madman to transform by its magic a million slaves
into a million kings.

“We grant the Negro the right to life, liberty and the pursuit of
happiness if he can be happy without exercising kingship over the
Anglo-Saxon race, or dragging us down to his level. But if he can not
find happiness except in lording it over a superior race, let him look
for another world in which to rule. There is not room for both of us on
this continent!”

Again and again Gaston raised his hand to still the mad tumult of
applause his words evoked.

“And we will fight it out on this line, if it takes a hundred years, two
hundred, five hundred, or a thousand. It took Spain eight hundred years
to expel the Moors. When the time comes the Anglo-Saxon can do in one
century what the Spaniard did in eight.

“We have been congratulated on our self-restraint under the awful
provocation of the past four years. There is a limit beyond which we
dare not go, for at this point, self-restraint becomes pusillanimous and
means the loss of manhood.”

He then reviewed with thrilling power the history of the state and the
proud part played in the development of the Republic. He showed how
this border wilderness of North Carolina became the cradle of American
Democracy and the typical commonwealth of freemen.

He played with the heart-strings of his hearers in this close personal
history as a great master touches the strings of a harp. His voice
was now low and quivering with the music of passion, and then soft
and caressing. He would swing them from laughter to tears in a single
sentence, and in the next, the lightning flash of a fierce invective
drove into their hearts its keen blade so suddenly the vast crowd
started as one man and winced at its power.

Through it all he was conscious of two blue eyes swimming in tears
looking down on him from the gallery.

The crowd now had grown so entranced, and the torrent of his speech so
rapid they forgot to cheer and feared to cheer lest they should lose
a word of the next sentence. They hung breathless on every flash of
feeling from his face or eloquent gesture.

“I am not talking of a vague theory of constructive dominion,” he
continued, “when I refer to the Negro supremacy under which our
civilisation is being degraded. I use words in their plain meaning.
Negro supremacy means the rule of a party in which negroes predominate
and that means a Negro oligarchy.

“I call your attention to one typical county of over forty thus
degraded, the county of Craven, whose quaint old city was once
the Capital of this commonwealth. What are the facts? The negro
office-holders of Craven county include a Congressman, a member of the
Legislature, a Register of Deeds, the City Attorney, the Coroner, two
Deputy Sheriffs, two County Commissioners, a Member of the School Board,
three Road Overseers, four Constables, twenty-seven Magistrates, three
City Aldermen and four Policemen. There are sixty-two negro officials in
this county of 12,000 inhabitants, and their member of the Legislature
is a convicted felon. The white people represent ninety-five per cent
of the wealth and intelligence of the community, and pay ninety-five per
cent of its taxes and are voiceless in its government.

“Would a county in Massachusetts submit to such infamy? No, ten thousand
times, no! There is not a county in the North from Maine to California
that would submit to it twenty-four hours. Will the children of
Lexington, Concord and Bunker Hill demand such submission from the
children of Washington and Jefferson? No. The passions that obscured
reason have subsided. The Anglo-Saxon race is united and has entered
upon its world mission.

“We will take from an unprofitable servant the ballot he has abused. To
him that hath shall be given, and from him that hath not shall be taken
away even that which he hath. It is the law of nature. It is the law of
God.

“Yes, I confess it,” he continued, “I am in a sense narrow and
provincial. I love mine own people. Their past is mine, their present
mine, their future is a divine trust. I hate the dish water of modern
world-citizenship. A shallow cosmopolitanism is the mask of death for
the individual. It is the froth of civilisation, as crime is its dregs.
Race, and race pride, are the ordinances of life. The true citizen of
the world loves his country. His country is a part of God’s world.

“So I confess I love my people. I love the South,--the stolid silent
South, that for a generation has sneered at paper-made policies, and
scorned public opinion. The South, old-fashioned, mediaeval, provincial,
worshipping the dead, and raising men rather than making money, family
loving, home building, tradition ridden. The South, cruel and cunning
when fighting a treacherous foe, with brief volcanic bursts of wrath
and vengeance. The South, eloquent, bombastic, romantic, chivalrous,
lustful, proud, kind and hospitable. The South with her beautiful women
and brave men. The South, generous and reckless, never knowing her own
interest, but living her own life in her own way!--Yes, I love her! In
my soul are all her sins and virtues. And with it all she is worthy to
live.

“The historian tells us that all things pass in time. Wolves whelp
and stable in the palaces of dead kings and forgotten civilisations.
Memphis, Thebes and Babylon are but names to-day. So New Orleans and
New York may perish. African antiquarians may explore their ruins
and speculate upon their life; but we may safely fix upon a thousand
centuries of intervening time. On your shoulders now rests the burden of
civilisation. We must face its responsibilities. For my part, I believe
in your future.

“The courage of the Celt, the nobility of the Norman, the vigour of the
Viking, the energy of the Angle, the tenacity of the Saxon, the daring
of the Dane, the gallantry of the Gaul, the freedom of the Frank, the
earth-hunger of the Roman and the stoicism of the Spartan are all yours
by the lineal heritage of blood, from sire and dame through hundreds of
generations and through centuries of culture.

“Will you halt now and surrender to a mob of ragged negroes led by white
cowards who at the first clash of conflict will hide in sewers?

“I ask you, my people, freemen, North Carolinians, to rise to-day and
make good your right to live! The time for platitudes is past. Let us as
men face the world and say what we mean.

“This is a white man’s government, conceived by white men, and
maintained by white men through every year of its history,--and by the
God of our Fathers it shall be ruled by white men until the Arch-angel
shall call the end of time!

“If this be treason, let them that hear it make the most of it.

“From the eighth day of November we will not submit to Negro dominion
another day, another hour, another moment! Back of every ballot is a
bayonet, and the red blood of the man who holds it. Let cowards
hear, and remember this! Man has never yet voted away his right to a
revolution.

“Citizen kings, I call you to the consciousness of your kingship!”

Gaston closed and turned toward his seat, while the crowd hung
breathless waiting for his next word. When they realised that he had
finished, a rumble like the crash in midheaven of two storms rolled over
the surging sea of men, broke against the girders of the roof like the
thunder of the Hatteras surf lashed by a hurricane. Two thousand men
went mad. With one common impulse they sprang to their feet, screaming,
shouting, cheering, shaking each other’s hands, crying and laughing.
With the sullen roar of crashing thunder another whirlwind of cheers
swept the crowd, shook the earth, and pierced the sky with its
challenge. Wave after wave of applause swept the building and flung
their rumbling echoes among the stars. These patient kindly people, slow
to anger, now terrible in wrath, were trembling with the pent-up passion
and fury of years.

What power could resist their wrath!

Through it all Gaston sat silent behind the group of the majority of the
platform committee, with eyes devouring a beautiful face bending toward
him from the gallery. She was softly weeping with love and pride too
deep for words.

While the tumult was still raging, before he was conscious of his
presence, General Worth’s stalwart figure was bending over him, and
grasping his hand.

“My boy, I give it up. You have beaten me. I’m proud of you. I forgive
everything for that speech. You can have my girl. The date you’ve fixed
for the marriage suits me. Let us forget the past.”

Gaston pressed his hand muttering brokenly his thanks, and his soul sank
within him at the thought of this proud old iron-willed warrior’s anger
if he discovered their secret marriage.

The General turned toward the side of the platform; for he had seen
the flash of Sallie’s dress on the stairs of the balcony leading to the
stage. He knew her keen eye had seen his surrender and his heart was
hungry for the kiss of reconciliation that would restore their old
perfect love.

He met her at the foot of the stairs and she threw her arms impulsively
around his neck.

“Oh! Papa, dear! I am the happiest girl in the world. The two men of all
men--the only two I love--are mine forever!”

While the applause was still echoing and reëchoing over the sea of
surging men, and thousands of excited people were crowding the windows
from the outside and blocking the streets in every direction clamouring
for admittance, a tall man with grey beard and stentorian voice, sprang
on the platform. It was General Worth’s candidate for Governor. He had
not consulted the General but he had an important motion to make. The
crowd was stilled at last and his deep voice rang through the building,
“Gentlemen, I move that the minority report offered by Charles
Gaston”--again a thunder peal of applause--“be adopted as the platform
by acclamation!”

A storm of “ayes” burst from the throats of the delegates in a single
breath like the crash of an explosion of dynamite.

“And now that our eyes have seen the glory of the Lord, as we heard
His messenger anointed to lead His people, I move that this convention
nominate by acclamation for Governor--_Charles Gaston!_”

Again two thousand men were on their feet shouting, cheering, shaking
hands, hugging one another and weeping and yelling like maniacs.

A speech had been made that changed the current of history, and fixed
the status of life for millions of people.




CHAPTER XIV--THE RED SHIRTS

AS soon as Gaston could leave the throngs of friends who were
congratulating him on his remarkable speech and his certainty of
election, he hastened to find Sallie.

“My lover, my king!” she cried impulsively as he clasped her in his
arms.

“Your eyes kindled the fire in my soul and gave me the power to mould
that crowd to my will!” he softly told her.

“It is sweet to hear you say that!”

“‘Now, my love, we are in an awful situation. What are we to do with
the General storming around preparing for a grand wedding? What if
that jailer gives out the news? McLeod can get it out of him if he ever
suspects anything.”

“Don’t worry, dear. I ’ll manage everything. We’ve fixed the wedding
on the Inauguration day--so you can’t be defeated. We will be busy day
and night getting ready my trousseau, and issuing our invitations. Papa
will never dream that one ceremony has been performed already. He need
never know it until we are ready to tell him.”

“If he discovers it, he will swear I have tried to humiliate him, and he
will never forgive it. Telegraph me if anything happens, and I will come
immediately. I can’t see you for weeks in the campaign, but I will write
to you every day.”

“His Excellency, the Governor of North Carolina!” she softly exclaimed
with a dreamy look into his face. “My lover!”

“Don’t make me vain. I may be the Governor, but I shall always be the
slave of a beautiful woman who came one day to a jail and made it a
palace with the glory of her love!”

“I’m glad I didn’t wait for your success.”

*****

The campaign which followed was the most remarkable ever conducted in
the history of an American commonwealth. In the dawn of the twentieth
century, a resistless movement was inaugurated to destroy the party
in control of a state, and affiliated with the most powerful National
Administration since Andrew Jackson’s, on the open declaration of their
intention to nullify the Fourteenth and Fifteenth Amendments to the
Constitution of the Republic.

There was no violence except the calm demonstration in open daylight of
omnipotent racial power, and the defiance of any foe to lift a hand in
protest.

When Gaston spoke at Independence, five thousand white men dressed in
scarlet shirts rode silently through the streets in solemn parade, and
six thousand negroes watched them with fear. There was no cheering or
demonstration of any kind. The silence of the procession gave it the
import of a religious rite. A thousand picked men were in line from
Hambright and Campbell county and they formed the guard of honour for
their candidate for Governor.

Like scenes were enacted everywhere. Again the Anglo-Saxon race was
fused into a solid mass. The result was a foregone conclusion.




CHAPTER XV--THE HIGHER LAW

McLEOD knew from the day of that outburst which followed Gaston’s
speech in the Democratic convention that no power on earth could save
his ticket. To the world he put on a bold face and made his fight to the
last ditch, predicting victory.

His secret anger against the Preacher and Gaston, his pet, knew no
bounds. Chagrined at his repulse by Mrs. Durham and the attitude of
contempt she had maintained toward him, his tongue began to wag her name
in slander to the crowd of young satellites loafing around his office in
Hambright.

“Yes, boys,” he said, “the Preacher is a great man, but his wife is
greater. She’s the handsomest woman in the state in spite of a grey
thread or two in her rich chestnut hair. She has the most beautiful
mouth that ever tempted the soul of a man--and boys, my lips know what
it means to touch it.”

And when they stared with open eyes at this statement, McLeod shook
his head, laughed and whispered, “Say nothing about it--but facts are
facts!”

McLeod chuckled over the certainty of the shame and suffering that would
wring the Preacher’s heart when dirty gossips of a village had magnified
these words into a complete drama of scandal. For all preachers McLeod
had profound contempt, and he felt secure now from personal harm.

The day the Preacher first heard of these rumours was the occasion of
Gaston’s campaign address under the old oak in the square. He had looked
forward to this day with boyish pride mingled with a great fatherly
love. It would be his triumph. He had stirred this boy’s imagination and
moulded his character in the pliant hours of his childhood. He had told
himself that day he spent with him in the woods fishing, that he had
kindled a fire in his soul that would not go out till it blazed on the
altar of a redeemed country. And he was living to see that day.

The streets and square were thronged with such a multitude as the
village had never seen since it was built. But the Preacher was not
among them at the hour the speaking began.

A simple old friend from the country asked him about these rumours.
He turned pale as death, made no answer, and walked rapidly toward his
study in the church where his library was now arranged. He was dazed
with horror. It was the first he had heard of it. One thing in his
estimate of life had always been as securely fixed and sheltered in his
thought as his faith in God, and that was his love for his wife, and his
perfect faith in her honour.

He closed his door and locked it and sat down trying to think.

Had he not grown careless in the certainty of his wife’s devotion, and
his own quiet but intense love? Had he not forgotten the yearning of a
woman’s heart for the eternal repetition of love’s language of sign and
word?

The tears were in his eyes now, and he felt that his heart would beat to
death and break within him!

He saw that his enemy had struck at his weakest spot, and struck to
kill.

He lifted his face toward the walls in a vague unseeing look and his
eyes rested on a pair of crossed swords over a bookcase. They had been
handed down to him from a long line of fighting ancestors. He arose,
took them down mechanically, and drew one from its scabbard. How snugly
its rough hilt fitted his nervous hand grip! He felt a curious throbbing
in this hilt like a pulse, it was alive, and its spirit stirred deep
waters in his soul that had never been ruffled before.

He recalled vaguely in memory things he knew had never happened to him
and yet were part of his inmost life.

“Damn him!” he involuntarily hissed as he gripped the sword hilt with
the instinctive power of the fighting animal that sleeps beneath the
skin of all our culture and religion.

And then his eyes rested on a quaint little daguerreotype picture of his
wife in her bridal dress, her sweet girlish face full of innocent pride
and warm with his love. By its side he saw the portrait of their dead
boy. How he recalled now every hour of that wonderful period preceding
his birth--the unspeakable pride and tenderness with which he watched
over his young wife! He recalled the morning of his birth, and the heart
rending, piteous cries of young motherhood that tore his heart until
the nails of his own fingers cut the flesh and drew the blood. How the
minutes seemed long hours, and how at last he bent over her, softly
kissed the drawn white lips, and gazed with tearful wonder and awe on
the little red bundle resting on her breast! He recalled the tremor of
weariness in her voice when she drew his head down close and whispered,
“I didn’t mind the pain, John, though I couldn’t help the cries. He’s
yours and mine--I am as proud as a queen. Now our souls are one in
him--I am tired--I must sleep.”

Every movement of his past life seemed to stand out in this crisis with
fiery clearness. He seemed to live in an instant whole years in every
detail of that closeness of personal life that makes marriage a part of
every stroke of the heart.

At last he set his lips firmly and said, “Yes, damn him, I will kill him
as I would a snake!” He sat down and wrote his resignation as pastor
of the church, left it on his desk, and strode hurriedly from the study
leaving his door open. He purchased a revolver and a box of cartridges
and walked straight to McLeod’s office.

The speaking was over, and McLeod was alone writing letters. He looked
up with scant politeness as the Preacher entered and motioned him to a
seat.

Instead of seating himself, he closed the door, and standing erect in
front of it, said, “Allan McLeod, you are the author of an infamous
slander reflecting on the honour of my wife!”

“Indeed!” McLeod sneered, wheeling in his chair.

“I always knew that you were a moral leper”--

“Of course, Doctor, of course, but don’t get excited,” laughed McLeod
enjoying the marks of anguish on his face.

“But that your lecherous body should dream of invading the sanctity of
my home, and your tongue attempt to smirch its honour, was beyond my
wildest dream of your effrontery. How dare you?”--

“Dare? Dare, Preacher?” interrupted McLeod still sneering. “Why, by ‘The
Higher Law,’ of course. You have been teaching all your life that there
are higher laws than paper-made statutes. You have trained this county
in crime under this beautiful ideal. Surely I may follow the teachings
of a master in Israel?”

“What do you mean, you red-headed devil?”

“Softly, Preacher,” smiled McLeod. “Simply this. You expound ‘The Higher
Law,’ for political consumption. I apply it to all life.

“There are but two real laws of man’s nature, hunger and love--all
others change with time and progress. These are the higher laws, in fact
they are the highest laws. The stupid conventions that superstition has
built around them may hold back the weak, but the powerful have always
defied them. Your brilliant exposition of the higher law in politics
first set my mind to work, and led me to a complete emancipation from
the slavery of conventionalism in which fools have held society for
centuries. There are conventional laws and superstitions about the
little ceremony called marriage cherished by the weak-minded. There is a
higher law of nature. The brave live this life of daring freedom, while
cowards cling to forms. Do I make myself clear?”

“Perfectly so, you mottled leper. You think that because I am a
preacher, I am a poltroon, and that you can play with me without danger
to your skin. Well, I was a man before I was a preacher. There are some
things deeper than the forms of religion, if you wish to push the higher
law to its last application. You have found that quick in my soul, mine
enemy! I have resigned my church--to kill you. There is not room for you
and me on this earth”--

[Illustration: 0484]

McLeod sprang to his feet, his soul chilled by the tone in which the
threat was uttered. He started to call for help, and looked down the
gleaming barrel of a revolver.

“Move now or open your mouth, and I kill you instantly. Sit down. I give
you five minutes to write your last message to this world.”

McLeod sank into his seat trembling like a leaf, with the perspiration
standing out on his forehead in cold beads. Now and then he glanced
furtively at the stem face of blind fury towering over his crouching
form.

Unable to endure the terrible strain, he sank to the floor whining,
slobbering, begging in abject cowardice for his life. He crawled toward
the Preacher, reached out his hand and touched his foot.

“My God, Doctor, you are mad. You will not commit murder. You are a
minister of Jesus Christ. Have mercy. I am at your feet. Your wife is as
pure as an angel. I only said what I did to torture you”--

“Get up you snake!” hissed the Preacher, stamping his body with all his
might until McLeod screamed with pain and scrambled to his feet cowering
and whining like a cur.

“Finish your letter. You will never leave this room alive.”

A long pitiful sob broke the stillness, and McLeod was looking into the
Preacher’s face in vain for a ray of hope.

Suddenly Gaston burst into the room trembling with excitement. “My God,
Doctor, what does this mean?” he cried seizing the revolver.

McLeod sprang toward Gaston, groaning and crawling toward his feet.
“Save me Gaston,--the Doctor’s gone mad--he is about to kill me!”

“Charlie, I must!” pleaded the Preacher.

“No, no, this is madness. I thank God I am in time. I missed you at the
speaking, and hearing a rumour of this slander I hurried to find you.
I saw your study open and read your letter. I knew I’d find you here. I
’ll manage McLeod.”

The Preacher sat down crying. McLeod had crawled back to his desk and
was mopping his face. Gaston walked over to him and said with slow
trembling emphasis, “I give you twelve hours to close this office, wind
up your business, and leave. In the meantime you will write a denial of
this slander satisfactory to me for publication. If you ever open your
mouth again about my foster-mother or put your foot in this county, I
will kill you. I expect your letter ready in two hours.”

Gaston took the Preacher by the arm and led him down the stairs and back
to his study. In the reaction, there was a pitiable breakdown.

“Oh! Charlie, you’ve saved me from an unspeakable horror. Yes, I was
mad. I was proud and wilful. I thought I knew myself. To-day, I have
looked into the bottom of hell. I have seen the depths of my own heart.
Yes, I have in me the germs of all sin and crime. I am the brother of
every thief, of every murderer, of every scarlet woman of the streets,
that ever stood in the stocks, or climbed the steps of a gallows”--

“Hush, I will not listen to such talk. You are a man, that’s all,”
 interrupted Gaston.

“But God’s mercy is great,” he went on. “I have tried to live for my
people and my country, not for myself. If I have failed to be a faithful
husband, this is my plea to God, I have not thought of myself, or of my
own, but of others.”

After an hour he was quiet, and turning to Gaston he said, “Charlie, go
tell your mother to come here, I want to see her.”

When she came, and sat down beside him with quiet dignity, she said,
“Now Doctor, say what you wish, Charlie has told me much, but not all.
Let us look into each other’s souls to-day.”

“I only want to ask you, dear,” he said tenderly, “just how far your
friendship for this villain may have led you. I know you are innocent of
any crime. I only want to know the measure of my own guilt.”

“You know, John,” she said, using his first name, as she had not for
years, “he has always interested me from a boy, and in the darkest hour
of my heart’s life, when I felt your love growing cold and slipping away
from me, and my faith in all things fading, he attempted to make vulgar
love to me. I repulsed him with scorn, and have since treated him with
contempt. You know that I kissed him once when he was a boy. I have told
you all. What do you propose to do?”

“What will I do, my darling?” he softly asked, taking her hand. “Begin
anew from this moment to love and cherish, honour and protect you unto
death. You are my wife. I took you a beautiful child, innocent of the
world. If you have failed in the least, I have failed. If you have
stumbled in the dark even in your thought, I will lift you up in my arms
and soothe you as a mother would her babe. If you should fall into the
bottomless pit, into the pit and down to the lowest depths of hell I
would go, and lift you in the arms of my love. To break the tie that
binds us is unthinkable. It has passed into the infinite. Not only
are our souls one in a little boy’s grave, but there is something so
absorbing, so interwoven with the hidden things of nature in our union
that I defy all the fiends in perdition to break it. Love is eternal.
And your love for me was the great fixed thing in my life like my faith
in the living God!”

“Oh, John, you are breaking my heart now, when I think that I doubted
your love! I could have brooked your anger, but this overwhelms me!”

“It has always been my character,” he gravely said.

“Then I have never known you until now,”--and in a moment she was
sobbing on his breast, the years had rolled back, and they were in the
sweet springtime of life again.




CHAPTER XVI--THE END OF A MODERN VILLAIN

TWO days after McLeod’s flight from Hambright the press despatches
flashed from New York a startling two-column account of the attempted
assassination of the Hon. Allan McLeod, the Republican leader of
North Carolina, in the terrific campaign in progress, and that he was
compelled to flee from the state to save his life.

Gaston was elected Governor by the largest majority ever given a
candidate for that office in the history of North Carolina.

McLeod was promptly rewarded for his long career of villainy by an
appointment as our Ambassador to one of the Republics of South America,
and the Senate at once confirmed him. The salary attached to his office
was $15,000, and his dream of a life of ease and luxury had come at
last.

For six months he had been quietly going to Boston paying the most
ardent court to Miss Susan Walker, whom he had met at her college at
Independence. She was a matured spinster now appproaching sixty years of
age, and worth $5,000 000 in her own name.

He had easy sailing from the first. He joined her church in Boston,
after a brilliant profession of religion that moved Miss Walker to
tears, for he had told her it was her love that had opened his eyes. And
it was true. McLeod timed his last visit to Boston so that he arrived
the day the city was ringing with the sensation of his attempted
assassination, and the desperate fight he was making to uphold law and
order in the South.

When Miss Walker read that article in her paper she resolved to marry
him immediately. She gave McLeod a wedding present of a half million
dollars. He wept for joy and gratitude, and kissed her with a fervour
that satisfied her hungry heart that he was the one peerless lover of
the world.




CHAPTER XVII--WEDDING BELLS IN THE GOVERNOR’S MANSION

TWO days after McLeod and his bride reached Asheville on their wedding
trip, General Worth received a letter which threw him into a paroxysm of
rage. Sallie’s wedding had been fixed for the day of the inauguration
of the Governor. The invitations were out and society in a flutter
of comment and gossip over the romantic and brilliant career of young
Gaston, and his luck in winning power, love, and fortune in a day.

The letter was from McLeod, at Asheville, informing him that his
daughter was already married, and that Gaston was simply seeking his
fortune by a subterfuge, and showing his power over him by humiliating
him at the last moment before the world. He enclosed a transcript of the
marriage record, signed by the Rev. John Durham, and witnessed by Mrs.
Durham and Stella Holt. This record was certified before the Clerk of
the Court and bore his seal. There was no doubt whatever of the facts.

When the General handed this letter to Sallie she flushed, looked
wistfully into his face, saw its hard expression of speechless anger,
turned pale and burst into tears.

Her father without a word went to his room, and locked himself in for
twenty-four hours, refusing to see her or speak to her.

On the following day she forced her way into his presence, and they had
the last great battle of wills. All the iron power of his unconquered
pride, accustomed for a lifetime to command men and receive instant
obedience, was roused to the pitch of madness.

“If you marry him I swear to you a thousand times you shall never cross
my doorstep, and you shall never receive one penny of my fortune. He is
a gambler and an adventurer, and seeks to make me a laughing stock for
the world!”

“Papa, nothing could be further from his thoughts. He has always loved
and respected you. I assume all the responsibility for our secret
marriage.”

“Then sharper than a serpent’s tooth is the ingratitude of a disobedient
child!”

“But, Papa, I waited five years of patient suffering trying to obey
you,” she protested.

“I had rather see you dead than to see you marry that man now, and have
him sneer his triumph in my face.”

“We are already married. Why talk like that?” she pleaded tearfully.

“I deny it. I am going to annul that marriage. Felony is ground for
the dissolution of the marriage tie. A ceremony performed under such
conditions, when one of the parties is in prison charged with felony
without bail, is illegal, and I ’ll show it. The lawyers will be here
in an hour and I will take action to-morrow.”

“Never, with my consent!” she firmly replied. She left the room,
consulted with her mother, and hastily despatched a telegram to
Hambright summoning Gaston to Independence immediately.

When this telegram came he was in his office hard at work on his
inaugural address, outlining the policy of his administration. He was in
a heated argument with the Preacher about the article on education,
which followed his recommendation of the disfranchisement of the Negro.

He had advised large appropriations for the industrial training of
negroes along the lines of the new movement of their more sober leaders.

“It’s a mistake,” argued the Preacher, “if the Negro is made master
of the industries of the South he will become the master of the South.
Sooner than allow him to take the bread from their mouths, the white
men will kill him here, as they do North, when the struggle for bread
becomes as tragic. The Negro must ultimately leave this continent. You
might as well begin to prepare for it.”

“But we propose to train him principally in Agriculture. We need
millions of good farmers,” persisted Gaston.

“So much the worse, I tell you,” replied the Preacher. “Make the Negro
a scientific and successful farmer, and let him plant his feet deep in
your soil, and it will mean a race war.”

“It seems to me impracticable ever to move him.”

“Why?” asked the Preacher. “Those over certain ages can be left to
end their days here. The Negro has cost us already the loss of
$7,000,000,000, a war that killed a half million men, the debauchery of
our suffrage, the corruption of our life, and threatens the future with
anarchy. Lincoln was right when he said, ‘There is a physical difference
between the white and the black races, which I believe will forever
forbid them living together on terms of social and political equality.’

“Even you are still labouring under the delusions of ‘Reconstruction.’
The Ethiopian can not change his skin, or the leopard his spots. Those
who think it possible will always tell you that the place to work this
miracle is in the South. Exactly. If a man really believes in equality,
let him prove it by giving his daughter to a negro in marriage. That is
the test. When she sinks with her mulatto children into the black abyss
of a Negroid life, then ask him! Your scheme of education is humbug. You
don’t believe that any amount of education can fit a negro to rule an
Anglo-Saxon, or to marry his daughter. Then don’t be a hypocrite.”

“But can we afford to stop his education?”

“The more you educate, the more impossible you make his position in a
democracy. Education! Can you change the colour of his skin, the kink of
his hair, the bulge of his lips, the spread of his nose, or the beat of
his heart, with a spelling book? The Negro is the human donkey. You can
train him, but you can’t make of him a horse. Mate him with a horse,
you lose the horse, and get a larger donkey called a mule, incapable
of preserving his species. What is called our race prejudice is simply
God’s first law of nature--the instinct of selfpreservation.”

Gaston was gazing at the ceiling with an absent look in his eyes and a
smile playing around his lips.

“You are not listening to me now, you young rascal! You are dreaming
about your bride.”

Gaston quickly lowered his eyes, and saw the messenger boy who had been
standing several minutes with his telegram.

He read Sallie’s message with amazement.

“What can that mean?” He handed the telegram to the Preacher.

“It means he has discovered the facts, and there is going to be trouble.
He is a man of terrific passions when his pride is roused.”

“I must go immediately.”

He closed his office and caught his train after a hard drive. When he
reached Independence he sprang into a carriage and ordered the driver to
take him direct to Oakwood. What had happened he did not know and he did
not care. Of one thing he was now sure--Sallie’s love and the swift end
of their separation.

His heart was singing with a great joy as he drove over the familiar
avenue through the deep shadows of the woods, and turning through the
gate saw the light gleaming from her room.

“God bless her, she’s mine now--I hope I can take her home to-night!” he
cried.

She had walked down the drive to meet him. He leaped from the carriage,
kissed her and asked, “What is it, dear?”

“McLeod wrote him about our marriage, and now he swears he will bring a
suit to annul it. Leave your carriage here and come with me. If he don’t
send these lawyers away and receive you, I will be ready to go with you
in an hour.”

“Queen of my heart!” he whispered. “You are all mine at last!”

She called her father from the library into the parlour and stood on
the very spot where Gaston had writhed in agony on that night of his
interview with the General.

He started at the expression on her face and the tense vigour with which
she held herself erect. His suit had not been progressing well with his
lawyers. They had tried to humour him, but had declined to express any
hope of success in such an action. He saw they were halfhearted and it
depressed him.

“Now, Papa,” she firmly said, “It will not take us ten minutes to decide
forever the question of our lives. If you take another step with these
lawyers,--if you do not dismiss them at once, I will leave this house
in an hour, go with the man of my choice to his home, and you will never
see me again. You shall not humiliate me or him another hour.”

The General looked at her as though stunned, his voice trembled as he
replied, “Would you leave me so in an hour, dear?”

“Yes, Charlie is waiting there on the porch for me now, and his carriage
is outside. I will not subject him to another insult, nor allow any one
else to do it.”

The General sank heavily into a chair, and stretched out his hands
toward her in a gesture of tender entreaty.

“Come child and kiss me,--you know I can’t live without you! Forgive all
the foolish things I’ve said in anger and pride. Your happiness is more
to me than all else.” She was crying now in his arms.

“Go, bring Charlie. The youngster has beaten me. I’ve fought a foeman
worthy of my steel. It’s no disgrace to surrender to him.”

In a moment she led Gaston into the room, and the General grasped his
hand.

“Young man, for the last time I welcome you to this house. Now, it is
yours. You can run this place to suit yourself. I’ve worked all my life
for Sallie. I give up the ship to you.”

“General, let me assure you of my warmest love. I have never said an
unkind thing or harboured a harsh thought toward you. I shall be proud
of you as my father. I have loved you and Mrs. Worth since the first day
I looked into Sallie’s face.”

The invitations stood. Gaston returned immediately to Hambright, and on
the morning of the inauguration, accompanied by Bob St. Clare, and the
Chief Justice of the Supreme Court, he entered the grand old mansion
with its stately pillars and claimed his bride. The Chief Justice
performed a civil ceremony, and the party started on a triumphal
procession to the Capital. The General was bubbling over with pride in
the handsome appearance the bride and groom made, and tried to outdo
himself in kindliness toward Gaston.

“Come to think it over, Governor,” he said to him after the
inauguration, “it was a brave thing in my little girl marching into that
jail alone and marrying her lover in a prison, wasn’t it? By George,
she’s a chip off the old block! I don’t care if the world does know it!”

“General, that was the bravest thing a woman could do. She is the
heroine of the drama. I play second part.”

They did not wait long for the people to know it. At four o’clock in the
afternoon an extra appeared with a startling account of the fact that
the Governor’s beautiful bride had braved the world and secretly married
him when his fortunes were at ebb-tide, and he was a prisoner in the
Asheville jail.

That night when Sallie entered the Banquet Hall of the Governor’s
Mansion, leaning proudly on Gaston’s arm, she was greeted with an
outburst of homage and deep feeling she had never dreamed of receiving.
When the Governor acknowledged the applause of his name, he bowed to his
bride, not to the crowd.

The Preacher rose to respond to the toast, “The Master and the Mistress
of the Governor’s Mansion,” and seemed to pay no attention to the
Governor, but turning to Sallie, he said, “To the queenly daughter of
the South, who had eyes to see a glorious manhood behind prison bars,
the nobility to stoop from wealth to poverty and transform a jail into
a palace with the beauty of her face and the splendour of her love--to
her, the heroine who inspired Charles Gaston with power to mould a
million wills in his, change the current of history, and become the
Governor of the Commonwealth--to her all honour, and praise, and homage.

“My daughter, it is meet that our wealth and beauty should mate with
the genius and chivalry of the South. May it ever be so, and may your
children’s children be as the sands of the sea!”

Sallie bowed her head as every eye was turned admiringly upon her. The
General trembled, and, when the crowd rose to their feet and reëchoed,
“To her all honour and praise and homage,” and the Governor bent proudly
kissing her hand, he bowed his head and wept.

Her mother sitting by her side with shining eyes pressed her hand and
whispered, “My beautiful daughter, now my work is done.”

As Gaston strolled out on the lawn with his bride after the banquet,
they found a seat in a secluded spot amid the shrubbery.

“My sweet wife!” he exclaimed.

“My husband!” she whispered, as they tenderly clasped hands.

“Tell me now who was the author of all those lies about me to your
father?”

“Why ask it, dear? You know Allan wrote the last letter.”

“The dastard. I was sure of it from the first. Well, he had the facts in
that last letter, didn’t he?”

“Yes,” she answered with a smile.

They rose to return to the Mansion, roused by the stroke of midnight
from the clock in the tower of the City Hall.

“From to-night, my dear,” he said, with enthusiasm, “you will share with
me all the honours and responsibilities of public life.”

“No, my love, I do not desire any part in public life except through
you. You are my world. I ask no higher gift of God than your love,
whether you live in a Governor’s Mansion, or the humblest cottage. I
desire no career save that of a wife--your wife”--she hid her face on
his breast as a little sob caught her voice, “and I would not change
places with the proudest queen that ever wore a crown!” She said this
looking up into his face through a mist of tears.

With trembling lips and dimmed eyes he stooped and kissed her as he
replied, “And I had rather be the husband of such a woman than to be the
ruler of the world.”


THE END









End of Project Gutenberg's The Leopard's Spots, by Thomas Dixon, Jr.